separation_n be_v pull_v down_o and_o the_o covenant_n of_o life_n be_v now_o common_a to_o they_o both_o alike_o he_o say_v that_o those_o be_v not_o to_o be_v count_v alien_n who_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o god_n adoption_n 29_o we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o which_o he_o add_v that_o he_o come_v without_o gainsay_v for_o this_o be_v the_o holy_a silence_n of_o faith_n when_o as_o without_o murmur_v against_o god_n we_o receive_v that_o meek_o which_o he_o command_v abandon_v all_o contrary_a reason_n which_o intrude_v themselves_o 30_o then_o say_v cornelius_n four_o day_n ago_o until_o this_o hour_n i_o be_v fast_v and_o about_o the_o nine_o hour_n i_o pray_v at_o my_o house_n and_o behold_v a_o man_n stand_v before_o i_o in_o a_o shine_a garment_n 31_o who_o say_v cornelius_n thy_o prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o thy_o alm_n be_v come_v into_o remembrance_n before_o god_n 32_o therefore_o send_v man_n to_o joppa_n and_o fetch_v simon_n who_o surname_n be_v peter_n this_o man_n lodge_v in_o the_o house_n of_o simon_n the_o tanner_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v present_a he_o shall_v speak_v to_o thou_o 33_o therefore_o after_o that_o hour_n i_o send_v unto_o thou_o and_o thou_o have_v do_v well_o that_o thou_o be_v come_v therefore_o all_o we_o be_v now_o present_a before_o god_n to_o hear_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v appoint_v for_o thou_o of_o god_n because_o this_o answer_n of_o cornelius_n contain_v only_o the_o bare_a repetition_n of_o the_o history_n i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o stand_v long_o about_o that_o the_o sum_n be_v that_o he_o call_v peter_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n 30_o i_o be_v fast_v many_o greek_a book_n have_v eman_n i_o sit_v the_o old_a interpreter_n omit_v the_o word_n fast_v which_o i_o think_v be_v do_v through_o error_n or_o negligence_n because_o it_o be_v express_v in_o all_o the_o greek_a book_n furthermore_o he_o make_v express_v mention_n of_o fast_v partly_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o he_o pray_v not_o cold_o or_o overfield_n at_o that_o time_n second_o that_o the_o vision_n may_v be_v the_o less_o suspect_v for_o doubtless_o the_o brain_n of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v fast_v where_o there_o be_v moderate_a sobriety_n do_v not_o easy_o admit_v any_o strong_a imagination_n wherein_o appear_v image_n and_o strange_a form_n whereby_o man_n be_v disceive_v therefore_o cornelius_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o be_v earnest_o bend_v to_o pray_v at_o such_o time_n as_o the_o angel_n appear_v to_o he_o and_o that_o his_o mind_n be_v free_a from_o all_o such_o let_n which_o use_v to_o make_v man_n subject_a to_o fantasy_n &_o imagination_n and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n tend_v the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n thaâ_n this_o be_v do_v when_o it_o be_v now_o fair_a day_n light_n three_o hour_n before_o the_o go_n down_o of_o the_o sun_n a_o man_n stand_v in_o shine_a garment_n he_o call_v he_o a_o man_n who_o he_o know_v be_v a_o angel_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o visible_a form_n wherein_o god_n or_o his_o angel_n appear_v to_o be_v translate_v unto_o he_o or_o they_o so_o moses_n do_v sometime_o call_v they_o angel_n &_o sometime_o man_n which_o appear_v to_o abraham_n in_o shape_n of_o man_n the_o shine_a garment_n be_v a_o token_n of_o heavenly_a glory_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o angel_n the_o euangiliste_n declare_v that_o there_o be_v such_o brightness_n in_o christ_n garment_n when_o he_o show_v his_o glory_n to_o the_o three_o disciple_n in_o the_o mount_n the_o same_o thing_n do_v they_o witness_v of_o the_o angel_n which_o be_v send_v to_o testify_v christ_n resurrection_n for_o as_o the_o lord_n bear_v with_o our_o infirmity_n thus_o far_o that_o he_o command_v his_o angel_n to_o descend_v under_o form_n of_o our_o flesh_n so_o he_o cast_v out_o upon_o they_o certain_a beam_n of_o his_o glory_n that_o the_o commandment_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v to_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o reverence_v and_o believe_v here_o arise_v a_o question_n whether_o that_o be_v a_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n &_o whether_o that_o be_v a_o garment_n in_o deed_n or_o cornelius_n do_v only_o see_v such_o a_o shape_n and_o show_v and_o though_o this_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o we_o can_v scarce_o affirm_v any_o thing_n for_o a_o truth_n yet_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o more_o probable_a as_o touch_v conjecture_n that_o god_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o create_v all_o thing_n give_v to_o the_o angel_n a_o true_a body_n and_o do_v clothe_v the_o same_o with_o a_o most_o gorgeous_a garment_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o angel_n have_v end_v his_o embassage_n i_o think_v he_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o own_o nature_n the_o body_n and_o garment_n be_v bring_v to_o nought_o and_o that_o he_o suffer_v no_o humane_a thing_n so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o man_n 33_o therefore_o we_o be_v all_o now_o present_a to_o the_o end_n peter_n may_v be_v more_o ready_a and_o willing_a to_o teach_v cornelius_n affirm_v that_o himself_o and_o the_o rest_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o be_v teach_v and_o ready_a to_o obey_v god_n for_o this_o serve_v not_o a_o little_a to_o move_v the_o teacher_n to_o take_v pain_n with_o the_o hearer_n when_o as_o he_o hope_v assure_o that_o they_o shall_v profit_v thereby_o these_o word_n before_o god_n may_v have_v a_o double_a meaning_n they_o may_v either_o be_v a_o oath_n or_o cornelius_n may_v thereby_o simple_o profess_v that_o that_o company_n be_v gather_v together_o at_o his_o house_n as_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v hear_v man_n voice_n in_o like_a sort_n as_o if_o it_o proceed_v out_o of_o god_n own_o mouth_n whethersoever_o you_o choose_v there_o shall_v be_v always_o one_o end_n for_o to_o the_o end_n cornelius_n may_v the_o more_o procure_v the_o credit_n of_o his_o sincerity_n he_o testify_v that_o he_o have_v god_n before_o his_o eye_n who_o no_o man_n may_v mock_v by_o dissimulation_n and_o assure_o so_o often_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v set_v before_o we_o we_o must_v thus_o think_v with_o ourselves_o that_o we_o have_v not_o to_o deal_v with_o a_o mortal_a man_n but_o that_o god_n be_v present_a and_o do_v call_v us._n for_o from_o this_o respect_n of_o god_n arise_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n word_n and_o reverence_n in_o hear_v the_o same_o notwithstanding_o he_o seem_v to_o promise_v unaduised_o for_o other_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o weighty_a for_o who_o can_v be_v a_o fit_a borrow_v for_o another_o man_n faith_n but_o because_o every_o man_n have_v promise_v obedience_n for_o himself_o he_o do_v for_o good_a cause_n hope_v that_o they_o be_v so_o affection_a and_o undoubted_o we_o may_v think_v that_o they_o have_v promise_v that_o they_o will_v be_v obedient_a to_o his_o say_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o matter_n be_v show_v they_o and_o that_o even_o than_o every_o one_o confirm_v by_o himself_o that_o which_o one_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o to_o hear_v all_o thing_n this_o only_o be_v true_a faith_n when_o we_o embrace_v not_o the_o one_o half_a of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n alone_o but_o addict_v ourselves_o whole_o unto_o it_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v few_o example_n in_o the_o world_n of_o this_o full_a and_o universal_a faith_n for_o the_o more_o part_n do_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n as_o if_o they_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o god_n save_v only_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o please_v they_o if_o any_o thing_n displease_v they_o they_o either_o careless_o contemn_v or_o mislike_v the_o same_o but_o cornelius_n do_v wise_o distinguish_v between_o god_n and_o man_n for_o he_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o leave_v nothing_o for_o man_n beside_o the_o ministry_n and_o embassage_n thou_o shall_v say_v he_o have_v attentive_a scholar_n and_o those_o which_o will_v be_v obedient_a in_o all_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v command_v thou_o that_o he_o alone_o may_v be_v principal_a and_o thou_o only_o his_o minister_n that_o he_o alone_o may_v speak_v but_o out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n which_o thing_n god_n prescribe_v to_o all_o his_o servant_n in_o the_o person_n of_o ezechiel_n take_v say_v he_o the_o word_n out_o of_o my_o mouth_n 33.7_o ezec._n 33.7_o and_o thou_o shall_v show_v unto_o they_o from_o i_o 34_o and_o peter_n open_v his_o month_n say_v of_o a_o truth_n i_o find_v that_o god_n be_v no_o accepter_n of_o person_n 35_o but_o in_o every_o nation_n he_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o do_v righteousness_n be_v accept_v of_o he_o 36_o concern_v the_o thing_n which_o god_n send_v
that_o be_v very_o seldom_o second_o there_o come_v but_o small_a fruit_n thereof_o and_o god_n have_v wrought_v miracle_n for_o the_o most_o part_n whereby_o the_o world_n may_v know_v he_o not_o simple_o or_o in_o his_o bare_a majesty_n but_o in_o his_o word_n so_o luke_n say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v establish_v by_o miracle_n not_o that_o some_o confuse_a religion_n may_v possess_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n but_o that_o paul_n his_o doctrine_n go_v before_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v unto_o the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n whence_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v how_o foolishe_o the_o papist_n deal_n when_o as_o they_o endeavour_n to_o lead_v away_o the_o world_n from_o the_o reverence_n of_o god_n and_o the_o gospel_n by_o bare_a miracle_n for_o we_o must_v hold_v that_o principle_n that_o those_o miracle_n which_o come_v from_o god_n at_o any_o time_n do_v never_o tend_v to_o any_o other_o end_n but_o that_o the_o gospel_n may_v have_v his_o perfect_a and_o full_a authority_n now_o must_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o gospel_n command_v we_o to_o call_v upon_o the_o dead_a to_o burn_v incense_n to_o idol_n to_o translate_v unto_o feign_a saint_n the_o grace_n of_o christ_n to_o take_v in_o hand_n vow_v pilgrimage_n to_o invent_v profane_a worshipping_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n then_o that_o these_o superstition_n shall_v take_v place_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o papist_n do_v wicked_o make_v engine_n of_o the_o shore_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o oppugn_v it_o to_o the_o same_o end_n tend_v that_o which_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o lord_n grant_v that_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o servant_n miracle_n may_v be_v do_v in_o which_o word_n he_o teach_v that_o those_o be_v only_a minister_n who_o obey_v god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n who_o use_v their_o hand_n and_o industry_n wherefore_o in_o speak_v proper_o we_o can_v say_v that_o they_o be_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n his_o miracle_n but_o the_o miracle_n of_o god_n alone_o who_o do_v so_o work_v by_o man_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v his_o glory_n darken_v by_o their_o ministry_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v the_o title_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o luke_n put_v in_o here_o that_o it_o may_v be_v make_v to_o we_o more_o amiable_a for_o in_o call_v it_o the_o word_n of_o grace_n it_o have_v a_o most_o pleasant_a taste_v because_o salvation_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o world_n in_o it_o through_o christ_n and_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o contrariety_n with_o the_o law_n wherein_o only_o the_o curse_n be_v set_v before_o us._n therefore_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v himself_o to_o we_o and_o may_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v merciful_a to_o us._n neither_o do_v this_o hinder_a that_o it_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n to_o the_o reprobate_n because_o they_o change_v not_o the_o nature_n thereof_o by_o their_o fault_n read_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n touch_v sign_n and_o wonder_n 2.16_o 2._o cor._n 2.16_o 4_o the_o multitude_n be_v divide_v the_o most_o troublesome_a part_n of_o the_o tragedy_n follow_v now_o for_o the_o city_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n &_o at_o length_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v enforce_v by_o the_o uproar_n of_o the_o people_n depart_v unto_o a_o other_o place_n if_o it_o be_v demand_v what_o be_v the_o original_n of_o the_o discord_n assure_o it_o flow_v from_o the_o gospel_n to_o which_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a than_o to_o cause_n discord_n but_o the_o frowardness_n of_o man_n cause_v that_o the_o gospel_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n be_v so_o soon_o as_o it_o come_v abroad_o the_o occasion_n of_o tumult_n wherefore_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o schism_n arise_v before_o we_o condemn_v those_o who_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o author_n it_o behove_v we_o wise_o to_o consider_v who_o ought_v to_o bear_v the_o blame_n we_o hear_v here_o that_o one_o city_n be_v divide_v whereby_o some_o be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n pronounce_v this_o to_o the_o praise_n and_o not_o to_o the_o shame_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n the_o same_o rule_n must_v we_o observe_v at_o this_o day_n lest_o the_o gospel_n be_v burden_v with_o false_a envy_n if_o it_o bring_v not_o man_n together_o unto_o god_n but_o the_o wicked_a rage_n against_o it_o it_o be_v assure_o a_o miserable_a matter_n to_o see_v division_n among_o man_n but_o as_o the_o unity_n be_v accurse_v which_o do_v separate_v we_o all_o from_o god_n so_o it_o be_v better_a that_o a_o few_o shall_v depart_v a_o hundred_o time_n from_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n come_v in_o favour_n again_o with_o god_n then_o that_o disagree_v with_o he_o continual_o they_o shall_v have_v peace_n with_o the_o world_n 5_o and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o assault_n make_v of_o the_o gentile_n &_o jew_n together_o with_o their_o ruler_n to_o do_v they_o violence_n and_o to_o stone_n they_o 9_o when_o they_o know_v the_o matter_n they_o flee_v into_o city_n of_o lycaonia_n to_o lystra_n and_o derbe_n &_o to_o the_o country_n lie_v nigh_o there_o about_o on_o every_o side_n 7_o and_o there_o they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 8_o and_o there_o sit_v a_o certain_a man_n at_o lystra_n impotent_a in_o his_o foot_n who_o have_v be_v lame_a from_o his_o mother_n womb_n neither_o have_v he_o ever_o walk_v 9_o this_o man_n hear_v paul_n speak_v who_o behold_v he_o and_o see_v that_o he_o have_v faith_n to_o be_v heal_v 10_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n arise_v upright_o upon_o thy_o foot_n and_o he_o leap_v up_o and_o walk_v 5_o mark_v how_o far_o forth_o the_o holy_a champion_n of_o christ_n do_v suffer_v they_o give_v not_o back_o when_o their_o enemy_n do_v only_o set_v themselves_o against_o they_o but_o when_o the_o sedition_n wax_v hot_a and_o they_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o ston_a though_o they_o have_v many_o favourer_n of_o their_o doctrine_n they_o go_v no_o further_o but_o remember_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n wherein_o he_o warn_v the_o faithful_a in_o patience_n to_o possess_v their_o soul_n they_o avoid_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o though_o they_o flie-least_a they_o throw_v themselves_o headlong_o into_o death_n yet_o their_o constancy_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o they_o fear_v not_o danger_n for_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o other_o place_n also_o this_o be_v the_o right_a kind_n of_o fear_n when_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o run_v wilful_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n of_o they_o to_o be_v murder_v and_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o forslow_v their_o duty_n neither_o do_v fear_n hinder_v they_o from_o obey_v god_n when_o he_o call_v and_o so_o consequent_o they_o can_v afford_v if_o need_v be_v to_o go_v even_o through_o death_n itself_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n 8_o a_o certain_a man_n at_o lystra_n luke_n tecit_v one_o miracle_n which_o we_o may_v think_v be_v one_o of_o many_o but_o there_o be_v mention_n make_v of_o it_o alone_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o famous_a event_n for_o we_o shall_v see_v by_o and_o by_o what_o happen_v luke_n reckon_v up_o the_o circumstance_n which_o do_v more_o plain_o set_v forth_o the_o power_n of_o god_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o man_n do_v never_o walk_v and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o cripple_n even_o from_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o that_o he_o be_v sudden_o heal_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o paul_n alone_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o his_o leg_n which_o be_v dead_a be_v make_v nimble_a so_o that_o he_o leap_v up_o without_o make_v any_o stop_n 9_o he_o hear_v paul_n speak_v hear_v be_v set_v down_o first_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o faith_n which_o luke_n will_v commend_v by_o and_o by_o be_v conceive_v of_o paul_n his_o doctrine_n therefore_o when_o he_o hear_v paul_n he_o hope_v to_o be_v heal_v but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o this_o be_v promise_v to_o he_o special_o for_o god_n do_v not_o command_v we_o to_o hope_v for_o every_o thing_n by_o and_o by_o when_o he_o offer_v unto_o we_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o the_o gospel_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o singular_a and_o extraordinary_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o cripple_n as_o it_o be_v on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o paul_n when_o he_o know_v his_o faith_n by_o behold_v he_o only_o it_o may_v be_v that_o many_o may_v receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o
17_o though_o he_o leave_v not_o himself_o without_o witness_n do_v good_a give_v to_o we_o from_o heaven_n rain_n and_o fruitful_a time_n replenish_n with_o food_n and_o gladness_n our_o heart_n 18_o and_o when_o they_o have_v thus_o say_v they_o scarce_o appease_v the_o multitude_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v sacrifice_n to_o they_o 14_o when_o the_o apostle_n have_v hear_v in_o that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n rend_v their_o garment_n and_o leap_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o multitude_n it_o appear_v thereby_o how_o zealous_a they_o be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v content_n only_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n they_o trouble_v the_o preparation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n so_o much_o as_o they_o be_v able_a it_o come_v to_o pass_v sometime_o that_o even_a hypocrite_n refuse_v excessive_a honour_n but_o they_o rather_o provoke_v the_o simple_a to_o give_v it_o they_o with_o their_o feign_a modesty_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n for_o they_o declare_v both_o by_o word_n and_o also_o by_o all_o gesture_n of_o body_n that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o take_v pleasure_n in_o that_o worship_n which_o the_o man_n of_o lystra_n give_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o do_v utter_o detest_v it_o this_o be_v holy_a anger_n wherewith_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n must_v be_v inflame_v so_o often_o as_o they_o see_v his_o glory_n profane_v and_o overthrow_v by_o the_o sacrilege_n of_o man_n and_o assure_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a otherwise_o to_o serve_v god_n sincere_o and_o faithful_o unless_o he_o put_v on_o that_o affection_n of_o jealousy_n whereof_o paul_n speak_v in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 11.2_o 2._o cor._n 11.2_o that_o those_o man_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o his_o church_n be_v no_o less_o courageous_a and_o stout_a to_o defend_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o lord_n than_o a_o husband_n be_v vigilant_a to_o defend_v his_o wife_n chastity_n therefore_o we_o must_v take_v good_a heed_n that_o we_o suffer_v not_o that_o honour_n to_o be_v give_v we_o which_o may_v darken_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o rather_o so_o soon_o as_o there_o appear_v any_o profane_v of_o god_n glory_n let_v this_o heat_n break_v out_o whereof_o we_o have_v a_o example_n in_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n and_o though_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v especial_o to_o be_v endue_v with_o this_o zeal_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o one_o of_o the_o godly_a which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v sore_o displease_v when_o he_o see_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n pollute_v or_o give_v to_o some_o other_o because_o it_o be_v write_v of_o all_o the_o zeal_n of_o thy_o house_n have_v eat_v i_o up_o and_o the_o rebuke_n of_o they_o that_o rebuke_v thou_o fell_a on_o i_o 69.10_o psal_n 69.10_o and_o if_o so_o be_v it_o holy_a man_n be_v yet_o compass_v about_o with_o the_o flesh_n do_v so_o great_o detest_v idolatry_n how_o shall_v we_o think_v they_o to_o be_v affect_v now_o when_o they_o be_v strip_v out_o of_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n whenas_o the_o world_n abuse_v their_o name_n and_o person_n unto_o superstition_n it_o think_v it_o do_v they_o a_o great_a pleasure_n but_o it_o be_v great_o deceive_v for_o they_o will_v stand_v up_o first_o against_o their_o worshipper_n and_o will_v in_o deed_n declare_v that_o they_o never_o make_v more_o account_n of_o any_o thing_n then_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n may_v remain_v whole_a and_o sound_a to_o he_o moreover_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a injury_n do_v to_o they_o than_o when_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v take_v from_o god_n be_v give_v to_o they_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v when_o any_o divine_a thing_n be_v ascribe_v and_o give_v they_o whereas_o luke_n say_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n do_v rend_v their_o garment_n it_o appear_v by_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o this_o rite_n &_o custom_n be_v use_v among_o the_o man_n of_o the_o east_n country_n so_o often_o as_o they_o will_v by_o external_a gesture_n express_v either_o great_a sorrow_n or_o detest_a of_o any_o thing_n when_o luke_n call_v barnabas_n a_o apostle_n together_o with_o paul_n he_o extend_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n far_o than_o unto_o the_o chief_a order_n which_o christ_n appoint_v in_o his_o church_n like_v as_o paul_n make_v andronicus_n and_o junias_n excellent_a among_o the_o apostle_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v speak_v proper_o they_o be_v evangelist_n and_o not_o apostle_n unless_o peradventure_o because_o barnabas_n be_v make_v paul_n his_o fellow_n in_o office_n we_o place_v they_o both_o in_o like_a degree_n of_o office_n so_o may_v he_o be_v true_o call_v a_o apostle_n 15_o man_n why_o do_v you_o those_o thing_n they_o begin_v with_o a_o reprehension_n as_o the_o matter_n do_v require_v that_o do_v they_o show_v to_o what_o end_n they_o be_v send_v afterward_o they_o preach_v concern_v the_o only_a god_n and_o show_v that_o he_o be_v unknowen_a to_o the_o world_n last_o that_o they_o may_v more_o strong_o pluck_v out_o of_o their_o heart_n the_o deceit_n and_o sleight_n of_o the_o devil_n they_o teach_v that_o this_o ignorance_n be_v without_o excuse_n therefore_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o sermon_n be_v a_o reprehension_n wherein_o the_o man_n of_o lystra_n be_v condemn_v for_o worship_v mortal_a man_n preposterous_o in_o steed_n of_o god_n though_o the_o reason_n which_o they_o allege_v seem_v to_o be_v cold_a for_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o gather_v thence_o that_o it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a to_o worship_v those_o who_o be_v deliver_v from_o humane_a misery_n by_o death_n by_o this_o mean_v all_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v stand_v untouched_a which_o be_v wont_a to_o count_v none_o god_n but_o those_o who_o be_v dead_a with_o the_o same_o colour_n also_o have_v the_o papist_n colour_v their_o idolatry_n who_o worship_n rather_o the_o dead_a man_n bone_n stone_n and_o wood_n then_o live_v man_n in_o who_o nose_n thrille_n be_v breath_n i_o answer_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n draw_v this_o argument_n from_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v now_o in_o hand_n we_o be_v miserable_a man_n therefore_o you_o do_v false_o and_o filthy_o imagine_v we_o to_o be_v god_n &_o worship_v we_o as_o god_n if_o idolatry_n be_v handle_v general_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o perpetual_a reason_n to_o condemn_v it_o &_o shall_v alone_o be_v sufficient_a enough_o that_o the_o perfect_a and_o whole_a worship_n of_o godliness_n be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o &_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v profane_v so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v in_o any_o point_n give_v to_o creature_n whether_o they_o be_v angel_n or_o man_n or_o star_n but_o occasion_n shall_v oftentimes_o be_v offer_v that_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v speak_v against_o one_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n which_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o another_o neither_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o same_o and_o yet_o shall_v they_o be_v of_o no_o small_a force_n for_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v in_o hand_n as_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n by_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v mortal_a man_n subject_a to_o diverse_a calamity_n have_v a_o fit_a reason_n to_o reprove_v the_o fury_n and_o madness_n of_o the_o people_n we_o preach_v to_o you_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o contrary_n for_o here_o they_o show_v that_o the_o end_n of_o their_o come_n be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v remove_v superstition_n which_o have_v hitherto_o reign_v for_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v do_v the_o miracle_n move_v you_o then_o give_v credence_n to_o our_o word_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o our_o ambassage_n be_v that_o all_o feign_a godhead_n wherewith_o the_o world_n have_v hitherto_o be_v deceive_v may_v be_v do_v away_o &_o perish_v and_o this_o be_v a_o general_a doctrine_n whereby_o they_o do_v not_o only_o appease_v the_o present_a madness_n but_o also_o reprehend_v all_o manner_n superstition_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v contrary_a to_o or_o disagree_v with_o the_o rule_n of_o godliness_n for_o without_o doubt_n they_o call_v all_o that_o vain_a which_o man_n have_v invent_v to_o themselves_o of_o their_o own_o brain_n and_o we_o must_v mark_v this_o definition_n that_o all_o religion_n be_v vain_a which_o depart_v and_o degenerate_v from_o the_o pure_a and_o simple_a word_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o express_a mention_n make_v in_o deed_n of_o the_o word_n because_o they_o speak_v to_o the_o gentile_n but_o because_o god_n be_v no_o otherwise_o right_o worship_v then_o according_a to_o his_o appointment_n it_o follow_v out_o of_o paul_n his_o word_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o man_n depart_v from_o that_o worship_n which_o god_n have_v command_v and_o do_v allow_v they_o be_v weary_v foolish_o and_o vain_o with_o a_o vain_a and_o
not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v without_o witness_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n take_v from_o the_o gentile_n in_o this_o place_n the_o cloak_n of_o ignorance_n for_o how_o great_o soever_o man_n please_v themselves_o in_o their_o own_o invention_n be_v at_o length_n convict_v of_o error_n they_o fly_v unto_o this_o fortress_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o bear_v no_o blame_n but_o that_o god_n be_v rather_o cruel_a who_o do_v not_o vouchsafe_v so_o much_o as_o with_o one_o hiss_n to_o call_v those_o back_n who_o he_o see_v perish_v paul_n &_o barnabas_n cut_v off_o this_o frivolous_a objection_n when_o they_o show_v that_o god_n lie_v hide_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o bare_a witness_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o divinity_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v see_v how_o these_o two_o thing_n can_v hang_v together_o for_o if_o god_n bare_a witness_n of_o himself_o he_o do_v not_o suffer_v so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lay_v the_o world_n to_o err_v i_o answer_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o testimony_n whereof_o mention_n be_v make_v be_v such_o as_o that_o it_o make_v man_n without_o excuse_n and_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n for_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v true_a that_o by_o faith_n it_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o world_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 11.3_o heb._n 11.3_o but_o faith_n be_v not_o conceive_v by_o the_o bare_a behold_v of_o the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n but_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o man_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o word_n alone_o unto_o that_o knowledge_n of_o almighty_a god_n which_o bring_v salvation_n and_o yet_o this_o let_v not_o but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v without_o excuse_n even_o without_o the_o word_n who_o though_o they_o be_v natural_o deprive_v of_o light_n be_v blind_a notwithstanding_o through_o their_o own_o malice_n as_o paul_n teach_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n give_v rain_n and_o fruitful_a season_n god_n have_v indeed_o reveal_v himself_o to_o all_o mankind_n by_o his_o word_n since_o the_o beginning_n but_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o age_n on_o which_o god_n do_v not_o bestow_v benefit_n which_o may_v testify_v that_o the_o world_n be_v govern_v by_o his_o government_n and_o commandment_n and_o because_o the_o light_n of_o doctrine_n have_v be_v bury_v long_a time_n therefore_o they_o say_v only_o that_o god_n be_v show_v by_o natural_a argument_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o they_o do_v in_o such_o sort_n set_v forth_o the_o magnificence_n &_o greatness_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n as_o become_v they_o but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o luke_n to_o touch_v the_o sum_n &_o chief_a point_n of_o matter_n neither_o do_v i_o so_o understand_v it_o that_o they_o entreat_v subtle_o and_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o philosopher_n of_o the_o secret_n of_o nature_n for_o they_o speak_v unto_o a_o unlearned_a multitude_n therefore_o it_o behove_v they_o to_o set_v that_o before_o they_o plain_o which_o the_o most_o ignorant_a do_v know_v notwithstanding_o they_o take_v this_o principle_n that_o in_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a and_o evident_a manifestation_n of_o god_n in_o that_o the_o earth_n be_v water_v with_o rain_n in_o that_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n do_v comfort_v it_o in_o that_o there_o come_v such_o abundance_n of_o fruit_n out_o of_o the_o same_o yearly_a it_o be_v thereby_o gather_v for_o a_o surety_n that_o there_o be_v some_o god_n who_o govern_v all_o thing_n for_o even_o the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v not_o move_v or_o govern_v by_o their_o own_o motion_n &_o much_o less_o by_o fortune_n therefore_o it_o remain_v that_o this_o wonderful_a workmanship_n of_o nature_n do_v manifest_o show_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o those_o who_o say_v that_o the_o world_n be_v eternal_a speak_v not_o as_o they_o think_v but_o they_o go_v about_o by_o malicious_a and_o barbarous_a unthankfulness_n to_o suppress_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n wherein_o they_o bewray_v their_o impudency_n fill_v with_o meat_n and_o gladness_n the_o ungodliness_n of_o man_n be_v more_o convict_v in_o that_o if_o they_o know_v not_o god_n because_o he_o do_v not_o only_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n testimony_n of_o his_o glory_n in_o his_o work_n but_o do_v also_o appoint_v all_o thing_n for_o their_o use_n for_o why_o do_v the_o sun_n &_o star_n shine_v in_o the_o heaven_n save_v only_o that_o they_o may_v serve_v man_n why_o do_v the_o rain_n fall_v from_o heaven_n why_o do_v the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o her_o increase_n save_v only_o that_o they_o may_v minister_v food_n to_o man_n therefore_o god_n have_v not_o set_v man_n upon_o earth_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o idle_a beholder_n of_o his_o work_n as_o be_v set_v upon_o a_o theatre_n but_o to_o exercise_v himself_o in_o praise_v the_o liberality_n of_o god_n while_o that_o he_o enjoy_v the_o riches_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n and_o now_o be_v it_o not_o more_o than_o filthy_a frowardness_n not_o to_o be_v move_v with_o so_o great_a goodness_n of_o god_n in_o the_o manifold_a abundance_n of_o thing_n to_o fill_v the_o heart_n with_o meat_n do_v signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o give_v food_n which_o may_v satisfy_v the_o desire_n of_o man_n by_o this_o word_n gladness_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n do_v mean_a that_o god_n do_v give_v more_o to_o man_n according_a to_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n than_o their_o necessity_n do_v require_v as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v that_o man_n have_v meat_n give_v they_o not_o only_o to_o refresh_v their_o strength_n but_o also_o to_o make_v their_o heart_n merry_a if_o any_o man_n do_v object_n that_o it_o fall_v out_o so_o oftentimes_o that_o man_n do_v rather_o mourn_v be_v hungry_a then_o rejoice_v be_v full_a i_o answer_v that_o that_o come_v to_o pass_v contrary_a to_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n namely_o when_o the_o lord_n shut_v his_o hand_n because_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n for_o the_o liberality_n of_o god_n shall_v flow_v unto_o we_o abundant_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n as_o it_o be_v here_o describe_v by_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n unless_o it_o be_v keep_v back_o by_o the_o let_v of_o our_o vice_n and_o yet_o there_o wes_z never_o so_o great_a barrenness_n wherein_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n in_o feed_v man_n do_v quite_o wither_v away_o it_o be_v indeed_o well_o say_v of_o the_o prophet_n open_v thy_o mouth_n and_o i_o will_v fill_v it_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o we_o be_v hungry_a through_o our_o own_o fault_n 81.11_o psal_n 81.11_o while_o that_o we_o do_v not_o admit_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n but_o how_o unworthy_a soever_o we_o be_v &_o straight_o yet_o the_o fatherly_a love_n of_o god_n break_v through_o even_o unto_o the_o unworthy_a especial_o the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n do_v testify_v that_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n do_v never_o cease_v wherein_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v our_o father_n 18_o when_o they_o have_v say_v thus_o luke_n say_v before_o that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o use_v word_n but_o they_o run_v also_o with_o violence_n into_o the_o multitude_n now_o he_o add_v that_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o people_n be_v scarce_o appease_v with_o that_o vehemency_n whereby_o appear_v how_o mad_a &_o untamed_a the_o heat_n of_o the_o world_n be_v toward_o idolatry_n for_o if_o they_o believe_v the_o god_n why_o do_v they_o not_o believe_v their_o word_n whereby_o they_o put_v from_o they_o false_a honour_n but_o all_o idolater_n be_v sick_a of_o this_o disease_n that_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o ready_a to_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n unless_o religion_n be_v subject_a to_o their_o will_n and_o pleasure_n wherefore_o not_o marvel_v if_o the_o prophet_n say_v oftentimes_o that_o man_n be_v carry_v into_o the_o blind_a affection_n of_o superstition_n even_o as_o brute_n beast_n be_v carry_v into_o their_o lust_n 19_o and_o there_o come_v from_o antioch_n and_o iconium_n jew_n by_o who_o the_o multitude_n be_v persuade_v and_o when_o they_o have_v stone_v paul_n they_o cast_v he_o out_o without_o the_o city_n think_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a 20_o and_o as_o the_o disciple_n stand_v about_o he_o he_o rise_v and_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n and_o on_o the_o morrow_n he_o go_v forth_o with_o barnabas_n to_o derbe_n 21_o and_o when_o they_o have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o this_o city_n and_o have_v frame_v many_o disciple_n they_o return_v to_o lystra_n and_o iconium_n and_o antioch_n 22_o strengthen_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o disciple_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o that_o through_o many_o affliction_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 19_o there_o come_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n can_v hardly_o stay_v the_o
the_o prophet_n agree_v with_o the_o present_a purpose_n for_o god_n promise_v to_o restore_v the_o decay_a tabernacle_n wherein_o the_o gentile_n shall_v obey_v the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n not_o only_o that_o they_o may_v pay_v tribute_n or_o take_v weapon_n at_o the_o king_n commandment_n but_o that_o they_o may_v have_v one_o god_n &_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o family_n to_o he_o yet_o there_o may_v a_o question_n be_v move_v why_o he_o have_v rather_o cite_v this_o pprophecy_n than_o many_o other_o which_o contain_v more_o plentiful_a proof_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n of_o which_o sort_n paul_n cit_v many_o 15.9.10.11_o rom_n 15.9.10.11_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o ambitious_a in_o heap_v up_o place_n of_o scripture_n but_o they_o do_v simple_o aim_v at_o this_o which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v prove_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n second_o i_o say_v that_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o amos_n be_v more_o plain_a than_o it_o be_v common_o take_v to_o be_v the_o prophet_n intreat_v of_o the_o restore_n of_o a_o house_n which_o be_v decay_v he_o describe_v the_o miserable_a ruin_n thereof_o therefore_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v add_v immediate_o that_o the_o seat_n &_o throne_n shall_v be_v set_v uppe_o again_o from_o of_o which_o king_n of_o the_o posterity_n of_o david_n shall_v rule_v over_o the_o gentile_n do_v proper_o appertain_v unto_o christ_n therefore_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v set_v up_o that_o must_v needs_o follow_v which_o the_o prophet_n say_v also_o that_o the_o gentile_n shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o god_n now_o we_o see_v that_o james_n do_v not_o unaduised_o make_v choice_n of_o this_o place_n for_o if_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v otherwise_o establish_v unless_o god_n be_v call_v upon_o every_o where_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n &_o the_o gentile_n grow_v together_o to_o be_v one_o with_o his_o holy_a people_n it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v drive_v from_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o middle_a wall_n must_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n wherewith_o the_o one_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o other_o under_o the_o law_n the_o first_o word_n i_o will_v return_v be_v not_o in_o the_o prophet_n 2.14_o ephe._n 2.14_o but_o the_o change_n of_o the_o state_n which_o he_o denounce_v be_v very_o well_o express_v by_o this_o mean_n the_o tabernacle_n of_o david_n which_o be_v decay_v it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o that_o evil_a favour_a wastnes_n &_o ruin_n of_o the_o king_n house_n be_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n by_o the_o prophet_n for_o unless_o the_o godly_a shall_v have_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n shall_v notwithstanding_o come_v though_o the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n be_v bring_v to_o nought_o who_o shall_v not_o only_o restore_v to_o their_o old_a order_n thing_n which_o be_v decay_v but_o shall_v exalt_v even_o unto_o the_o heaven_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n with_o incomparable_a success_n they_o shall_v have_v despair_v and_o hundred_v time_n in_o a_o day_n after_o they_o be_v return_v from_o the_o exile_n wherein_o they_o live_v at_o babylon_n they_o be_v bring_v by_o continual_a destruction_n almost_o unto_o utter_a destruction_n afterward_o that_o which_o remain_v be_v consume_v by_o little_a &_o little_a with_o civil_a discord_n yea_o when_o god_n do_v relieve_v their_o misery_n that_o kind_n of_o help_n which_o they_o have_v be_v a_o certain_a matter_n of_o despair_n for_o that_o rule_n which_o the_o maccabee_n take_v upon_o they_o be_v then_o take_v away_o from_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n for_o these_o cause_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v diligent_o beat_v in_o this_o by_o the_o prophet_n that_o christ_n shall_v not_o come_v until_o the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n shall_v perish_v that_o they_o may_v not_o despair_v of_o salvation_n even_o amid_o great_a misery_n so_o isaias_n say_v that_o there_o shall_v a_o branch_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o contemptible_a &_o base_a stock_n and_o lot_n we_o also_o remember_v 1._o isai_n 1â_n 1._o that_o god_n do_v observe_v this_o wonderful_a way_n in_o restore_v the_o church_n that_o he_o do_v build_v it_o up_o when_o it_o be_v decay_v furthermore_o this_o place_n teach_v when_o the_o church_n be_v best_a order_v &_o what_o be_v the_o true_a and_o right_a constitution_n thereof_o to_o wit_n when_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n be_v set_v up_o &_o christ_n alone_o have_v the_o pre-eminence_n that_o all_o may_v meet_v together_o in_o his_o obedience_n though_o the_o pope_n have_v oppress_v the_o church_n with_o his_o sacrilegious_a tyranny_n yet_o do_v he_o make_v boast_v of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o he_o deceive_v man_n under_o the_o vain_a title_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o may_v put_v out_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v come_v thorough_o to_o examine_v the_o matter_n we_o may_v easy_o refute_v such_o a_o gross_a mock_n because_o he_o alone_o bear_v rule_v have_v depose_v christ_n he_o do_v in_o word_n confess_v that_o he_o be_v christ_n vicar_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n after_o that_o he_o have_v by_o a_o beautiful_a banishment_n send_v christ_n into_o the_o heaven_n he_o take_v to_o himself_o all_o his_o power_n for_o christ_n reign_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o gospel_n alone_o which_o be_v wicked_o tread_v underfoot_o by_o this_o abominable_a idol_n but_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o lawful_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n among_o we_o if_o we_o do_v all_o in_o general_n obey_v christ_n the_o king_n of_o king_n 10.16_o joh._n 10.16_o that_o there_o may_v be_v one_o sheepfold_a &_o one_o shepherd_n 17_o that_o those_o which_o remain_v may_v seek_v james_n add_v this_o word_n seek_v by_o way_n of_o exposition_n which_o be_v not_o find_v nor_o read_v in_o the_o prophet_n &_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o superfluous_a because_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v number_v among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n &_o that_o he_o may_v take_v we_o for_o his_o own_o we_o must_v on_o the_o otherside_n be_v encourage_v to_o seek_v he_o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o luke_n do_v summary_o comprehend_v those_o thing_n whereof_o james_n do_v dispute_v in_o his_o own_o language_n among_o the_o jew_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o gentile_n which_o amos_n use_v luke_n out_o of_o the_o greek_a translation_n which_o be_v more_o familiar_a put_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o man_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o must_v go_v before_o the_o purge_n of_o the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o world_n a_o cut_n prune_a or_o pare_n as_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o this_o doctrine_n must_v be_v also_o apply_v unto_o our_o time_n for_o because_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o world_n be_v worse_a they_o that_o it_o can_v be_v whole_o bring_v to_o obey_v christ_n he_o blow_v away_o with_o diverse_a fan_n of_o tribulation_n the_o chaff_n and_o weed_n that_o he_o may_v at_o length_n gather_v unto_o himself_o that_o which_o shall_v remain_v 18._o know_v from_o the_o beginning_n this_o be_v a_o prevention_n to_o put_v away_o the_o hatred_n which_o may_v have_v rise_v upon_o the_o novelty_n for_o the_o sudden_a change_n may_v have_v be_v suspect_v and_o therefore_o do_v it_o trouble_v weak_a mind_n therefore_o james_n prevent_v show_v that_o this_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n with_o god_n though_o it_o fall_v out_o sudden_o otherwise_o then_o man_n think_v because_o god_n see_v before_o the_o world_n be_v create_v what_o he_o will_v do_v &_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v hide_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v esteem_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o man_n furthermore_n james_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n when_o he_o affirm_v that_o god_n who_o shall_v do_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v also_o the_o author_n of_o the_o pprophecy_n therefore_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o see_v god_n speak_v by_o his_o prophet_n he_o see_v then_o yea_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n that_o neither_o uncircumcision_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o shall_v let_v he_o but_o that_o he_o will_v choose_v the_o gentile_n into_o his_o family_n nevertheless_o there_o be_v comprehend_v under_o this_o a_o general_a exhortation_n that_o man_n do_v not_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o measure_v with_o the_o small_a measure_n of_o their_o wit_n 11.33_o rom._n 11.33_o the_o work_n of_o god_n the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v oftentimes_o know_v to_o none_o but_o to_o himself_o but_o rather_o
city_n and_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a reason_n why_o luke_n make_v mention_n of_o their_o excellency_n of_o birth_n we_o know_v how_o hardly_o man_n come_v down_o from_o their_o high_a degree_n what_o a_o rare_a matter_n it_o be_v for_o those_o who_o be_v great_a in_o the_o world_n 1.11_o james_n 1.11_o to_o undertake_v the_o reproach_n of_o the_o cross_n lay_v away_o their_o pride_n and_o to_o rejoice_v in_o humility_n as_o james_n command_v therefore_o luke_n commend_v the_o rare_a efficacy_n and_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n when_o he_o say_v that_o these_o noble_a man_n be_v no_o whit_n hinder_v by_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o that_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n they_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o bear_v the_o cross_n &_o prefer_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n second_o luk_n mean_v to_o make_v know_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n stand_v open_a for_o all_o order_n and_o degree_n in_o which_o sense_n paul_n say_v that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v lest_o the_o poor_a and_o those_o who_o be_v base_a do_v shut_v the_o gate_n against_o the_o rich_a though_o christ_n do_v vouchsafe_v they_o the_o former_a place_n 2.4_o 1._o tim._n 2.4_o therefore_o we_o see_v that_o noble_a man_n and_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o common_a sort_n be_v gather_v together_o that_o those_o who_o be_v man_n of_o honour_n &_o which_o be_v despise_v grow_v together_o into_o one_o body_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o man_n in_o general_n may_v humble_v themselves_o &_o extol_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n three_o luke_n seem_v to_o note_v the_o cause_n why_o there_o be_v so_o many_o add_v and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o such_o short_a time_n so_o spread_v abroad_o and_o enlarge_a at_o thessalonica_n to_o wit_n because_o that_o be_v no_o small_a help_n that_o chief_a man_n and_o man_n of_o honour_n do_v show_v other_o man_n the_o way_n because_o the_o common_a sort_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n move_v by_o authority_n and_o though_o this_o be_v no_o meet_a stay_n for_o faith_n &_o godliness_n yet_o be_v it_o no_o strange_a thing_n for_o god_n to_o bring_v the_o unbeliever_n who_o wonder_v as_o yet_o in_o error_n to_o himself_o by_o crooked_a and_o by_o way_n receive_v the_o word_n this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n which_o he_o commend_v in_o the_o man_n of_o thessalonica_n that_o with_o a_o willing_a and_o ready_a desire_n they_o receive_v the_o gospel_n secondlie_o that_o they_o confirm_v their_o faith_n by_o diligent_a inquisition_n so_o that_o their_o faith_n and_o godliness_n be_v commendod_n in_o the_o begin_n for_o forwardness_n and_o in_o process_n they_o be_v praise_v for_o their_o constancy_n and_o fervent_a desire_n they_o have_v to_o profit_v and_o sure_o this_o be_v the_o first_o entrance_n into_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o follow_v and_o that_o abandon_v the_o understanding_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n 2.13_o 1._o the._n 2.13_o we_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o christ_n by_o he_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o to_o obey_v he_o also_o paul_n himself_o in_o adorn_v the_o thessalonian_o with_o this_o title_n do_v agree_v with_o saint_n luke_n as_o touch_v the_o second_o member_n this_o diligence_n be_v no_o small_a virtue_n whereunto_o luke_n say_v the_o faithful_a be_v much_o give_v for_o confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o many_o who_o at_o the_o first_o break_v out_o give_v themselves_o straightway_o to_o idleness_n while_n that_o they_o have_v no_o care_n to_o profit_n and_o so_o loose_a that_o small_a seed_n which_o they_o have_v at_o the_o first_o but_o two_o inconvenience_n may_v be_v in_o this_o place_n object_v for_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o arrogancy_n in_o that_o they_o inquire_v that_o they_o may_v judge_v &_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n altogether_o disagree_v with_o that_o readiness_n whereof_o he_o speak_v of_o lateâ_n second_o for_o as_o much_o as_o inquisition_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o doubtfulness_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v before_o endue_v with_o no_o faith_n which_o have_v always_o assurance_n &_o certainty_n join_v and_o link_v with_o it_o unto_o the_o first_o objection_n i_o answer_v that_o luke_n his_o word_n ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o the_o thessalonian_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o judge_v or_o as_o though_o they_o dispute_v whether_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v they_o do_v only_o examine_v paul_n doctrine_n by_o the_o rule_n and_o square_v of_o the_o scripture_n even_o as_o gold_n be_v try_v in_o the_o fire_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o true_a touchstone_n whereby_o all_o doctrine_n must_v be_v try_v if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o trial_n be_v doubtful_a forasmuch_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v oftentimes_o doubtful_a and_o be_v interpret_v diverse_a way_n i_o say_v that_o we_o must_v also_o add_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n call_v the_o spirit_n of_o discretion_n but_o the_o faithful_a must_v judge_v of_o every_o doctrine_n no_o otherwise_o than_o out_o of_o and_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n have_v the_o spirit_n for_o their_o leader_n and_o guide_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v refute_v that_o sacrilegious_a quip_n of_o the_o papist_n because_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o gather_v certain_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n faith_n do_v depend_v only_o upon_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n for_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v commend_v the_o man_n of_o thessalonica_n he_o prescribe_v to_o we_o a_o rule_n in_o their_o example_n and_o in_o vain_a shall_v we_o search_v the_o scripture_n unless_o they_o have_v in_o they_o light_a enough_o to_o teach_v us._n therefore_o let_v this_o remain_v as_o a_o most_o sure_a maxim_n that_o no_o doctrine_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o that_o which_o we_o find_v to_o be_v ground_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o pope_n will_v have_v all_o that_o receive_v without_o any_o more_o ado_n whatsoever_o he_o do_v blunder_v out_o at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o shall_v he_o be_v prefer_v before_o paul_n concern_v who_o preachtng_a it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o disciple_n to_o make_v inquisition_n and_o let_v we_o note_v that_o this_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o any_o visured_a council_n but_o of_o a_o small_a assembly_n of_o man_n whereby_o it_o do_v better_a appear_v that_o everye_o man_n be_v call_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n so_o likewise_o make_v of_o search_n do_v not_o disagree_v with_o the_o forwardness_n of_o faith_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o man_n do_v harken_v and_o be_v desirous_a to_o learn_v do_v show_v himself_o attentive_a he_o be_v now_o bend_v and_o apt_a to_o be_v teach_v though_o he_o do_v not_o full_o give_v his_o consent_n for_o example_n sake_n a_o unknowen_a teacher_n shall_v profess_v that_o he_o do_v bring_v true_a doctrine_n i_o will_v come_v be_v ready_a to_o hear_v and_o my_o mind_n shall_v be_v frame_v unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o truth_n nevertheless_o i_o will_v weigh_v with_o myself_o what_o manner_n doctrine_n it_o be_v which_o he_o bring_v neither_o will_v i_o embrace_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o certain_a truth_n and_o that_o which_o i_o know_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o this_o be_v the_o best_a moderation_n when_o be_v fast_o bind_v with_o the_o reverence_n of_o god_n we_o hear_v that_o willing_o and_o quiet_o which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o as_o proceed_v from_o he_o nevertheless_o we_o beware_v of_o the_o seduce_a subtlety_n of_o man_n neither_o do_v our_o mind_n throw_v themselves_o headlong_o with_o a_o blind_a rage_n to_o believe_v every_o thing_n without_o advisement_n therefore_o the_o search_v mention_v by_o luke_n do_v not_o tend_v to_o that_o end_n that_o we_o may_v be_v slow_a and_o unwilling_a to_o believe_v but_o rather_o readiness_n with_o judgement_n be_v make_v the_o mean_a between_o lightness_n &_o stubbornness_n now_o must_v we_o answer_v the_o second_o objection_n faith_n be_v contrary_a to_o doubtfulness_n he_o which_o inquire_v doubt_v therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o thessalonian_o inquire_v and_o make_v search_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n they_o be_v void_a of_o faith_n as_o yet_o but_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o confirmation_n thereof_o i_o call_v that_o confirmation_n when_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v more_o and_o more_o seal_v up_o in_o our_o heart_n whereof_o notwithstanding_o we_o do_v not_o doubt_v before_o for_o example_n sake_n i_o hear_v out_o of_o the_o gospel_n that_o i_o be_o reconcile_v to_o god_n through_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o my_o sin_n be_v purge_v through_o his_o holy_a blood_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o testimony_n utter_v which_o shall_v make_v i_o believe_v this_o
liberty_n to_o lie_v that_o we_o may_v have_v no_o certain_a thing_n leave_v we_o after_o christ_n ascension_n so_o that_o unless_o this_o work_n of_o luke_n be_v extant_a it_o may_v seem_v that_o christ_n be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n leave_v no_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n or_o resurrection_n upon_o earth_n for_o all_o shall_v have_v vanish_v away_o with_o his_o body_n we_o shall_v not_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o receive_v into_o his_o celestial_a glory_n that_o nevertheless_o he_o bear_v rule_v in_o all_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v not_o know_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v publish_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o come_v from_o they_o unto_o we_o though_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o other_o we_o shall_v not_o know_v that_o they_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lest_o they_o shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v divine_a to_o the_o end_n our_o faith_n may_v be_v ground_v only_o upon_o the_o unfallible_a verity_n of_o god_n last_o of_o all_o we_o shall_v not_o know_v that_o that_o prophecy_n of_o esaias_n be_v fulfil_v wherein_o he_o foretell_v that_o the_o law_n shall_v come_v out_o of_o zion_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n see_v this_o book_n proceed_v no_o doubt_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n take_v from_o we_o all_o doubt_n of_o these_o thing_n we_o must_v count_v the_o same_o as_o a_o great_a treasure_n as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o not_o without_o cause_n and_o now_o again_o confirm_v the_o same_o the_o commentary_n of_o m._n jo._n caluin_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n chap._n i._n 1_o the_o former_a speech_n true_o have_v we_o have_v o_o theophilus_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v 2_o even_o until_o that_o day_n wherein_o after_o he_o have_v give_v commandment_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o apostle_n which_o he_o have_v choose_v he_o be_v take_v up_o 1_o that_o he_o may_v pass_v over_o unto_o those_o thing_n which_o follow_v the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n he_o brief_o gather_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o those_o which_o before_o he_o have_v handle_v in_o the_o former_a book_n that_o he_o may_v annexe_v this_o thereunto_o and_o he_o brief_o set_v down_o this_o description_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o be_v a_o narration_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n do_v &_o say_v so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v conversant_a upon_o earth_n furthermore_o whereas_o they_o interpret_v this_o common_o that_o there_o be_v first_o in_o christ_n purity_n of_o life_n before_o such_o time_n as_o he_o begin_v to_o preach_v it_o make_v nothing_o unto_o luke_n his_o mind_n truth_n it_o be_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o good_a and_o godly_a teacher_n ought_v so_o to_o be_v frame_v that_o he_o speak_v first_o with_o his_o life_n then_o with_o his_o tongue_n otherwise_o he_o shall_v differ_v nothing_o from_o a_o stage_n player_n 24.19_o luk._n 24.19_o but_o luke_n have_v respect_n rather_o unto_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v about_o the_o end_n of_o his_o gospel_n namely_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o prophet_n mighty_a in_o deed_n and_o word_n that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o do_v excel_v no_o less_o in_o deed_n than_o in_o word_n although_o there_o be_v but_o small_a difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o place_n for_o the_o mightiness_n of_o work_n which_o be_v commend_v there_o do_v belong_v unto_o his_o miracle_n but_o this_o to_o do_v do_v reach_n further_o in_o my_o opinion_n namely_o that_o under_o the_o same_o be_v comprehend_v all_o the_o famous_a act_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o his_o ministry_n wherein_o his_o death_n &_o resurrection_n be_v the_o chief_a for_o the_o office_n of_o the_o messiah_n do_v not_o only_o consist_v in_o doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v also_o behoveful_a that_o he_o shall_v make_v peace_n between_o god_n and_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o redeemer_n of_o the_o people_n a_o restorer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o a_o author_n of_o everlasting_a felicity_n all_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v as_o they_o be_v promise_v of_o the_o messiah_n so_o be_v they_o look_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n now_o we_o see_v that_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n consist_v of_o these_o two_o part_n namely_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n &_o of_o his_o act_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v not_o only_o bring_v unto_o man_n that_o embassage_n which_o be_v give_v he_o in_o charge_n of_o his_o father_n but_o also_o perform_v all_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v require_v of_o the_o messiah_n he_o begin_v his_o kingdom_n he_o pacify_v god_n with_o his_o sacrifice_n he_o purge_v man_n sin_n with_o his_o own_o precious_a blood_n he_o subdue_v death_n and_o the_o devil_n he_o restore_v we_o unto_o true_a liberty_n he_o purchase_v righteousness_n &_o life_n for_o us._n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o whatsoever_o he_o either_o do_v or_o say_v may_v be_v certain_a he_o prove_v himself_o by_o miracle_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o that_o this_o word_n to_o do_v be_v extend_v unto_o his_o miracle_n also_o but_o it_o must_v not_o be_v restrain_v only_o unto_o the_o same_o here_o must_v we_o note_v that_o those_o which_o have_v only_o the_o bare_a knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n have_v not_o the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o make_v manifest_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o act_n of_o christ_n be_v adjoin_v thereunto_o for_o this_o be_v a_o holy_a knot_n which_o no_o man_n may_v dissolve_v therefore_o whensoever_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o adjoine_v thereunto_o his_o work_n as_o seal_n whereby_o the_o truth_n thereof_o be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v and_o the_o effect_n declare_v furthermore_o that_o we_o may_v reap_v commodity_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n and_o also_o that_o miracle_n may_v have_v their_o use_n we_o must_v always_o have_v respect_n unto_o he_o that_o speak_v for_o this_o be_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o christianity_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o he_o begin_v i_o do_v not_o great_o mislike_v the_o interpretation_n which_o some_o give_v of_o this_o place_n that_o luke_n say_v rather_o of_o all_o then_o all_o because_o it_o be_v possible_a in_o some_o measure_n to_o entreat_v of_o the_o work_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o set_v down_o the_o whole_a course_n that_o the_o narration_n may_v be_v perfect_a be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n like_a as_o john_n do_v declare_v that_o the_o world_n can_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n 21.25_o john_n 21.25_o that_o be_v also_o to_o be_v note_v that_o luke_n say_v that_o he_o begin_v his_o history_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v declare_v the_o nativity_n of_o christ_n he_o pass_v over_o unto_o the_o twelve_o year_n of_o his_o age_n 2.42_o luke_n 2.42_o and_o after_o he_o have_v brief_o speak_v of_o his_o disputation_n have_v in_o the_o temple_n with_o the_o doctor_n pass_v over_o xviii_o year_n without_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o he_o enter_v the_o just_a narration_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v therefore_o manifest_a that_o those_o work_n and_o say_n only_o which_o make_v any_o thing_n unto_o the_o sum_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v note_v in_o this_o place_n for_o after_o that_o christ_n come_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n clothe_v with_o our_o flesh_n he_o live_v private_o at_o home_n until_o he_o be_v xxx_o year_n of_o age_n at_o which_o time_n his_o father_n put_v upon_o he_o another_o manner_n of_o person_n god_n will_v have_v he_o to_o lead_v the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o life_n obscure_o to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v more_o excellent_a which_o do_v edify_v our_o faith_n the_o former_a speech_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o i_o to_o translate_v this_o on_o this_o wise_a because_o logon_fw-la poiesdhai_fw-la be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o grecian_n which_o verba_fw-la facere_fw-la or_o to_o speak_v be_v with_o the_o latin_n as_o budaeus_fw-la do_v note_n and_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o contrariety_n of_o the_o second_o part_n which_o he_o take_v in_o hand_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o evangelist_n determine_v with_o himself_o afresh_o to_o write_v have_v new_a matter_n whereupon_o to_o write_v even_o until_o that_o day_n therefore_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o he_o have_v ascend_v say_v paul_n that_o he_o may_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n 4.10_o ephes_n 4.10_o our_o faith_n gather_v other_o fruit_n thereby_o but_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o note_v in_o this_o place_n that_o our_o redemption_n be_v full_o complete_a and_o finish_v then_o when_o christ_n do_v ascend_v unto_o his_o
father_n and_o therefore_o that_o luke_n do_v full_o perform_v his_o duty_n in_o this_o narration_n as_o touch_v the_o doctrine_n and_o work_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v take_v up_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o he_o be_v true_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n lest_o we_o shall_v consent_v unto_o their_o dote_n who_o think_v that_o in_o his_o ascension_n there_o be_v no_o alteration_n of_o place_n make_v commandment_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n luke_n show_v in_o these_o word_n that_o christ_n do_v not_o so_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o world_n that_o he_o do_v no_o long_a care_n for_o we_o for_o in_o that_o he_o have_v ordain_v a_o perpetual_a government_n in_o his_o church_n he_o thereby_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v a_o care_n to_o provide_v for_o our_o salvation_n 28.20_o mat._n 28.20_o yea_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v present_a with_o he_o to_o the_o end_n like_v as_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v always_o present_a by_o his_o minister_n luke_n therefore_o do_v show_v unto_o we_o that_o christ_n do_v no_o soon_o depart_v hence_o but_o straight_o way_n he_o provide_v for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n whence_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o he_o be_v careful_a for_o our_o salvation_n and_o this_o his_o providence_n have_v paul_n plain_o note_v in_o the_o place_n late_o cite_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n make_v some_o apostle_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n but_o these_o commandment_n which_o the_o evangelist_n say_v christ_n give_v unto_o his_o disciple_n do_v i_o interpret_v of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n like_v as_o ambassador_n use_v to_o be_v instruct_v with_o certain_a precept_n before_o they_o go_v of_o their_o ambassage_n lest_o they_o shall_v rash_o attempt_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o will_n and_o mind_n that_o send_v they_o and_o all_o this_o be_v speak_v in_o commendation_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o which_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v more_o manifest_o every_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v mark_v in_o order_n as_o it_o lie_v first_o of_o all_o he_o say_v they_o be_v elect_v &_o choose_v of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o their_o call_n unto_o that_o function_n neither_o do_v he_o in_o this_o place_n set_v god_n election_n against_o man_n merit_n but_o only_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v raise_v up_o by_o god_n &_o that_o they_o do_v not_o rash_o take_v upon_o they_o this_o function_n that_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n that_o they_o be_v free_o choose_v but_o now_o have_v we_o to_o inquire_v what_o be_v luke_n drift_n in_o this_o place_n i_o say_v that_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o nothing_o else_o but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v not_o to_o have_v respect_n unto_o man_n but_o unto_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o author_n thereof_o because_o this_o must_v always_o be_v a_o maxim_n in_o the_o church_n that_o no_o man_n usurp_v any_o honour_n second_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v instruct_v of_o christ_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o utter_v not_o their_o own_o invention_n but_o they_o deliver_v that_o sincere_o and_o faithful_o which_o be_v enjoin_v they_o by_o their_o heavenly_a master_n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o that_o which_o christ_n teach_v they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o reverence_v he_o add_v this_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o because_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v any_o need_n to_o be_v guide_v by_o any_o other_o who_o be_v eternal_a wisdom_n but_o because_o he_o be_v also_o man_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o do_v deliver_v those_o thing_n unto_o his_o disciple_n which_o he_o deliver_v by_o man_n wit_n and_o reason_n he_o call_v we_o back_o express_o unto_o the_o divine_a authority_n like_a as_o the_o lord_n himself_o do_v so_o often_o affirm_v that_o he_o teach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o his_o father_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v not_o his_o own_o therefore_o he_o signify_v that_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o issue_v from_o man_n brain_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o divine_a ordinance_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereunto_o the_o whole_a world_n must_v be_v subject_a 3_o to_o who_o also_o he_o show_v himself_o alive_a after_o that_o he_o have_v suffer_v in_o many_o proof_n while_o that_o he_o be_v see_v of_o they_o by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n and_o he_o intreat_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 4_o and_o when_o he_o have_v gather_v they_o together_o he_o command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v wait_v for_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n whereof_o say_v he_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o 5_o because_o john_n true_o baptize_v with_o water_n but_o you_o shall_v be_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n after_o a_o few_o day_n 3_o unto_o who_o &c._n &c._n he_o add_v this_o that_o he_o may_v make_v the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o thing_n most_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o without_o the_o which_o the_o whole_a gospel_n fall_v flat_a to_o the_o ground_n neither_o remain_v there_o any_o more_o faith_n and_o that_o i_o may_v omit_v to_o speak_v of_o other_o discommodity_n that_o come_v by_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n the_o gospel_n lose_v his_o whole_a authority_n unless_o we_o know_v and_o be_v also_o full_o persuade_v that_o christ_n be_v alive_a speak_v unto_o we_o from_o the_o heaven_n whereunto_o luke_n have_v chief_a respect_n in_o this_o place_n therefore_o that_o the_o truth_n hereof_o may_v not_o be_v call_v in_o question_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o many_o sign_n and_o token_n those_o which_o erasmus_n follow_v a_o old_a interpreter_n do_v call_v argument_n i_o have_v translate_v proof_n for_o aristotle_n do_v call_v that_o tecmerion_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o rhetorike_n which_o be_v necessary_a in_o sign_n this_o be_v therefore_o that_o which_o i_o say_v before_o that_o christ_n do_v make_v manifest_a his_o resurrection_n unto_o his_o apostle_n by_o evident_a token_n which_o do_v serve_v instead_o of_o necessary_a proof_n lest_o they_o shall_v doubt_v of_o the_o same_o furthermore_o he_o do_v not_o reckon_v up_o those_o token_n and_o sign_n save_v only_o that_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v appear_v unto_o they_o about_o the_o space_n of_o a_o month_n and_o one_o half_a oftentimes_o if_o he_o have_v but_o once_o appear_v unto_o they_o it_o may_v have_v be_v somewhat_o suspicious_a but_o in_o show_v himself_o so_o often_o unto_o they_o he_o dissolve_v all_o doubt_n which_o may_v arise_v in_o their_o mind_n &_o by_o this_o mean_n also_o he_o put_v away_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o ignorance_n which_o he_o say_v be_v in_o the_o apostle_n lest_o it_o discredit_v their_o preach_n he_o intreat_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n he_o tell_v we_o again_o that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v well_o teach_v before_o such_o time_n as_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o teach_v other_o therefore_o whatsoever_o thing_n they_o utter_v &_o bring_v to_o light_n either_o by_o word_n or_o by_o writing_n touch_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n they_o be_v those_o speech_n which_o christ_n himself_o utter_v and_o hereby_o do_v he_o brief_o set_v down_o the_o end_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n namely_o that_o god_n may_v reign_v in_o us._n regeneration_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o this_o kingdom_n &_o the_o end_n thereof_o be_v bless_v immortality_n the_o middle_a proceed_n be_v in_o a_o more_o ample_a go_n forward_o &_o increase_n of_o regeneration_n but_o that_o this_o thing_n may_v appear_v more_o evident_o we_o must_v first_o note_n that_o we_o be_v bear_v and_o that_o we_o live_v alien_n and_o stranger_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n until_o such_o time_n as_o god_n do_v fashion_v we_o again_o unto_o a_o new_a life_n therefore_o we_o may_v proper_o set_v the_o world_n the_o flesh_n &_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o man_n nature_n against_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o contrary_a to_o it_o for_o the_o natural_a man_n be_v whole_o occupy_v about_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n and_o he_o seek_v felicity_n here_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o be_v as_o it_o be_v banish_v from_o god_n &_o he_o likewise_o from_o us._n but_o christ_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v lift_v we_o up_o unto_o the_o meditation_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o better_o bring_v this_o to_o pass_v he_o reform_v all_o our_o
and_o do_v also_o look_v for_o the_o promise_n let_v they_o know_v for_o a_o surety_n that_o this_o be_v he_o and_o none_o other_o he_o use_v the_o word_n house_n because_o god_n have_v separate_v that_o name_n and_o family_n from_o all_o other_o people_n and_o he_o say_v asphalos_fw-la or_o for_o a_o surety_n not_o only_o that_o they_o may_v repose_v their_o sure_a confidence_n and_o trust_n in_o christ_n but_o that_o he_o may_v take_v away_o all_o occasion_n of_o doubt_v from_o those_o which_o do_v oftentimes_o willing_o doubt_v even_o of_o matter_n which_o be_v certain_a &_o sure_a in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o oration_n he_o upbraid_v unto_o they_o again_o that_o they_o do_v crucify_v he_o that_o be_v touch_v with_o great_a grief_n of_o conscience_n they_o may_v desire_v remedy_n and_o now_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o know_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o anoint_a of_o the_o lord_n the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o giver_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o accusation_n have_v so_o much_o the_o more_o force_n for_o the_o put_n of_o he_o to_o death_n be_v not_o only_o full_a of_o cruelty_n and_o wickedness_n but_o also_o a_o testimony_n of_o outrageous_a disloyalty_n against_o god_n of_o sacrilege_n and_o unthankfulness_n and_o final_o of_o apostasy_n but_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o wound_v lest_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v slow_a to_o seek_v for_o medicine_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v not_o crucify_v he_o with_o their_o own_o hand_n but_o this_o be_v more_o than_o sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o guilty_a in_o that_o they_o desire_v to_o have_v he_o put_v to_o death_n and_o we_o also_o be_v accuse_v by_o this_o same_o voice_n if_o we_o crucify_v he_o in_o ourselves_o 6.6_o heb._n 6.6_o be_v already_o glorify_v in_o heaven_n make_v a_o mock_n of_o he_o as_o say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 6._o 37_o and_o when_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n they_o be_v prick_v in_o heart_n and_o say_v unto_o peter_n and_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v 38_o peter_n say_v unto_o they_o repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 39_o for_o the_o promise_n appertain_v unto_o you_o and_o unto_o your_o child_n and_o unto_o all_o which_o be_v far_o off_o whosoever_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n shall_v call_v 37_o they_o be_v prick_v in_o heart_n luke_n do_v now_o declare_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o sermon_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o only_o show_v forth_o in_o the_o diversity_n of_o tongue_n but_o also_o in_o their_o heart_n which_o hear_v and_o he_o note_v a_o double_a fruit_n first_o that_o they_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o sorrow_n and_o second_o that_o they_o be_v obedient_a to_o peter_n his_o counsel_n this_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o repentance_n this_o be_v the_o entrance_n unto_o godliness_n to_o be_v sorry_a for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o be_v wound_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o our_o misery_n for_o so_o long_o as_o man_n be_v careless_a they_o can_v not_o take_v such_o heed_n unto_o doctrine_n as_o they_o ought_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o sword_n 27.3_o john_n 15.16_o heb._n 4.12_o gen._n 4.13_o mat._n 27.3_o because_o it_o do_v mortify_v our_o flesh_n that_o we_o may_v be_v offer_v to_o god_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n but_o there_o must_v be_v add_v unto_o this_o prick_n in_o hart_n readiness_n to_o obey_v cain_n and_o judas_n be_v prick_v in_o heart_n but_o despair_n do_v keep_v they_o back_o from_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o god._n for_o the_o mind_n be_v oppress_v with_o horror_n can_v do_v nothing_o else_o but_o fly_n from_o god_n and_o sure_o when_o david_n affirm_v that_o a_o contrite_a spirit_n and_o a_o humble_a heart_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n he_o speak_v of_o voluntary_a prick_n forasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v fret_v and_o fume_v mix_v with_o the_o pricking_n of_o the_o wicked_a therefore_o we_o must_v take_v a_o good_a heart_n to_o we_o &_o lift_v up_o our_o mind_n with_o this_o hope_n of_o salvation_n that_o we_o may_v be_v ready_a to_o addict_v &_o give_v over_o ourselves_o unto_o god_n &_o to_o follow_v whatsoever_o he_o shall_v command_v we_o see_v many_o oftentimes_o prick_v who_o notwithstanding_o do_v fret_v and_o murmur_n or_o else_o froward_o strive_v and_o struggle_v and_o so_o consequent_o go_v furious_o mad_a yea_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o go_v mad_a because_o they_o feel_v such_o pricking_n against_o their_o wil._n those_o man_n therefore_o be_v profitable_o prick_v alone_o who_o be_v willing_o sorrowful_a and_o do_v also_o seek_v some_o remedy_n at_o god_n hand_n 38_o peter_n say_v hereby_o we_o see_v that_o those_o do_v never_o go_v away_o empty_a which_o ask_v at_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n &_o do_v offer_v themselves_o unto_o he_o to_o be_v rule_v and_o teach_v 7.7_o mat._n 7.7_o for_o that_o promise_n must_v needs_o be_v true_a knock_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v open_v unto_o you_o therefore_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v right_o prepare_v to_o learn_v the_o lord_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o godly_a desire_n to_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o he_o his_o a_o most_o faithful_a master_n so_o that_o he_o have_v scholar_n which_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v teach_v &_o studious_a wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o he_o shall_v fear_v lest_o he_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v destitute_a of_o sound_a counsel_n if_o we_o be_v attentive_a and_o ready_a to_o hear_v he_o and_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o embrace_v whatsoever_o we_o shall_v teach_v us._n and_o let_v we_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o counsel_n &_o authority_n of_o those_o man_n who_o he_o offer_v unto_o we_o to_o teach_v us._n for_o this_o ready_a obedience_n come_v thence_o so_o sudden_o in_o those_o which_o addict_v themselves_o unto_o the_o apostle_n because_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o show_v they_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n repent_v there_o be_v great_a force_n in_o the_o greek_a word_n for_o it_o do_v signify_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o mind_n that_o the_o whole_a man_n may_v be_v renew_a &_o make_v another_o man_n which_o thing_n must_v be_v diligent_o note_v because_o this_o doctrine_n be_v miserable_o corrupt_v in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n for_o they_o translate_v the_o name_n of_o repentance_n almost_o unto_o certain_a external_a rite_n they_o babble_v somewhat_o in_o deed_n about_o the_o feign_a contrition_n of_o the_o heart_n but_o they_o touch_v that_o part_n very_o slight_o &_o they_o stand_v principal_o upon_o the_o external_a exercise_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v little_a worth_n yea_o though_o there_o be_v in_o they_o no_o corruption_n but_o they_o urge_v nothing_o else_o in_o a_o manner_n but_o feign_a trifle_n wherewith_o man_n be_v weary_v in_o vain_a wherefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a repentance_n when_o a_o man_n be_v renew_a in_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mind_n as_o paul_n teach_v rom._n 12._o neither_o need_v we_o to_o doubt_v of_o this_o 12.1_o rom._n 12.1_o but_o that_o peter_n do_v preach_v plain_o of_o the_o force_n &_o nature_n of_o repentance_n but_o luke_n do_v only_o touch_v the_o chief_a point_n and_o do_v not_o reckon_v up_o the_o word_n of_o the_o oration_n which_o he_o make_v we_o must_v therefore_o know_v thus_o much_o that_o peter_n do_v at_o the_o first_o exhort_v the_o jew_n unto_o repentance_n &_o that_o do_v he_o lift_v they_o up_o with_o hope_n of_o pardon_n for_o he_o promise_v they_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n which_o two_o thing_n be_v the_o two_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o we_o know_v full_a well_o and_o therefore_o when_o christ_n will_v brief_o teach_v what_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v contain_v he_o say_v that_o that_o repentance_n &_o remission_n of_o sin_n must_v be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n furthermore_o because_o we_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n 24.47_o luk._n 24.47_o only_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o christ_n his_o death_n neither_o be_v our_o sin_n otherwise_o purge_v &_o do_v away_o save_v only_o by_o his_o blood_n therefore_o peter_n call_v we_o back_o unto_o he_o by_o name_n he_o put_v baptism_n in_o the_o four_o place_n as_o the_o seal_n whereby_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v confirm_v wherefore_o we_o have_v in_o these_o few_o word_n almost_o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christianity_n namely_o how_o a_o man_n renounce_v himself_o &_o take_v his_o fare_n well_o of_o the_o world_n may_v addict_v himself_o whole_o to_o god_n second_o
baptize_v and_o there_o be_v add_v that_o day_n about_o three_o thousand_o soul_n 42_o and_o they_o continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o in_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n 40_o and_o with_o many_o although_o in_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v have_v hitherto_o luke_n do_v not_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o saint_n peter_n but_o do_v only_o brief_o touch_v the_o chief_a point_n notwithstanding_o he_o tell_v we_o again_o in_o this_o place_n that_o peter_n do_v not_o use_v doctrine_n only_o but_o do_v add_v the_o prick_v of_o exhortation_n and_o he_o express_v plain_o that_o he_o stand_v much_o hereupon_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v exhort_v and_o beseech_v he_o note_v therein_o his_o earnestness_n for_o it_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a a_o matter_n for_o they_o by_o and_o by_o to_o take_v their_o leave_n of_o those_o error_n wherewith_o they_o be_v of_o late_o infect_v and_o to_o shake_v off_o the_o government_n of_o the_o priest_n whereunto_o they_o be_v accustom_v therefore_o it_o stand_v he_o upon_o to_o pull_v they_o violent_o out_o of_o this_o mire_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o they_o shall_v beware_v of_o that_o froward_a generation_n for_o they_o can_v not_o be_v christ_n unless_o they_o will_v depart_v from_o his_o profess_a enemy_n the_o priest_n and_o scribe_n be_v then_o in_o great_a authority_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v cover_v themselves_o under_o the_o visure_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v deceive_v the_o simple_a this_o do_v hinder_v and_o keep_v back_o a_o great_a many_o from_o come_v to_o christ_n also_o some_o may_v waver_v &_o other_o some_o may_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o right_a faith_n therefore_o peter_n plain_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v a_o froward_a generation_n howsoever_o they_o make_v boast_v of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o command_v his_o hearer_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o lest_o they_o entangle_v themselves_o in_o their_o wicked_a and_o pestiferous_a fellowship_n whereas_o he_o say_v be_v you_o save_v he_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v sure_o perish_v if_o they_o couple_v themselves_o with_o such_o a_o plague_n and_o sure_o experience_n do_v teach_v we_o how_o miserable_o those_o man_n be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o who_o can_v discern_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o pastor_n from_o the_o voice_n of_o other_o man_n and_o again_o what_o a_o hindrance_n softness_n and_o sluggisheesse_n be_v to_o a_o great_a many_o while_o they_o desire_v to_o stand_v in_o a_o doubt_n therefore_o he_o command_v they_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o wicked_a if_o they_o will_v be_v save_v and_o this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v for_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v christ_n set_v before_o we_o unless_o we_o be_v also_o teach_v to_o fly_v those_o thing_n which_o do_v lead_v we_o away_o from_o he_o and_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a shepherd_n to_o defend_v his_o sheep_n from_o the_o wolf_n so_o at_o this_o day_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v keep_v the_o people_n in_o the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o be_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o enforce_v to_o show_v and_o testify_v how_o much_o papistry_n differ_v from_o christianity_n and_o what_o a_o hurtful_a plague_n it_o be_v to_o be_v yoke_v with_o the_o unfaithful_a enemy_n of_o christ_n neither_o ought_v peter_n to_o be_v accuse_v of_o rail_v because_o he_o call_v the_o reverend_a father_n who_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o hand_n at_o that_o day_n a_o froward_a generation_n for_o those_o danger_n which_o may_v draw_v the_o soul_n unto_o destruction_n be_v to_o be_v show_v by_o their_o name_n for_o man_n will_v not_o beware_v of_o poison_n unless_o they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v poison_n 41_o they_o therefore_o which_o willing_o luke_n show_v more_o plain_o how_o fruitful_a this_o one_o sermon_n which_o peter_n make_v be_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o gain_v unto_o christ_n about_o three_o thousand_o man_n and_o therewithal_o he_o declare_v the_o nature_n and_o force_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o say_v that_o with_o a_o prompt_a and_o ready_a mind_n they_o embrace_v his_o word_n therefore_o faith_n must_v begin_v with_o this_o readiness_n and_o willing_a desire_n to_o obey_v but_o because_o many_o do_v show_v themselves_o at_o the_o first_o very_o willing_a who_o afterward_o have_v in_o themselves_o no_o constancy_n or_o continuance_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o it_o be_v some_o sudden_a pang_n which_o by_o and_o by_o fall_v away_o luke_n do_v also_o afterward_o commend_v their_o constancy_n who_o as_o he_o say_v do_v willing_o embrace_v this_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o they_o be_v join_v unto_o the_o disciple_n or_o that_o they_o be_v engraft_v into_o the_o same_o body_n and_o that_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o doctrine_n therefore_o we_o must_v neither_o be_v slow_a to_o obey_v ne_o yet_o swift_a to_o leap_v back_o but_o we_o must_v stick_v fast_o and_o stand_v stout_o to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o we_o do_v forthwith_o without_o any_o tarriance_n embrace_v furthermore_o this_o example_n ought_v to_o make_v we_o not_o a_o little_a ashamed_a for_o whereas_o there_o be_v a_o great_a multitude_n convert_v unto_o christ_n with_o one_o sermon_n a_o hundred_o sermon_n can_v scarce_o move_v a_o few_o of_o we_o and_o whereas_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o continue_v there_o be_v scarce_o one_o among_o ten_o that_o do_v show_v even_o a_o mean_a desire_n to_o profit_n and_o go_v forward_o yea_o rather_o the_o more_o part_n do_v soon_o loath_a our_o doctrine_n woe_n be_v therefore_o to_o the_o sluggishness_n and_o lightness_n of_o the_o world_n in_o their_o doctrine_n luke_n do_v not_o only_o commend_v in_o they_o the_o constancy_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o godliness_n but_o he_o say_v also_o that_o they_o do_v constant_o give_v themselves_o to_o those_o exercise_n which_o serve_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o study_v continual_o to_o profit_n by_o hear_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o give_v themselves_o much_o to_o prayer_n that_o they_o do_v use_v fellowship_n and_o break_n of_o bread_n very_o much_o as_o touch_v prayer_n and_o doctrine_n the_o sense_n be_v plain_a communication_n or_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n may_v be_v take_v diverse_o some_o think_v that_o break_n of_o bread_n do_v signify_v the_o lord_n supper_n othersome_a do_v think_v that_o it_o signify_v alm_n othersome_a that_o the_o faithful_a do_v banquet_n together_o among_o themselves_o some_o do_v think_v that_o coinonia_fw-la do_v signify_v the_o celebrate_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n but_o i_o do_v rather_o agree_v to_o those_o other_o who_o think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o break_n of_o bread_n for_o coinonia_fw-la unless_o it_o have_v somewhat_o add_v unto_o it_o be_v never_o find_v in_o this_o sense_n therefore_o i_o do_v rather_o refer_v it_o unto_o mutual_a society_n and_o fellowship_n unto_o alm_n and_o unto_o other_o duty_n of_o brotherly_a fellowship_n and_o my_o reason_n why_o i_o will_v rather_o have_v break_v of_o bread_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o this_o place_n be_v this_o because_o luke_n do_v reckon_v up_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o public_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v contain_v yea_o he_o express_v in_o this_o place_n four_o mark_n whereby_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a face_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v judge_v do_v we_o then_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o image_n thereof_o be_v lively_o depaint_v and_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o this_o place_n and_o he_o begin_v with_o doctrine_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v he_o name_v all_o manner_n of_o doctrine_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v that_o which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v deliver_v by_o their_o hand_n therefore_o wheresoever_o the_o pure_a voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v sound_a where_o man_n continue_v in_o the_o profession_n thereof_o where_o they_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o hear_v the_o same_o ordinary_o that_o they_o may_v profit_v without_o all_o doubt_n there_o be_v the_o church_n hereby_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v how_o frivolous_a the_o boast_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v while_o that_o they_o careless_o thunder_v out_o with_o full_a mouth_n the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v most_o filthy_o corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o it_o be_v due_o examine_v we_o shall_v find_v no_o sound_a part_n at_o all_o and_o in_o most_o point_n they_o do_v as_o much_o dissent_n from_o the_o same_o and_o have_v as_o little_a agreement_n therewith_o as_o light_v with_o darkness_n the_o rule_n of_o worship_v god_n which_o
they_o may_v make_v a_o entrance_n for_o doctrine_n for_o when_o doctrine_n be_v cold_a and_o unprofitable_a with_o we_o god_n do_v just_o punish_v our_o unthankfulness_n by_o this_o mean_n because_o we_o have_v despise_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o work_n again_o because_o we_o be_v not_o so_o quick_a of_o sight_n that_o we_o can_v see_v so_o much_o in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n alone_o as_o be_v sufficient_a let_v we_o learn_v to_o join_v therewithal_o the_o help_n of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v brief_a the_o one_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o other_o which_o thing_n experience_n do_v sufficient_o teach_v us._n for_o hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o world_n do_v so_o wicked_o abuse_v miracle_n the_o papist_n do_v object_n unto_o we_o miracle_n again_o and_o again_o let_v we_o suppose_v that_o they_o be_v true_a whereof_o they_o make_v such_o boast_n yet_o do_v they_o great_o err_v in_o this_o that_o they_o wrest_v they_o to_o a_o wrong_a end_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v darken_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o infect_v the_o pure_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o their_o invention_n for_o whence_o come_v so_o many_o superstitious_a worshiping_n of_o saint_n save_v only_o from_o the_o abuse_n of_o miracle_n for_o when_o any_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v man_n must_v needs_o be_v move_v and_o because_o they_o be_v deaf_a when_o they_o shall_v hear_v the_o word_n and_o do_v not_o mark_v what_o god_n do_v mean_a satan_n do_v crafty_o take_v a_o occasion_n of_o superstition_n by_o our_o amazedness_n as_o for_o example_n i_o will_v acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o a_o miracle_n if_o it_o be_v wrought_v by_o peter_n satan_n will_v by_o and_o by_o put_v this_o in_o my_o head_n and_o will_v say_v thus_o do_v thou_o not_o see_v that_o this_o be_v a_o man_n of_o god_n therefore_o thou_o do_v owe_v unto_o he_o divine_a honour_n the_o same_o thing_n have_v befall_v the_o jew_n when_o they_o be_v amaze_v unless_o peter_n his_o sermon_n have_v call_v they_o back_o into_o the_o right_a way_n but_o in_o popery_n where_o none_o do_v call_v they_o back_o or_o reprove_v they_o the_o preposterous_a woonder_v of_o man_n do_v easy_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n wherefore_o we_o must_v so_o much_o the_o more_o seek_v for_o medicine_n out_o of_o the_o word_n that_o doctrine_n may_v direct_v we_o unto_o the_o right_a end_n be_v lift_v up_o with_o the_o miracle_n 11_o in_o the_o porch_n it_o be_v like_o that_o there_o be_v a_o porch_n build_v in_o that_o place_n where_o solomon_n porch_n be_v sometime_o and_o that_o it_o take_v the_o name_n thereupon_o for_o the_o old_a temple_n be_v pull_v down_o but_o zerubabell_a and_o esdras_n in_o the_o re-edify_n and_o new_a build_n of_o the_o same_o temple_n have_v imitate_v the_o same_o so_o nigh_o as_o they_o can_v possible_o devise_v afterward_o herod_n renew_v the_o same_o and_o make_v it_o far_o more_o gorgeous_a but_o that_o vain_a cost_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v have_v not_o yet_o blot_v out_o the_o remembrance_n of_o solomon_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n and_o luke_n name_v the_o same_o as_o a_o most_o famous_a place_n whereunto_o the_o people_n run_v together_o by_o heap_n to_o celebrate_v their_o feast_n unto_o god_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v 12_o and_o when_o peter_n see_v that_o he_o make_v answer_v unto_o the_o people_n man_n of_o israel_n why_o marvel_v you_o at_o this_o or_o why_o look_v you_o so_o steadfast_o upon_o we_o as_o if_o by_o our_o own_o power_n or_o godliness_n we_o have_v make_v this_o man_n walk_v 13_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaach_n and_o jacob_n the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n have_v glorify_v his_o son_n jesus_n who_o you_o have_v deliver_v and_o who_o you_o have_v deny_v before_o the_o face_n of_o pilate_n when_o he_o have_v judge_v he_o to_o be_v loose_v 14_o but_o you_o have_v deny_v the_o holy_a and_o just_a and_o have_v desire_v to_o have_v a_o murderer_n give_v you_o 15_o but_o you_o have_v murder_v the_o prince_n of_o life_n who_o god_n have_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a whereof_o we_o be_v witness_n and_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o name_n his_o name_n have_v strengthen_v this_o man_n who_o you_o have_v see_v and_o know_v 16_o and_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v by_o he_o have_v give_v he_o this_o perfect_a soundness_n in_o presence_n of_o you_o all_o 12_o man_n of_o israel_n he_o begin_v his_o sermon_n with_o a_o reprove_v of_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o do_v he_o not_o simple_o reproove_v they_o because_o they_o wonder_v for_o that_o be_v altogether_o profitable_a and_o worthy_a praise_n but_o because_o they_o do_v wicked_o ascribe_v unto_o man_n that_o praise_v which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o work_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o do_v amiss_o in_o that_o you_o stay_v in_o we_o and_o stand_v gaze_v upon_o we_o whereas_o you_o ought_v rather_o to_o look_v upon_o god_n and_o christ_n therefore_o this_o be_v to_o be_v amaze_v evillie_o when_o as_o our_o mind_n do_v stay_v in_o man_n and_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o condemn_v the_o respect_n of_o man_n as_o if_o say_v he_o we_o by_o our_o own_o power_n and_o virtue_n have_v do_v this_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o this_o if_o we_o attribute_v that_o unto_o the_o godliness_n and_o power_n of_o man_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o as_o concern_v power_n no_o man_n will_v deny_v that_o it_o come_v of_o god_n yet_o when_o they_o have_v confess_v this_o in_o one_o word_n they_o do_v not_o cease_v to_o take_v from_o god_n his_o right_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v adorn_v the_o creature_n with_o that_o which_o they_o take_v from_o he_o as_o we_o see_v the_o papist_n place_v the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o saint_n yea_o they_o include_v his_o power_n in_o a_o stone_n or_o stock_n of_o wood_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o image_n be_v consecrate_v to_o barbara_n or_o chrysogonus_n but_o notwithstanding_o let_v we_o suppose_v that_o they_o do_v not_o offend_v in_o that_o former_a member_n yet_o do_v they_o foolish_o think_v that_o they_o have_v do_v their_o duty_n towards_o god_n when_o as_o they_o leave_v he_o the_o power_n and_o assign_v the_o miracle_n unto_o the_o godliness_n of_o saint_n for_o why_o do_v they_o run_v unto_o they_o when_o they_o will_v obtain_v either_o rain_n or_o fair_a weather_n or_o be_v deliver_v from_o disease_n unless_o they_o do_v imagine_v that_o they_o have_v by_o their_o godliness_n deserve_v that_o god_n shall_v grant_v they_o this_o right_a and_o privilege_n this_o be_v therefore_o but_o a_o childish_a start_a hole_n when_o they_o confess_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o power_n but_o they_o thank_v the_o godliness_n of_o saint_n for_o those_o benefit_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v howsoever_o they_o colour_v the_o matter_n we_o must_v always_o know_v this_o that_o peter_n do_v general_o condemn_v those_o which_o do_v so_o look_v unto_o man_n in_o miracle_n that_o they_o think_v that_o their_o holiness_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o this_o be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o sermon_n wherein_o he_o reprove_v superstition_n and_o we_o must_v note_v this_o manner_n and_o order_n of_o teach_v for_o because_o man_n be_v incline_v to_o nothing_o more_o than_o to_o fall_v from_o god_n unto_o the_o creature_n it_o be_v very_o expedient_a to_o prevent_v this_o vice_n in_o time_n and_o if_o the_o people_n be_v forbid_v to_o look_v unto_o the_o apostle_n much_o more_o do_v the_o spirit_n draw_v we_o away_o from_o call_v upon_o every_o petty_a saint_n 13._o 14._o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n he_o add_v a_o remedy_n now_o in_o call_v they_o back_o unto_o christ_n and_o the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o this_o be_v god_n purpose_n in_o those_o miracle_n which_o he_o work_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o those_o do_v deal_v disorderlie_o who_o set_v up_o peter_n or_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o he_o be_v for_o so_o much_o as_o all_o man_n must_v decrease_v and_o christ_n alone_o must_v be_v excellent_a here_o appear_v a_o manifest_a difference_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n 3.30_o john_n 3.30_o first_o of_o all_o he_o be_v the_o author_n they_o be_v only_o the_o minister_n second_o this_o be_v the_o lawful_a end_n that_o he_o alone_o may_v have_v the_o glory_n and_o as_o for_o they_o there_o be_v no_o respect_n to_o be_v have_v of_o they_o as_o concern_v glory_n for_o certain_o they_o which_o do_v glorify_v any_o in_o miracle_n beside_o christ_n they_o set_v themselves_o flat_o against_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaach_n and_o
be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o covenaunt_n which_o god_n make_v with_o your_o father_n say_v unto_o abraham_n and_o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o family_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v 26_o god_n raise_v up_o unto_o you_o first_o his_o son_n jesus_n and_o he_o send_v he_o blessing_n you_o while_o that_o he_o do_v turn_v away_o every_o one_o from_o his_o sin_n 25_o you_o be_v the_o child_n he_o signify_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v appoint_v principal_o for_o they_o which_o covenaunt_n god_n make_v with_o their_o father_n and_o so_o as_o he_o prick_v they_o forward_o to_o obey_v the_o gospel_n by_o terrifi_v they_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o punishment_n so_o be_v allure_v they_o now_o again_o to_o receive_v the_o grace_n which_o be_v offer_v they_o in_o christ_n so_o that_o we_o see_v how_o that_o god_n omit_v nothing_o whereby_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o unto_o himself_o and_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o wise_a minister_n so_o to_o prick_v forward_o the_o sluggish_a and_o slow_a belly_n that_o he_o do_v lead_v those_o gentle_o which_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v teach_v we_o must_v also_o note_v diligent_o this_o course_n of_o teach_v where_o peter_n show_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v assign_v and_o appoint_v unto_o the_o jew_n for_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n preach_v unto_o we_o general_o unless_o we_o also_o know_v that_o the_o same_o be_v offer_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o certain_a ordinance_n of_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n be_v it_o that_o paul_n stand_v so_o much_o upon_o the_o avouch_n of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n because_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o the_o gospel_n come_v unto_o he_o by_o chance_n 4._o rom._n 15.8_o eph._n 3.3_o &_o 4._o when_o as_o it_o be_v scatter_v here_o and_o there_o faith_n shall_v quail_v yea_o there_o shall_v be_v only_o a_o doubtful_a opinion_n in_o steed_n of_o faith_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v steadfast_o believe_v the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n this_o application_n that_o i_o may_v so_o term_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n do_v not_o cast_v forth_o uncertain_a voice_n that_o they_o may_v hang_v in_o the_o air_n but_o that_o he_o do_v direct_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o by_o his_o certain_a &_o determinate_a counsel_n peter_n tell_v the_o jew_n that_o christ_n be_v promise_v unto_o they_o after_o this_o sort_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v more_o willing_o embrace_v he_o and_o how_o prove_v he_o this_o because_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o covenant_n he_o call_v they_o the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nation_n and_o therefore_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o covenant_n 17.7_o gen._n 17.7_o which_o do_v belong_v unto_o all_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o people_n for_o he_o argue_v thus_o god_n make_v his_o covenaunt_n with_o our_o father_n therefore_o we_o which_o be_v their_o posterity_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o covenaunt_n whereby_o the_o doubt_a subtlety_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n be_v refute_v who_o do_v expound_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n only_o allegorical_o as_o if_o god_n have_v have_v no_o respect_n to_o his_o stock_n when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v be_v the_o god_n of_o thy_o seed_n certain_o peter_n do_v not_o speak_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o law_n but_o he_o affirm_v that_o this_o be_v of_o force_n under_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o god_n do_v adopt_v the_o child_n together_o with_o the_o father_n 9.7_o rom._n 9.7_o and_o so_o consequent_o the_o grace_n of_o salvation_n may_v be_v extend_v unto_o those_o which_o be_v as_o yet_o unborn_a i_o grant_v in_o deed_n that_o many_o which_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v count_v bastard_n and_o not_o legitimate_a because_o they_o thrust_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a progeny_n through_o their_o unbeleef_n but_o this_o do_v no_o whit_n hinder_v the_o lord_n from_o call_v &_o admit_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o godly_a into_o fellowship_n of_o grace_n and_o so_o although_o the_o common_a election_n be_v not_o effectual_a in_o all_o yet_o may_v it_o set_v open_v a_o gate_n for_o the_o special_a elect_v 11.23_o rom._n 11.23_o as_o paul_n intreat_v in_o the_o 11._o to_o the_o roman_n whence_o we_o must_v fetch_v a_o answer_n for_o this_o question_n and_o in_o thy_o seed_n he_o prove_v that_o the_o covenant_n be_v make_v with_o the_o father_n because_o god_n say_v unto_o abraham_n in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o nation_n be_v bless_v 22.18_o gen._n 22.18_o but_o if_o we_o admit_v paul_n his_o interpretation_n this_o testimony_n shall_v make_v nothing_o for_o the_o present_a cause_n paul_n teach_v that_o christ_n be_v this_o seed_n if_o the_o blessing_n be_v promise_v to_o all_o mankind_n by_o christ_n 3.16_o gal._n 3.16_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o especial_a or_o particular_a privilege_n of_o one_o nation_n second_o peter_n himself_o seem_v short_o after_o to_o subscribe_v to_o this_o exposition_n of_o paul_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v send_v that_o in_o he_o the_o jew_n may_v be_v bless_v for_o this_o can_v not_o be_v unless_o christ_n be_v that_o bless_a seed_n i_o answer_v when_o paul_n refer_v it_o unto_o christ_n he_o stand_v not_o upon_o the_o word_n seed_n but_o he_o have_v respect_n to_o a_o high_a thing_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o can_v be_v one_o seed_n unless_o it_o be_v unite_v &_o knit_v together_o in_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o head_n for_o ishmael_n &_o isaac_n although_o both_o of_o they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o abraham_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o make_v one_o seed_n because_o they_o be_v divide_v into_o two_o people_n therefore_o though_o many_o be_v estrange_v from_o the_o family_n of_o abraham_n which_o come_v of_o he_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n yet_o moses_n note_v one_o certain_a body_n when_o he_o promise_v the_o blessing_n unto_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o whence_o come_v the_o unity_n save_v only_o from_o the_o head_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n in_o this_o sense_n do_v paul_n understande_v this_o word_n seed_n of_o christ_n although_o it_o be_v a_o noun_n collective_a because_o if_o you_o depart_v from_o he_o the_o posterity_n of_o abraham_n shall_v be_v as_o tear_v member_n neither_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o thing_n else_o in_o they_o save_v only_o mere_a wastnes_n &_o scatter_v abroad_o peter_n agree_v with_o that_o doctrine_n because_o he_o do_v so_o extend_v the_o blessing_n unto_o all_o the_o people_n that_o he_o do_v nevertheless_o seek_v the_o fountain_n in_o christ_n second_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o wring_v from_o we_o this_o testimony_n the_o godly_a reader_n must_v arm_v themselves_o against_o their_o cavil_n &_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o because_o christian_n writer_n have_v be_v too_o slack_a in_o this_o point_n as_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o epist_n to_o the_o galathian_o first_o as_o touch_v the_o word_n seed_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v prattle_v that_o paul_n do_v not_o right_o restrain_v it_o unto_o christ_n for_o he_o do_v not_o this_o simple_o but_o in_o that_o respect_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o which_o point_n i_o confess_v both_o our_o latin_a &_o greek_a interpreter_n have_v err_v now_o we_o must_v see_v what_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n do_v import_v the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v bless_v in_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n our_o man_n think_v that_o there_o be_v some_o cause_n note_v to_o wit_n that_o through_o that_o seed_n the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v bless_v the_o jew_n toss_v this_o to_o &_o fro_o because_o this_o phrase_n signify_v every_o where_n in_o the_o scripture_n a_o example_n or_o similitude_n as_o on_o the_o otherside_n to_o be_v curse_v in_o sodom_n in_o israel_n or_o in_o a_o other_o people_n be_v to_o take_v they_o for_o a_o notable_a example_n of_o a_o curse_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o doubtful_a speech_n &_o take_v diverse_o according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o place_n which_o the_o jew_n do_v crafty_o dissemble_v for_o they_o gather_v many_o place_n out_o of_o which_o they_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o comparison_n make_v as_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v the_o gentile_n shall_v desire_v to_o be_v bless_v like_o to_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n but_o when_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v elsewhere_o they_o shall_v bless_v themselves_o in_o the_o live_a god_n as_o jere._n 4._o esay_n 65._o 10.8_o jere._n 4.2_o esay_n 65.16_o deut._n 10.8_o and_o again_o do_v bless_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n deut_n 10._o and_o in_o other_o such_o like_a place_n who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o there_o be_v a_o cause_n express_v
in_o this_o he_o do_v according_a to_o his_o common_a custom_n for_o he_o testify_v every_o where_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o angel_n be_v minister_n of_o his_o goodness_n towards_o us._n neither_o be_v that_o a_o vain_a speculation_n for_o this_o be_v a_o profitable_a help_n for_o our_o infirmity_n that_o we_o know_v that_o not_o only_a god_n do_v care_n for_o we_o but_o also_o that_o the_o heavenly_a spirit_n do_v watch_v for_o our_o safety_n again_o this_o be_v no_o small_a pledge_n of_o god_n love_n towards_o we_o that_o the_o creature_n of_o all_o other_o most_o noble_a be_v appoint_v to_o have_v regard_n of_o our_o safety_n the_o angel_n open_v the_o prison_n in_o the_o night_n because_o he_o will_v not_o work_v the_o miracle_n when_o the_o wicked_a may_v see_v he_o although_o he_o will_v have_v the_o same_o be_v wrought_v know_v by_o the_o event_n itself_o 20_o speak_v in_o the_o temple_n this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o their_o deliveraunce_n that_o they_o employ_v themselves_o stout_o in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o provoke_v their_o enemy_n courageous_o until_o they_o die_v valiant_o for_o they_o be_v put_v to_o death_n at_o length_n when_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n cease_v after_o that_o they_o have_v finish_v their_o course_n but_o now_o the_o lord_n open_v the_o prison_n for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v at_o liberty_n to_o fulfil_v their_o function_n that_o be_v worth_a the_o mark_v because_o we_o see_v many_o man_n who_o after_o they_o have_v escape_v out_o of_o persecution_n do_v afterward_o keep_v silence_n as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v their_o duty_n toward_o god_n and_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v trouble_v othersome_a also_o do_v escape_v away_o by_o deny_v christ_n but_o the_o lord_n do_v deliver_v his_o child_n not_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v cease_v off_o from_o the_o course_n which_o they_o have_v begin_v but_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o zealous_a afterward_o the_o apostle_n may_v have_v object_v it_o be_v better_a to_o keep_v silence_n for_o a_o time_n for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v speak_v one_o word_n without_o danger_n we_o be_v now_o apprehend_v for_o one_o only_a sermon_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o fury_n of_o our_o enemy_n be_v inflame_v hereafter_o if_o they_o shall_v see_v we_o make_v no_o end_n of_o speak_v but_o because_o they_o know_v that_o they_o be_v to_o live_v and_o to_o die_v to_o the_o lord_n they_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n command_v so_o we_o must_v always_o mark_v what_o function_n the_o lord_n injoin_v us._n there_o will_v many_o thing_n meet_v we_o oftentimes_o which_o may_v discourage_v we_o unless_o be_v content_a with_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n alone_o we_o do_v our_o duty_n commit_v the_o success_n to_o he_o the_o word_n of_o this_o life_n a_o singular_a commendation_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1.17_o rom._n 1.17_o that_o it_o be_v a_o lively_a doctrine_n bring_v salvation_n unto_o man_n for_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v unto_o we_o in_o it_o and_o in_o it_o christ_n offer_v himself_o unto_o we_o with_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n with_o the_o earnest_n of_o our_o adoption_n and_o this_o be_v speak_v express_o to_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v the_o more_o courageous_o enter_v all_o manner_n cumbate_n for_o the_o gospel_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n the_o demonstrative_a be_v add_v for_o the_o more_o certainty_n as_o if_o the_o angel_n do_v point_n out_o life_n with_o his_o finger_n as_o assure_o we_o need_v not_o to_o seek_v the_o same_o far_o when_o we_o have_v the_o word_n in_o our_o mouth_n &_o in_o our_o hart_n unless_o peradventure_o some_o man_n have_v rather_o take_v it_o by_o hypallage_n the_o word_n of_o this_o life_n for_o these_o word_n which_o i_o do_v not_o reject_v yet_o that_o former_a sense_n i_o think_v be_v better_a for_o it_o be_v a_o new_a revelation_n of_o christ_n wherein_o they_o have_v life_n present_a 21_o and_o when_o the_o chief_a priest_n come_v the_o chief_a priest_n call_v all_o the_o council_n together_o now_o lest_o if_o give_v the_o honour_n to_o his_o own_o sect_n he_o omit_v other_o &_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o burden_n therefore_o he_o be_v enforce_v by_o fear_n to_o call_v the_o multitude_n together_o notwithstanding_o they_o observe_v diligent_o and_o strait_o the_o form_n of_o law_n the_o elder_n be_v call_v who_o do_v govern_v that_o nothing_o may_v be_v do_v but_o according_a to_o the_o sentence_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n who_o will_v not_o have_v hope_v for_o a_o moderate_a end_n see_v they_o begin_v thus_o and_o sure_o they_o pretend_v what_o colour_n they_o can_v lest_o they_o seem_v to_o oppress_v the_o truth_n violent_o and_o tyrannous_o but_o when_o they_o hear_v that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o the_o temple_n howesoever_o they_o know_v that_o they_o come_v not_o out_o by_o deceit_n of_o man_n but_o myraculouslye_o yet_o they_o hold_v on_o still_o in_o their_o purpose_n where_o appear_v together_o with_o the_o ungodliness_n of_o behaviour_n &_o contempt_n of_o god_n horrible_a fury_n &_o want_n of_o reason_n therefore_o the_o beautiful_a colour_n of_o right_a and_o equity_n do_v never_o so_o cover_v hypocrite_n but_o that_o they_o do_v at_o length_n bewray_v their_o wickedness_n they_o must_v needs_o certain_o gather_v by_o all_o circumstance_n that_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o the_o prison_n be_v open_v yet_o they_o do_v not_o doubt_v open_o to_o rage_n against_o god_n these_o thing_n be_v also_o meet_v for_o our_o time_n we_o know_v how_o proud_o the_o papist_n boast_v of_o that_o maxim_n of_o they_o that_o lawful_a counsel_n must_v be_v obey_v because_o they_o represent_v the_o church_n moreover_o they_o call_v those_o lawful_a counsel_n and_o they_o will_v have_v they_o so_o account_v wherein_o nothing_o be_v want_v touch_v the_o external_a form_n and_o such_o a_o council_n be_v this_o whereof_o luke_n speak_v in_o this_o place_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v gather_v to_o put_v out_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n for_o although_o the_o priest_n do_v then_o creep_v in_o unto_o honour_n by_o subtlety_n or_o by_o inordinate_a suit_n to_o win_v the_o favour_n of_o man_n or_o by_o other_o wicked_a policy_n or_o whether_o they_o burst_v in_o unto_o the_o same_o by_o bribery_n or_o murder_n yet_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o priesthood_n do_v continue_v as_o yet_o until_o christ_n be_v reveal_v there_o be_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o elder_n a_o represent_v of_o the_o church_n but_o whereas_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v not_o seek_v all_o outward_a appearance_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mere_a visure_n therefore_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o the_o papist_n to_o cover_v their_o abomination_n with_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o buckler_n because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o those_o to_o be_v gather_v together_o who_o be_v ruler_n of_o the_o church_n unless_o they_o do_v this_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n otherwise_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v a_o usual_a policy_n of_o satan_n to_o transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n we_o will_v grant_v he_o as_o fit_v a_o covert_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o can_v wish_v he_o bring_v they_o without_o violence_n 11.14_o 2._o cor._n 11.14_o we_o have_v speak_v somewhat_o before_o of_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o temple_n for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o jew_n to_o set_v and_o appoint_v who_o they_o will_v to_o rule_v the_o temple_n but_o that_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o province_n do_v appoint_v one_o to_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v bring_v without_o violence_n that_o be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o draw_v violent_o lest_o any_o tumult_n shall_v arise_v so_o that_o whereas_o they_o neither_o fear_v nor_o reverence_n god_n they_o be_v afraid_a of_o man_n the_o apostle_n also_o do_v show_v their_o modesty_n in_o that_o that_o whereas_o they_o be_v guard_v with_o a_o great_a number_n of_o man_n yet_o do_v they_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v lead_v away_o by_o the_o officer_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v author_n of_o any_o tumult_n 27_o and_o when_o they_o have_v bring_v they_o they_o set_v they_o before_o the_o council_n and_o the_o chief_a priest_n ask_v they_o 28_o say_v do_v not_o we_o in_o command_v command_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o teach_v in_o this_o nameâ_n and_o behold_v you_o have_v fill_v jerusalem_n with_o your_o doctrine_n and_o you_o will_v bring_v the_o blood_n of_o this_o man_n upon_o us._n 28_o the_o chief_a
by_o god_n to_o be_v witness_n they_o may_v not_o give_v back_o but_o they_o must_v publish_v that_o which_o he_o have_v command_v and_o also_o the_o spirit_n they_o confirm_v their_o call_n by_o the_o effect_n for_o this_o be_v as_o a_o seal_n to_o approve_v their_o doctrine_n see_v that_o god_n give_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o those_o which_o believe_v for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o appear_v manifest_o by_o this_o that_o he_o allow_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o in_o that_o they_o say_v to_o those_o which_o obey_v he_o i_o refer_v it_o unto_o christ_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v those_o which_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v plentiful_o reward_v for_o their_o obedience_n therefore_o god_n will_v have_v christ_n obey_v wherefore_o even_o our_o ministry_n do_v please_v he_o in_o that_o thing_n yet_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v move_v see_v that_o we_o have_v faith_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n how_o be_v it_o say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o same_o be_v give_v after_o faith_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n of_o pprophecy_n of_o interpretation_n of_o heal_v and_o such_o like_a be_v speak_v of_o in_o this_o place_n wherewith_o god_n do_v beautify_v his_o church_n as_o paul_n say_v where_o he_o ask_v the_o galathians_n whether_o they_o receive_v the_o spirit_n by_o the_o law_n or_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n therefore_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n go_v before_o faith_n because_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o 13.12_o gal._n 3.2_o mat._n 13.12_o but_o there_o follow_v other_o grace_n afterward_o that_o we_o may_v go_v forward_o according_a to_o that_o to_o he_o that_o have_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o if_o we_o will_v be_v enrich_v ever_o now_o &_o then_o with_o new_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n let_v we_o hold_v out_o unto_o god_n the_o lap_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o reward_n wherewith_o our_o want_n of_o faith_n be_v reward_v at_o this_o day_n be_v far_o unlike_a for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v destitute_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v neither_o see_v nor_o understand_v any_o thing_n 33_o they_o be_v cut_v insunder_o the_o priest_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v thorough_o move_v though_o they_o have_v have_v heart_n of_o iron_n but_o they_o burst_v whence_o we_o gather_v that_o no_o reason_n can_v prevail_v with_o the_o reprobate_n to_o bring_v they_o unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n for_o unless_o god_n speak_v within_o the_o outward_a doctrine_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o beat_v the_o ear_n the_o apostle_n be_v able_a so_o to_o overcome_v their_o enemy_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v one_o word_n to_o say_v but_o their_o fury_n be_v so_o untamed_a and_o unbrideled_a that_o they_o do_v rather_o go_v mad_a yet_o we_o must_v therewithal_o note_v the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n because_o although_o the_o reprobate_a be_v not_o thereby_o change_v that_o they_o may_v become_v better_o yet_o it_o pierce_v into_o their_o heart_n so_o that_o it_o urge_v their_o conscience_n for_o thence_o spring_v their_o fury_n because_o they_o see_v themselves_o urge_v by_o their_o judge_n they_o will_v glad_o mock_v all_o the_o gospel_n as_o they_o attempt_v whatsoever_o they_o can_v that_o they_o may_v count_v it_o as_o nothing_o but_o there_o be_v in_o the_o same_o a_o certain_a hide_a majesty_n which_o drive_v away_o mighty_o all_o their_o delicacy_n and_o chief_o when_o they_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n to_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n then_o appear_v their_o madness_n and_o rage_n 34_o and_o a_o certain_a pharisee_fw-mi name_v gamaliel_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n precious_a to_o all_o the_o people_n rise_v in_o the_o council_n command_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v carry_v out_o a_o little_a space_n 35_o then_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o man_n of_o israel_n take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o what_o you_o intend_v to_o do_v touch_v these_o man_n 36_o for_o before_o these_o day_n there_o arise_v one_o theudas_n say_v that_o he_o be_v some_o great_a man_n to_o who_o consent_v a_o number_n of_o man_n about_o four_o hundred_o who_o perish_v &_o they_o be_v all_o scatter_a abroad_o which_o have_v obey_v he_o and_o be_v bring_v to_o nought_o 37_o after_o he_o arise_v one_o judas_n of_o galilee_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o tribute_n and_o lead_v away_o much_o people_n after_o he_o and_o he_o likewise_o perish_v and_o all_o which_o have_v obey_v he_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o 38_o now_o therefore_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o abstain_v from_o these_o man_n and_o let_v they_o alone_o for_o if_o this_o counsel_n or_o this_o work_n be_v of_o man_n it_o shall_v come_v to_o nought_o 39_o but_o if_o it_o be_v of_o god_n you_o can_v destroy_v it_o lest_o at_o any_o time_n you_o be_v find_v to_o fight_v with_o god_n 34_o luke_n show_v now_o after_o what_o manner_n god_n bring_v to_o nought_o that_o fury_n of_o the_o wicked_a they_o be_v purpose_v to_o put_v the_o apostle_n to_o death_n gamaliel_n stand_v up_o amid_o they_o to_o break_v off_o that_o mad_a consultation_n furthermore_o he_o note_v the_o circumstance_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v how_o it_o can_v be_v that_o one_o man_n can_v prevail_v so_o much_o against_o so_o many_o he_o say_v he_o be_v a_o pharisee_n which_o sect_n be_v in_o great_a estimation_n as_o we_o know_v he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o price_n or_o honour_v amongst_o the_o people_n and_o they_o fear_v the_o people_n hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v the_o more_o afraid_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o mind_n so_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o set_v sudden_a terror_n against_o his_o enemy_n when_o they_o look_v not_o for_o they_o to_o stay_v their_o violence_n furthermore_o gamaliel_n command_v the_o apostle_n to_o go_v aside_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o more_o embolden_v by_o his_o word_n for_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o he_o speak_v thus_o because_o he_o do_v allow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o that_o he_o mean_v to_o defend_v the_o same_o but_o because_o he_o see_v all_o the_o rest_n inflame_v with_o fury_n he_o be_v a_o man_n moderate_a and_o courteous_a do_v with_o sober_a speech_n temper_v that_o excess_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v all_o thing_n well_o this_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n be_v unmeete_a for_o a_o wise_a man_n i_o know_v that_o many_o count_v it_o as_o a_o oracle_n but_o it_o appear_v sufficient_o hereby_o that_o they_o judge_v amiss_o because_o by_o this_o mean_n man_n shall_v abstain_v from_o all_o punishment_n neither_o be_v any_o wicked_a fact_n any_o long_a to_o be_v correct_v yea_o all_o help_n of_o life_n be_v to_o be_v refuse_v which_o we_o can_v prolong_v one_o moment_n both_o thing_n be_v true_a that_o no_o endeavour_n of_o man_n can_v destroy_v that_o which_o be_v of_o god_n and_o that_o that_o which_o be_v of_o man_n be_v not_o so_o strong_a that_o it_o can_v stand_v but_o he_o gather_v amiss_o hence_o that_o man_n must_v sit_v still_o and_o say_v nothing_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o must_v rather_o mark_v what_o god_n command_v we_o to_o do_v and_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o restrain_v wickedness_n to_o this_o end_n have_v he_o appoint_v magistrate_n and_o arm_v they_o with_o the_o sword_n to_o this_o end_n have_v he_o set_v elder_n over_o his_o church_n to_o bring_v the_o froward_a in_o order_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o suffer_v sin_n licentious_o to_o rage_n without_o punishment_n therefore_o it_o be_v gather_v amiss_o that_o we_o must_v refrain_v from_o punish_v because_o god_n be_v sufficient_a of_o himself_o to_o take_v away_o evil_n although_o his_o whole_a counsel_n be_v such_o gamaliel_n will_v the_o scribe_n and_o elder_n to_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o make_v not_o open_a war_n against_o god_n and_o he_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v touch_v a_o doubtful_a matter_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v no_o certainty_n from_o the_o foundation_n when_o as_o he_o doubt_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o cause_n neither_o dare_v set_v down_o whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_a but_o do_v only_o command_v to_o defer_v it_o for_o a_o time_n until_o the_o cause_n appear_v more_o plain_o in_o sum_n gamaliel_n fet_v a_o evil_a consequent_a from_o true_a ground_n because_o he_o apply_v that_o amiss_o unto_o the_o external_a office_n and_o manner_n of_o do_v which_o ought_v to_o serve_v for_o faith_n only_o on_o the_o other_o side_n let_v this_o be_v our_o logic_n that_o which_o be_v of_o god_n must_v needs_o stand_v though_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n say_v nay_o therefore_o faith_n must_v stand_v without_o all_o fear_n against_o all_o the_o assault_n of_o
satan_n and_o man_n see_v faith_n be_v underprop_a and_o support_v with_o the_o eternal_a truth_n of_o god_n although_o heaven_n fall_v our_o salvation_n be_v safe_a which_o have_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n and_o keeper_n thereof_o because_o god_n do_v defend_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n it_o can_v never_o be_v overthrow_v with_o any_o violence_n because_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v ground_v in_o god_n howsoever_o man_n resist_v or_o shake_v the_o same_o yet_o shall_v it_o nevertheless_o continue_v firm_a again_o although_o the_o wicked_a attempt_n whatsoever_o they_o can_v and_o seek_v all_o mean_n to_o destroy_v the_o church_n although_o they_o furious_o strive_v against_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n so_o much_o as_o they_o be_v able_a yet_o they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v because_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o god_n to_o bring_v the_o counsel_n of_o man_n to_o naught_o and_o by_o this_o mean_n do_v he_o punish_v their_o rashness_n we_o see_v that_o both_o member_n be_v well_o apply_v to_o faith_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v less_o diligent_a in_o maintain_v the_o truth_n why_o they_o shall_v suffer_v the_o church_n to_o decay_v through_o their_o fault_n why_o they_o shall_v careless_o wink_v at_o their_o wickedness_n who_o endeavour_n to_o turn_v all_o thing_n topsy_n turuie_o 36_o there_o arise_v one_o theudas_n if_o we_o credit_v josephus_n gamaliel_n alter_v in_o this_o place_n the_o true_a course_n of_o the_o history_n for_o he_o report_v that_o judas_n gaulanite_n who_o be_v bear_v in_o gamala_n at_o such_o time_n as_o quirinius_n or_o cyrenius_n be_v proconsul_n do_v raise_v a_o tumult_n with_o his_o adherentes_fw-la because_o they_o will_v not_o have_v their_o good_n tax_v and_o that_o theudas_n at_o such_o time_n as_o cuspius_n fadus_n be_v procuratour_n do_v boast_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n of_o god_n and_o fadus_n be_v send_v into_o judea_n by_o claudius_n caesar_n the_o former_a history_n be_v record_v in_o the_o eighteen_o book_n of_o antiquity_n and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o twentieth_o but_o i_o think_v that_o when_o luke_n say_v after_o he_o be_v there_o one_o judas_n he_o mean_v not_o to_o note_v the_o course_n of_o time_n as_o if_o he_o be_v the_o latter_a but_o forasmuch_o as_o gamaliel_n bring_v in_o two_o like_a example_n he_o may_v put_v the_o one_o in_o place_n of_o the_o other_o without_o have_v respect_n of_o time_n therefore_o the_o word_n post_n be_v as_o much_o as_o moreover_o or_o beside_o furthermore_o even_o these_o example_n wherewith_o gamaliel_n confirm_v his_o opinion_n do_v not_o sufficient_o agree_v with_o the_o present_a cause_n for_o because_o they_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o resist_v judas_n that_o sedition_n which_o he_o have_v raise_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o many_o murder_n and_o at_o length_n he_o be_v vanquish_v with_o hand_n and_o weapon_n theudas_n also_o have_v do_v far_o more_o hurt_v unless_o he_o have_v be_v put_v to_o flight_n in_o time_n by_o cuspius_n fadus_n but_o gamaliel_n have_v respect_n unto_o this_o alone_a that_o man_n have_v unlucky_a success_n when_o as_o they_o avance_v themselves_o unaduised_o and_o that_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n but_o because_o the_o priest_n refuse_v to_o harken_v when_o god_n give_v they_o good_a counsel_n they_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v make_v amaze_v by_o man_n with_o frivolous_a reason_n waver_v hither_o &_o thither_o through_o foolish_a perplexity_n furthermore_o if_o we_o cast_v the_o time_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o be_v twelve_o year_n at_o least_o after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o apostle_n be_v beat_v for_o unto_o the_o five_o year_n which_o remain_v of_o the_o government_n of_o tiberius_n we_o must_v add_v three_o and_o one_o half_a which_o caligula_n reign_v fadus_n be_v not_o send_v by_o claudius_n into_o judea_n before_o the_o second_o or_o third_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n gamaliel_n rehearse_v not_o the_o act_n within_o a_o day_n or_o two_o after_o therefore_o that_o space_n of_o time_n be_v complete_a whereof_o i_o speak_v wherefore_o the_o constancy_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o more_o excellent_a who_o though_o they_o be_v so_o evil_o reward_v for_o those_o long_a pain_n which_o they_o have_v endure_v yet_o be_v they_o not_o discourage_v neither_o do_v they_o cease_v to_o hold_v on_o as_o they_o have_v begin_v that_o he_o be_v some_o great_a man_n some_o book_n have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v some_o body_n yet_o both_o carry_v one_o sense_n for_o he_o boast_v that_o he_o be_v such_o a_o prophet_n that_o he_o can_v dry_v up_o jordan_n that_o those_o which_o be_v with_o he_o may_v go_v over_o dry_a foot_n nevertheless_o we_o see_v how_o far_o gamaliel_n be_v from_o true_a knowledge_n who_o compare_v the_o holy_a minister_n of_o christ_n unto_o seducer_n and_o robber_n although_o he_o mitigate_v his_o word_n afterward_o and_o incline_v toward_o the_o better_a part_n leave_v it_o indifferent_a whether_o they_o have_v take_v this_o matter_n in_o hand_n have_v god_n for_o their_o author_n or_o no_o yet_o he_o speak_v doubtful_o because_o he_o provide_v only_o for_o quietness_n all_o enquiry_n be_v set_v a_o part_n this_o be_v only_o to_o be_v allow_v in_o his_o speech_n that_o he_o fear_v the_o wicked_a from_o wicked_a boldness_n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o to_o be_v fear_v than_o to_o strive_v against_o god_n 40_o and_o they_o obey_v he_o and_o when_o they_o have_v call_v the_o apostle_n have_v beat_v they_o they_o command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o they_o let_v they_o go_v 41_o therefore_o they_o go_v rejoice_v from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o council_n because_o they_o be_v count_v worthy_a to_o suffer_v reproach_n for_o his_o name_n 42_o and_o they_o do_v not_o cease_v daily_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o in_o every_o house_n to_o teach_v and_o preach_v christ_n jesus_n 40_o have_v beat_v they_o they_o command_v he_o say_v that_o gamaliel_n his_o counsel_n be_v allow_v yet_o the_o apostle_n be_v beat_v and_o forbid_v to_o preach_v hereby_o we_o gather_v how_o great_a the_o rage_n of_o the_o enemy_n be_v who_o be_v now_o pacify_v or_o at_o least_o mitigate_v do_v yet_o notwithstanding_o rage_v immoderate_o and_o it_o appear_v also_o what_o evil_a success_n those_o doubtful_a counsel_n have_v wherein_o man_n alone_o be_v respect_v and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n set_v aside_o gamaliel_n obtain_v thus_o much_o that_o the_o life_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v save_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v blaspheme_v &_o slander_v in_o their_o person_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v bury_v in_o eternal_a silence_n so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o enemy_n lie_v god_n sure_o do_v by_o this_o mean_n wonderful_o spread_v abroad_o his_o word_n yet_o that_o counsel_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v evil_a which_o we_o must_v note_v for_o this_o cause_n because_o most_o man_n at_o this_o day_n do_v think_v that_o they_o do_v not_o a_o little_a obey_v god_n if_o they_o save_v the_o life_n of_o those_o man_n which_o come_v in_o hazard_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o somewhat_o appease_v the_o enemy_n who_o be_v otherwise_o bloody_a in_o the_o mean_a season_n they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o drive_v they_o unto_o the_o wicked_a denial_n of_o christ_n the_o confess_v of_o who_o be_v far_o more_o precious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n than_o the_o life_n of_o all_o man_n but_o what_o can_v they_o do_v who_o cast_v away_o all_o care_n of_o godliness_n go_v about_o to_o redeem_v god_n favour_n with_o the_o duty_n of_o courtesy_n 41_o then_o they_o go_v rejoice_v we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o senseless_a but_o that_o they_o feel_v some_o shame_n and_o do_v also_o lament_v when_o they_o feel_v the_o punishment_n for_o they_o have_v not_o quite_o put_v of_o nature_n but_o when_o they_o consider_v the_o cause_n than_o joy_n get_v the_o upper_a hand_n so_o the_o faithful_a must_v be_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n affection_a so_o often_o as_o they_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o the_o gospel_n they_o must_v be_v touch_v with_o the_o bitterness_n of_o punishment_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o overcome_v this_o sorrow_n with_o spiritual_a joy_n for_o they_o shall_v have_v change_v their_o mind_n and_o strike_v sail_n by_o and_o by_o unless_o they_o have_v be_v strengthen_v and_o encourage_v by_o that_o joy_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o even_a death_n be_v sweet_a and_o pleasant_a to_o peter_n on_o this_o fashion_n which_o notwithstanding_o the_o lord_n do_v testify_v shall_v be_v bitter_a unto_o he_o let_v we_o therefore_o learn_v that_o
diverse_a thing_n therefore_o resolve_v these_o word_n thus_o they_o can_v not_o resist_v the_o wisdom_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n give_v he_o for_o luke_n mean_v to_o express_v that_o they_o fight_v not_o on_o both_o side_n as_o man_n but_o that_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v therefore_o discourage_v &_o overcome_v because_o they_o do_v strive_v against_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o stephen_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o christ_n have_v promise_v the_o same_o spirit_n to_o all_o his_o servant_n let_v we_o only_o defend_v the_o truth_n faithful_o and_o let_v we_o crave_v a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n of_o he_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v sufficient_o furnish_v to_o speak_v so_o that_o neither_o the_o wit_n neither_o yet_o the_o babble_n of_o our_o adversary_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o ashamed_a so_o the_o spirit_n be_v as_o effectual_a in_o our_o time_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o martyr_n which_o be_v burn_v and_o it_o utter_v the_o like_a force_n now_o daily_o that_o though_o they_o be_v ignorant_a man_n never_o train_v up_o in_o any_o school_n yet_o do_v they_o make_v the_o chief_a divine_n which_o maintain_v popery_n no_o less_o astonish_v with_o their_o voice_n only_o than_o if_o it_o have_v thunder_v and_o lighten_v 11_o then_o they_o suborn_v man_n which_o say_v we_o have_v hear_v this_o man_n speak_v blasphemous_a word_n against_o moses_n and_o god_n 12_o and_o they_o move_v the_o people_n and_o the_o elder_n and_o the_o scribe_n and_o invade_v he_o they_o take_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o council_n 13_o and_o they_o bring_v forth_o false_a witness_n which_o say_v this_o man_n cease_v not_o to_o speak_v blasphemous_a word_n against_o this_o holy_a place_n and_o the_o law_n 14_o for_o we_o have_v hear_v he_o say_v that_o this_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n shall_v destroy_v this_o place_n and_o shall_v change_v the_o ordinance_n which_o moses_n have_v give_v us._n 15_o and_o when_o all_o which_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n have_v behold_v he_o they_o see_v his_o face_n as_o it_o have_v be_v the_o face_n of_o a_o angel_n 12_o be_v overcome_v with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o give_v over_o dispute_v but_o they_o prepare_v false_a witness_n that_o with_o false_a and_o slanderous_a report_n they_o may_v oppress_v he_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o do_v strive_v with_o a_o evil_a conscience_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o unmeete_a than_o in_o their_o cause_n to_o lean_v unto_o lie_n admit_v he_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n and_o guilty_a yet_o he_o must_v not_o have_v false_a witness_n bear_v against_o he_o but_o hypocrite_n which_o shroud_v themselves_o under_o zeal_n do_v careless_o grant_v themselves_o leave_v to_o do_v that_o we_o see_v how_o the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n corrupt_v manifest_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o witting_o while_o that_o they_o will_v false_o wrest_v testimony_n against_o us._n i_o confess_v in_o deed_n that_o they_o offend_v for_o the_o most_o part_n through_o ignorance_n yet_o can_v we_o find_v none_o of_o they_o which_o do_v not_o grant_v himself_o liberty_n to_o corrupt_v both_o the_o sense_n and_o also_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v our_o doctrine_n into_o contempt_n yea_o they_o slander_v we_o monstrous_o even_o in_o the_o pulpit_n if_o you_o ask_v these_o rabbin_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o slander_v a_o man_n or_o no_o they_o will_v deny_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a general_o but_o when_o they_o come_v unto_o we_o good_a zeal_n do_v excuse_v they_o because_o they_o think_v that_o nothing_o be_v unlawful_a which_o may_v burden_n we_o or_o our_o cause_n therefore_o they_o flatter_v themselves_o in_o lie_v falsehood_n and_o dogged_a impudency_n such_o hypocrisy_n do_v also_o blind_v they_o of_o who_o luke_n speak_v in_o this_o place_n which_o use_v false_a witness_n to_o put_v stephen_n to_o death_n for_o when_o satan_n reign_v he_o do_v not_o only_o prick_v forward_o the_o reprobate_n unto_o cruelty_n but_o also_o blind_a their_o eye_n so_o that_o they_o think_v that_o they_o may_v do_v whatsoever_o they_o will_n we_o be_v especial_o teach_v by_o this_o example_n how_o dangerous_a the_o colour_n of_o good_a zeal_n be_v unless_o it_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o it_o break_v out_o always_o into_o furious_a madness_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n it_o be_v a_o marvelous_a visure_n to_o cover_v all_o manner_n of_o wickedness_n 14_o we_o have_v hear_v it_o shall_v full_o well_o appear_v by_o stephen_n defence_n that_o he_o never_o speak_v any_o thing_n touch_v moses_n or_o the_o temple_n without_o reverence_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o be_v not_o lay_v to_o his_o charge_n for_o nothing_o for_o he_o have_v teach_v the_o abrogate_a of_o the_o law_n but_o they_o be_v false_a witness_n in_o this_o and_o suborn_v to_o lie_v because_o they_o corrupt_v purposely_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v well_o and_o godlilie_o speak_v so_o christ_n be_v enforce_v to_o clear_v himself_o that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o law_n but_o to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n because_o when_o he_o have_v preach_v of_o abrogate_a the_o ceremony_n the_o wicked_a wrest_v this_o unto_o a_o other_o purpose_n as_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o abolish_v and_o take_v away_o the_o whole_a law_n furthermore_o they_o wrest_v that_o wicked_o unto_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o his_o body_n what_o be_v it_o not_o object_v to_o paul_n that_o he_o teach_v that_o evil_a be_v to_o be_v do_v that_o good_a may_v come_v thereof_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v wonder_v at_o this_o day_n that_o that_o be_v so_o false_o misconstrue_v which_o we_o teach_v godly_o well_o and_o profitable_o yea_o we_o must_v rather_o persuade_v ourselves_o thus_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v never_o be_v handle_v so_o wary_o and_o moderate_o but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o false_a accusation_n for_o satan_n who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_v do_v always_o bestir_v himself_o in_o his_o office_n again_o because_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o flesh_n man_n be_v incline_v to_o nothing_o more_o than_o to_o admit_v false_a report_n which_o corrupt_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a sense_n of_o doctrine_n this_o malice_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o sleight_n ought_v to_o make_v we_o more_o wary_a and_o more_o circumspect_a that_o no_o preposterous_a thing_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v unproper_o speak_v escape_v we_o wherewith_o they_o may_v be_v arm_v to_o fight_v against_o us._n for_o we_o must_v careful_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o wicked_a that_o occasion_n whereat_o they_o snatch_v and_o if_o we_o see_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v by_o we_o well_o and_o godly_o deliver_v corrupt_v deform_a and_o tear_v in_o piece_n with_o false_a report_n we_o must_v not_o repent_v that_o we_o have_v begin_v neither_o yet_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v more_o slack_a hereafter_o for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v free_a from_o the_o poison_a and_o venomous_a byting_n of_o satan_n which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o can_v not_o escape_v in_o the_o mean_a season_n it_o be_v our_o part_n and_o duty_n to_o dash_v and_o put_v away_o those_o lie_n wherewith_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v burden_v like_a as_o we_o see_v christ_n free_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o unjust_a infamy_n only_o let_v we_o so_o prepare_v ourselves_o that_o such_o indignity_n and_o unhonest_a deal_n may_v not_o hinder_v we_o in_o our_o course_n because_o we_o teach_v that_o man_n be_v so_o corrupt_a that_o they_o be_v altogether_o slave_n unto_o sin_n and_o wicked_a lust_n the_o enemy_n do_v thereupon_o infer_v this_o false_a accusation_n that_o we_o deny_v that_o man_n sin_v willing_o but_o that_o they_o be_v enforce_v thereunto_o by_o some_o other_o mean_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o fault_n neither_o bear_v any_o blame_n yea_o they_o say_v far_o that_o we_o quench_v altogether_o all_o desire_n to_o do_v well_o because_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o work_n of_o holy_a man_n be_v for_o their_o own_o worthiness_n meritorious_a because_o they_o have_v always_o some_o fault_n or_o imperfection_n in_o they_o they_o cavil_v that_o we_o put_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o good_a and_o the_o evil_a because_o we_o say_v that_o man_n righteousness_n consist_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o that_o godly_a soul_n can_v find_v rest_n no_o where_o else_o save_v only_o in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n they_o object_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o grant_v liberty_n to_o the_o flesh_n to_o do_v what_o so_o ever_o it_o will_v that_o
rom._n 4.11_o he_o gather_v thence_o that_o circumcision_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o righteousness_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o steeven_n frame_v no_o vain_a and_o idle_a narration_n because_o this_o be_v very_o much_o appertinent_a unto_o the_o cause_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v remember_v how_o god_n have_v adopt_v they_o with_o their_o father_n &_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o steven_n do_v plain_o express_v both_o thing_n that_o although_o circumcision_n be_v give_v by_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o sign_n of_o grace_n yet_o be_v the_o adoption_n before_o it_o both_o in_o order_n &_o in_o time_n but_o we_o have_v no_o need_n to_o dispute_v any_o long_o in_o this_o place_n concern_v the_o nature_n and_o force_n of_o circumcision_n only_o let_v we_o note_v this_o that_o god_n do_v first_o promise_v those_o thing_n to_o abraham_n which_o he_o confirm_v afterward_o by_o circumcision_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o sign_n be_v vain_a &_o nothing_o worth_a unless_o the_o word_n go_v before_o let_v we_o also_o note_v that_o there_o be_v a_o profitable_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n covenant_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n make_v his_o covenant_n with_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o he_o may_v declare_v his_o love_n towards_o we_o which_o thing_n if_o it_o be_v true_a first_o they_o be_v not_o only_a work_n of_o external_a profession_n among_o man_n but_o they_o give_v great_a force_n inward_o before_o god_n to_o confirm_v the_o faith_n second_o they_o be_v no_o vain_a figure_n because_o god_n who_o be_v true_a figure_v nothing_o there_o which_o he_o do_v not_o perform_v 9_o and_o the_o patriarch_n move_v with_o envy_n sell_v joseph_n into_o egypt_n notwithstanding_o god_n be_v with_o he_o 10_o and_o he_o deliver_v he_o out_o of_o all_o his_o affliction_n &_o he_o give_v he_o favour_n &_o wisdom_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o pharaoh_n king_n of_o egypt_n who_o make_v he_o ruler_n over_o egypt_n &_o over_o all_o his_o house_n 11_o and_o there_o come_v a_o famine_n upon_o all_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n &_o chanaan_n and_o great_a affliction_n neither_o do_v our_o father_n find_v food_n 12_o and_o when_o jacob_n have_v hard_a that_o there_o be_v corn_n in_o egypt_n he_o send_v our_o father_n thither_o first_o 13_o and_o at_o the_o second_o come_v joseph_n be_v know_v of_o his_o brethren_n and_o the_o kindred_n of_o joseph_n be_v make_v know_v to_o pharaoh_n 14_o then_o joseph_n send_v &_o call_v out_o his_o father_n jacob_n &_o all_o his_o kindred_n lxxv_o soul_n 15_o and_o jacob_n go_v down_o into_o egypt_n and_o he_o die_v and_o our_o father_n 16_o and_o they_o be_v carry_v into_o sichem_n &_o they_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n which_o abraham_n have_v buy_v for_o money_n of_o the_o son_n hemor_n the_o son_n of_o sichem_n 9_o now_o follow_v the_o great_a wickedness_n of_o the_o nation_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o conspire_v together_o to_o oppress_v their_o innocent_a brother_n which_o cruelty_n be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n neither_o can_v the_o jews_n object_n that_o it_o be_v a_o private_a fault_n of_o a_o few_o for_o the_o infamy_n reach_v unto_o all_o the_o people_n for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o the_o patriarch_n benjamin_n except_v have_v pollute_v themselves_o with_o that_o treachery_n therefore_o in_o that_o steeven_n vouchsafe_v to_o give_v they_o a_o honourable_a name_n that_o redound_v to_o the_o great_a reproach_n of_o the_o nation_n they_o boast_v proud_o of_o their_o father_n he_o show_v what_o manner_n person_n the_o chief_a of_o they_o be_v to_o wit_n murderer_n of_o their_o brother_n so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v for_o beside_o that_o slavery_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o death_n we_o know_v what_o they_o go_v about_o at_o the_o first_o &_o second_o what_o cruel_a punishment_n joseph_n suffer_v of_o all_o which_o his_o brethren_n be_v guilty_a hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o god_n be_v bountiful_a and_o merciful_a to_o those_o which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v unwilling_a &_o which_o do_v resist_v he_o for_o he_o who_o be_v about_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o health_n &_o help_n will_v they_o have_v destroy_v wherefore_o they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o renounce_v all_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n so_o he_o will_v declare_v afterward_o that_o moses_n be_v reject_v when_o he_o be_v offer_v of_o god_n to_o be_v a_o redeemer_n therefore_o the_o jew_n have_v small_a cause_n to_o brag_v of_o the_o excellency_n of_o their_o kindred_n but_o this_o alone_a remain_v for_o they_o that_o be_v ashamed_a they_o confess_v that_o whosoever_o they_o be_v they_o have_v the_o same_o through_o the_o mere_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o consider_v that_o the_o law_n be_v give_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o same_o god_n be_v with_o he_o god_n be_v not_o so_o with_o he_o that_o he_o do_v always_o show_v forth_o his_o power_n in_o help_v he_o for_o that_o be_v no_o small_a thing_n which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o psalm_n that_o the_o iron_n go_v through_o his_o soul_n sure_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o be_v in_o great_a heaviness_n 105.18_o psal_n 105.18_o when_o be_v destitute_a of_o all_o help_n he_o suffer_v reproach_n also_o together_o with_o band_n &_o the_o punishment_n of_o a_o ungodly_a and_o wicked_a man_n but_o god_n use_v oftentimes_o to_o be_v present_a with_o he_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o lie_v hide_v for_o a_o time_n and_o the_o end_n be_v a_o evident_a token_n of_o his_o presence_n which_o joseph_n see_v not_o at_o the_o first_o furthermore_o we_o ought_v to_o remember_v this_o ever_o now_o &_o then_o that_o joseph_n be_v not_o deliver_v because_o he_o have_v call_v upon_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n but_o a_o far_o of_o in_o egypt_n 10_o steeven_n add_v the_o mean_n because_o god_n give_v he_o favour_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o pharaoh_n god_n can_v have_v deliver_v he_o by_o some_o other_o mean_n but_o his_o counsel_n have_v respect_n unto_o a_o far_a thing_n that_o joseph_n be_v ruler_n of_o the_o kingdom_n may_v entertain_v his_o father_n &_o all_o his_o family_n in_o these_o two_o word_n favour_n &_o wisdom_n there_o be_v the_o figure_n hipallage_n for_o the_o wisdom_n wherewith_o joseph_n be_v endue_v be_v the_o cause_n that_o he_o find_v favour_n although_o i_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v two_o distinct_a benefit_n for_o though_o joseph_n be_v a_o faithful_a interpreter_n of_o dream_n and_o do_v excel_v in_o divine_a wisdom_n yet_o the_o proud_a tyrant_n will_v never_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o so_o great_a honour_n unless_o god_n have_v bend_v the_o mind_n of_o pharaoh_n unto_o a_o certain_a unwonted_a love_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o order_n whereby_o god_n use_v to_o bring_v he_o into_o favour_n wisdom_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n in_o interpret_n dream_n but_o prudence_n in_o give_v counsel_n for_o moses_n put_v in_o both_o that_o which_o steeven_n report_v of_o one_o man_n in_o this_o place_n be_v extend_v unto_o all_o for_o what_o aptness_n and_o readiness_n soever_o be_v in_o man_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o his_o special_a gift_n and_o it_o be_v he_o that_o give_v good_a success_n as_o it_o please_v he_o that_o his_o gift_n may_v be_v profitable_a to_o that_o end_n for_o which_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o to_o give_v they_o therefore_o although_o joseph_n be_v make_v chief_a ruler_n of_o egypt_n by_o pharaoh_n yet_o be_v he_o lift_v up_o to_o so_o great_a honour_n proper_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n 11_o there_o come_v a_o famine_n hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o deliverance_n of_o joseph_n be_v such_o a_o benefit_n as_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o family_n of_o jacob_n for_o see_v the_o famine_n draw_v on_o joseph_n be_v send_v before_o in_o due_a time_n to_o provide_v sustenance_n to_o feed_v the_o hungry_a as_o he_o himself_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o wonderful_a counsel_n of_o god_n in_o that_o point_n nevertheless_o the_o free_a goodness_n of_o god_n appear_v plain_o in_o the_o person_n of_o joseph_n while_o that_o he_o be_v appoint_v to_o nourish_v and_o feed_v his_o brethren_n who_o have_v sell_v he_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v send_v he_o far_o away_o and_o think_v that_o he_o be_v go_v away_o quite_o out_o of_o the_o world_n he_o put_v meat_n in_o their_o mouth_n who_o have_v throw_v he_o into_o a_o pit_n and_o have_v deprive_v he_o of_o the_o air_n and_o the_o common_a breath_n final_o he_o nourish_v &_o preserve_v their_o life_n who_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o take_v from_o he_o his_o life_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n steeven_n put_v the_o jew_n in_o mind_n of_o this_o that_o the_o patriarch_n be_v enforce_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o that_o land_n which_o be_v give_v
number_n of_o man_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o unlike_a to_o a_o bush_n for_o the_o thick_a the_o bush_n be_v and_o the_o more_o store_n of_o shrub_n it_o have_v the_o more_o subject_a be_v it_o to_o take_v fire_n that_o it_o may_v burn_v on_o every_o side_n so_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v but_o a_o weak_a band_n and_o such_o as_o be_v lay_v open_a to_o all_o injury_n and_o this_o unwarlike_a multitude_n be_v press_v down_o even_o with_o their_o own_o weight_n have_v incense_v the_o cruelty_n of_o pharaoh_n only_o with_o the_o prosperous_a success_n of_o increase_v therefore_o the_o people_n be_v oppress_v with_o cruel_a tyranny_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o pile_n of_o wood_n set_v on_o fire_n at_o every_o corner_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n which_o keep_v it_o from_o be_v consume_v to_o ash_n save_o this_o because_o the_o lord_n sit_v in_o the_o midst_n thereof_o and_o although_o the_o undoubted_a fire_n of_o persecution_n do_v then_o burn_v yet_o because_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v never_o free_a from_o affliction_n in_o the_o world_n the_o continual_a estate_n thereof_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n paint_v out_o in_o this_o place_n for_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v we_o but_o fuel_n for_o fire_n and_o there_o fly_v abroad_o innumerable_a fire_n brand_v of_o satan_n continual_o which_o set_v on_o fire_n both_o our_o body_n and_o also_o our_o mind_n but_o the_o lord_n deliver_v &_o defend_v we_o by_o his_o wonderful_a and_o singular_a goodness_n from_o be_v consume_v therefore_o the_o fire_n must_v needs_o burn_v that_o it_o may_v burn_v we_o in_o this_o life_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n dwell_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o we_o he_o shall_v so_o preserve_v we_o that_o affliction_n shall_v do_v we_o no_o harm_n as_o it_o be_v also_o say_v in_o the_o six_o and_o fourtith_o psalm_n 46.6_o psalm_n 46.6_o 31_o he_o wonder_v at_o the_o vision_n let_v we_o know_v that_o god_n do_v use_v thus_o to_o deal_v with_o our_o father_n that_o they_o may_v assure_o know_v his_o majesty_n for_o he_o mean_v to_o make_v a_o manifest_a distinction_n between_o the_o vision_n which_o he_o show_v and_o the_o juggle_a cast_v of_o satan_n and_o this_o certainty_n be_v more_o necessary_a for_o what_o credit_n shall_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n otherwise_o carry_v wherein_o the_o covenant_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v contain_v therefore_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o a_o love_n be_v the_o true_a stay_n of_o faith_n it_o must_v needs_o have_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o that_o he_o may_v undoubted_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v he_o that_o speak_v again_o forasmuch_o as_o satan_n walk_v about_o continual_o &_o do_v by_o many_o &_o strange_a shift_n insinuate_v himself_o and_o have_v so_o many_o way_n to_o deceive_v and_o especial_o see_v he_o do_v pretend_v the_o name_n of_o god_n crafty_o we_o must_v take_v great_a heed_n of_o his_o mock_n we_o see_v how_o in_o time_n past_a he_o delude_v all_o nation_n and_o the_o papist_n also_o for_o all_o the_o monster_n of_o superstition_n all_o the_o dote_n of_o error_n which_o be_v in_o time_n past_a and_o do_v as_o yet_o reign_v in_o popery_n do_v proceed_v from_o dream_n vision_n and_o false_a revelation_n yea_o furthermore_o even_o the_o anabaptist_n have_v their_o illusion_n thence_o therefore_o this_o be_v the_o only_a remedy_n that_o god_n do_v distinguish_v by_o certain_a mark_n those_o vision_n which_o he_o show_v for_o then_o be_v we_o without_o danger_n of_o err_a when_o he_o have_v reveal_v his_o majesty_n unto_o us._n for_o this_o cause_n be_v the_o mind_n of_o moses_n strike_v with_o admiration_n and_o then_o afterward_o he_o draw_v near_o to_o consider_v after_o that_o he_o be_v come_v near_o the_o lord_n touch_v he_o with_o a_o more_o lively_a feel_n of_o his_o presence_n so_o that_o he_o be_v afraid_a for_o i_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o satan_n can_v imitate_v yet_o false_o like_o a_o ape_n and_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o show_v himself_o by_o such_o sign_n but_o help_v our_o dulness_n he_o do_v also_o open_a our_o eye_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v again_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v imprint_v in_o our_o mind_n certain_a mark_n &_o token_n of_o god_n presence_n that_o there_o may_v no_o doubt_n remain_v 32_o i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n now_o we_o see_v to_o what_o end_n the_o vision_n be_v offer_v to_o moses_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v have_v his_o authority_n for_o bare_a vision_n shall_v do_v but_o a_o little_a good_a unless_o doctrine_n be_v join_v therewithal_o and_o it_o be_v join_v with_o they_o not_o as_o a_o inferior_a part_n but_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o vision_n &_o the_o end_n and_o whereas_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaach_n and_o jacob_n there_o be_v a_o double_a reason_n why_o he_o call_v himself_o so_o as_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n be_v infinite_a if_o we_o will_v comprehend_v it_o it_o do_v rather_o swallow_v up_o our_o sense_n if_o we_o indevor_n to_o ascend_v unto_o it_o we_o vanish_v away_o therefore_o he_o adorn_v himself_o with_o title_n under_o which_o we_o may_v comprehend_v he_o but_o we_o must_v mark_v that_o god_n make_v choice_n of_o such_o title_n as_o that_o he_o may_v by_o they_o call_v we_o back_o unto_o his_o word_n for_o he_o be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaach_n and_o jacob_n for_o this_o cause_n because_o he_o commit_v unto_o they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o world_n but_o god_n have_v respect_v proper_o unto_o the_o present_a circumstance_n when_o he_o speak_v to_o moses_n on_o this_o wise_a for_o both_o this_o vision_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o commandment_n which_o he_o be_v about_o to_o give_v to_o moses_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o covenant_n which_o he_o have_v make_v in_o time_n pass_v with_o the_o father_n so_o that_o the_o suspicion_n of_o novelty_n be_v take_v way_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o moses_n be_v lift_v up_o to_o hope_v for_o redemption_n which_o be_v ground_v in_o the_o old_a promise_n therefore_o this_o title_n be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o god_n have_v say_v i_o which_o have_v promise_v in_o time_n pass_v to_o your_o father_n that_o i_o have_v a_o care_n of_o your_o safety_n which_o have_v take_v the_o kindred_n of_o abraham_n to_o my_o tuition_n by_o a_o free_a covenant_n yea_o which_o have_v appoint_v this_o time_n for_o a_o end_n of_o your_o bondage_n i_o appear_v now_o unto_o thou_o that_o i_o may_v perform_v that_o which_o i_o promise_v like_o as_o at_o this_o day_n all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n must_v lean_v &_o be_v stay_v upon_o this_o foundation_n that_o they_o may_v be_v sure_a and_o certain_a to_o we_o that_o god_n have_v adopt_v we_o in_o christ_n and_o have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n and_o our_o father_n and_o christ_n gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n by_o good_a reason_n that_o the_o godly_a live_v after_o they_o be_v dead_a 22.32_o mat._n 22.32_o for_o if_o the_o whole_a man_n perish_v in_o death_n this_o be_v a_o unfit_a speech_n i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n let_v we_o suppose_v that_o there_o be_v no_o rome_n shall_v not_o he_o be_v laugh_v at_o which_o shall_v call_v himself_o consul_n of_o rome_n for_o this_o be_v requisite_a in_o relation_n that_o the_o member_n be_v answerable_a between_o themselves_o there_o be_v also_o another_o reason_n to_o be_v consider_v that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o god_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n both_o life_n and_o death_n without_o all_o doubt_n he_o preserve_v those_o alive_a who_o father_n he_o will_v be_v and_o who_o he_o count_v his_o child_n therefore_o though_o abraham_n isaach_n and_o jacob_n die_v concern_v the_o flesh_n yet_o do_v they_o live_v in_o spirit_n with_o god_n and_o moses_n be_v afraid_a this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n that_o a_o voice_n full_a of_o consolation_n do_v rather_o terrify_v moses_n than_o make_v he_o glad_a but_o it_o be_v good_a for_o moses_n to_o be_v thus_o terrify_v with_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v frame_v himself_o unto_o the_o great_a reverence_n neither_o do_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n alone_o strike_v his_o mind_n but_o his_o majesty_n whereof_o he_o see_v a_o sign_n in_o the_o burn_a bush_n and_o what_o marvel_v be_v it_o if_o man_n be_v afriade_n when_o he_o fee_v god_n and_o especial_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o man_n mind_n be_v by_o this_o mean_v prepare_v unto_o fear_n &_o reverence_n as_o in_o exod._n xx_o thou_o have_v see_v sign_n 20.22_o exod._n 20.22_o thou_o have_v hear_v the_o sound_n of_o the_o
but_o for_o principality_n wherefore_o god_n do_v so_o use_v the_o service_n of_o moses_n that_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n do_v surpass_v he_o as_o he_o be_v even_o at_o this_o day_n the_o chief_a governor_n in_o accomplish_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o he_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o man_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o force_n and_o effect_n depend_v upon_o he_o alone_o 37_o a_o prophet_n shall_v god_n raise_v up_o stephen_n indevour_v undoubted_o to_o prove_v by_o these_o word_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n although_o he_o do_v not_o express_v the_o same_o in_o plain_a word_n and_o assure_o as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v luke_n recite_v not_o word_n for_o word_n all_o those_o thing_n which_o stephen_n utter_v but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o note_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o matter_n furthermore_o we_o have_v say_v before_o in_o the_o third_o chapter_n that_o this_o testimony_n be_v so_o apply_v to_o christ_n that_o notwithstanding_o it_o agree_v to_o the_o other_o prophet_n also_o for_o after_o that_o moses_n have_v forbid_v the_o people_n to_o be_v carry_v to_o and_o fro_o with_o the_o wicked_a superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n he_o show_v what_o ought_v to_o follow_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n say_v he_o why_o thou_o shall_v desire_v magician_n and_o enchanter_n for_o god_n will_v never_o suffer_v thou_o to_o want_v prophet_n to_o teach_v thou_o faithful_o and_o now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v temporal_a as_o be_v also_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o law_n until_o christ_n shall_v bring_v the_o full_a perfection_n of_o wisdom_n into_o the_o world_n therefore_o steephen_n his_o speech_n tend_v to_o this_o end_n that_o moses_n do_v not_o keep_v the_o people_n fast_o bind_v to_o himself_o alone_o when_o as_o he_o set_v before_o they_o and_o commend_v unto_o they_o another_o teacher_n the_o prophet_n be_v in_o deed_n interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o all_o their_o doctrine_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o addition_n or_o appertenance_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v utter_v by_o moses_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o be_v also_o certain_a that_o christ_n shall_v bring_v a_o more_o perfect_a kind_n of_o doctrine_n because_o he_o shall_v make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o the_o prophecy_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v make_v the_o chief_a and_o that_o the_o principal_a mastershippe_n that_o i_o may_v so_o call_v it_o be_v he_o lest_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v doubtful_a now_o we_o know_v to_o what_o end_n stephen_n intermingle_v moses_n his_o testimony_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o may_v prove_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v no_o less_o contemn_v he_o of_o who_o they_o make_v boast_v with_o open_a mouth_n to_o be_v their_o only_a teacher_n even_o now_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a than_o they_o do_v in_o time_n past_a while_o he_o live_v wicked_o and_o froward_o reject_v he_o for_o whosoever_o believe_v moses_n he_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n 5.46_o john_n 5.46_o who_o messenger_n and_o crier_n he_o be_v fetch_v the_o rest_n out_o of_o the_o third_o chapter_n 38_o this_o be_v he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o congregation_n in_o the_o wilderness_n with_o the_o angel_n which_o mount_n which_o or_o do_v speak_v to_o he_o in_o the_o mount_n have_v speak_v unto_o he_o in_o mount_n sina_n and_o with_o our_o father_n who_o receive_v lively_a oracle_n that_o he_o may_v give_v they_o to_o we_o 39_o who_o our_o father_n will_v not_o obey_v but_o they_o refuse_v he_o and_o they_o turn_v back_o in_o their_o heart_n into_o egypt_n 40_o say_v unto_o aaron_n make_v we_o god_n to_o go_v before_o we_o for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o be_v happen_v to_o this_o moses_n which_o bring_v we_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n 41_o and_o they_o make_v a_o calf_n in_o those_o day_n and_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o idol_n and_o they_o rejoice_v over_o the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o hand_n 38_o stephen_n proceed_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o frowardness_n of_o the_o people_n who_o though_o they_o be_v provoke_v with_o so_o many_o benefit_n of_o god_n yet_o do_v they_o never_o cease_v malicious_o to_o reject_v he_o if_o they_o have_v be_v disobedient_a and_o unthankful_a to_o god_n before_o yet_o this_o so_o wonderful_a a_o deliverance_n ought_v to_o have_v bring_v they_o into_o a_o better_a mind_n but_o he_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v always_o like_o themselves_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o so_o many_o miracle_n shall_v not_o only_o have_v stick_v fast_o in_o their_o mind_n but_o also_o have_v continue_v still_o before_o their_o eye_n but_o have_v forget_v all_o they_o fly_v back_o sudden_o unto_o the_o superstition_n of_o egypt_n the_o memorial_n of_o their_o cruel_a servitude_n be_v yet_o fresh_a which_o they_o have_v escape_v by_o pass_v over_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o yet_o they_o prefer_v those_o tyrant_n by_o who_o they_o be_v more_o than_o cruel_o handle_v before_o their_o deliverer_n this_o be_v therefore_o a_o heap_n of_o ungodliness_n most_o desperate_a that_o their_o stubborness_n can_v not_o be_v break_v or_o overcome_v with_o so_o many_o benefit_n of_o god_n but_o that_o they_o do_v away_o return_v unto_o their_o nature_n this_o do_v great_o augment_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o offence_n where_o steephen_n say_v that_o moses_n be_v then_o with_o they_o in_o the_o wilderness_n for_o beside_o that_o there_o appear_v here_o rare_a goodness_n and_o long_a sufferance_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o bear_v with_o they_o they_o make_v themselves_o to_o be_v without_o all_o excuse_n while_o that_o be_v beset_v on_o every_o side_n with_o so_o many_o strait_n be_v bring_v into_o so_o great_a distress_n have_v moses_n to_o be_v their_o guide_n in_o their_o journey_n and_o the_o faithful_a keeper_n of_o their_o life_n they_o fall_v away_o nevertheless_o treacherous_o from_o god_n final_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v like_o untamed_a beast_n who_o god_n can_v not_o keep_v in_o obedience_n with_o so_o many_o band_n therefore_o in_o as_o much_o as_o moses_n leave_v not_o off_o to_o govern_v they_o even_o through_o the_o wilderness_n under_o the_o conduct_n and_o aid_v of_o the_o angel_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o gather_v by_o this_o circumstance_n of_o time_n how_o incurable_a and_o obstinate_a their_o frowardness_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o monstrous_a rebellion_n not_o to_o be_v humble_v with_o misery_n and_o even_o with_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o death_n where_o as_o he_o say_v that_o moses_n be_v with_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o father_n there_o be_v a_o contrary_a respect_n he_o be_v present_a with_o the_o father_n that_o he_o may_v be_v their_o guide_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v with_o the_o angel_n as_o a_o minister_n where_o upon_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v no_o private_a person_n to_o who_o this_o injury_n be_v do_v but_o it_o be_v do_v to_o the_o governance_n of_o god_n when_o the_o people_n can_v be_v keep_v back_o with_o the_o reverence_n of_o neither_o from_o run_v headlong_o into_o wicked_a rebellion_n we_o have_v already_o speak_v of_o the_o angel_n but_o the_o participle_n lalonutos_fw-la or_o which_o speak_v have_v a_o double_a meaning_n for_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v either_o of_o the_o first_o vision_n whereby_o moses_n be_v call_v to_o redeem_v the_o people_n or_o of_o that_o speech_n which_o god_n have_v with_o moses_n after_o they_o be_v come_v over_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o because_o christ_n declare_v both_o way_n that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o their_o deliverance_n it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n whether_o we_o choose_v yea_o there_o be_v no_o let_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v extend_v unto_o both_o for_o he_o which_o begin_v to_o speak_v to_o moses_n from_o the_o beginning_n that_o he_o may_v send_v he_o into_o egypt_n do_v continue_v the_o tenor_n of_o his_o speech_n afterward_o until_o the_o work_n be_v finish_v which_o receive_v lively_a oracle_n erasmus_n translate_v it_o lively_a speech_n but_o those_o which_o be_v expert_a in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v more_o true_o translate_v the_o word_n of_o stephen_n for_o there_o be_v great_a majesty_n in_o oracle_n then_o in_o speech_n i_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o word_n for_o i_o know_v that_o whatsoever_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n the_o same_o be_v a_o oracle_n moreover_o he_o purchase_v authority_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o moses_n in_o these_o word_n because_o he_o utter_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o proceed_v from_o god_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o rebel_v against_o moses_n as_o against_o god_n whereby_o their_o stubborness_n be_v more_o
forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o look_v up_o steadfast_o into_o heaven_n and_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n 56_o and_o he_o say_v behold_v i_o see_v the_o heaven_n open_a and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o they_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n and_o stop_v their_o ear_n 57_o and_o with_o one_o accord_n they_o run_v upon_o he_o 58_o and_o have_v cast_v he_o out_o of_o the_o city_n they_o stone_v he_o 54_o when_o they_o hear_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o action_n have_v in_o it_o some_o colour_n of_o judgement_n but_o at_o length_n the_o judge_n can_v not_o bridle_v their_o fury_n first_o they_o interrupt_v he_o with_o murmur_v and_o noise_n now_o they_o break_v out_o into_o envious_a and_o deadly_a cry_n lest_o they_o shall_v hear_v any_o one_o word_n afterward_o they_o hale_v the_o holy_a man_n out_o of_o the_o city_n that_o they_o may_v put_v he_o to_o death_n and_o luke_n express_v proper_o what_o force_n satan_n have_v to_o drive_v forward_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o word_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o burst_v asunder_o inward_o he_o note_v that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o angry_a but_o they_o be_v also_o strike_v with_o madness_n which_o fury_n break_v out_o into_o the_o gnash_n of_o the_o tooth_n as_o a_o violent_a fire_n into_o flame_n the_o reprobate_n who_o be_v at_o satan_n his_o commandment_n must_v needs_o be_v thus_o move_v with_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o drive_v hypocrite_n into_o madness_n who_o may_v seem_v before_o to_o be_v modest_a as_o if_o a_o drunken_a man_n which_o be_v desirous_a of_o sleep_n be_v sudden_o awake_v 2.35_o luke_n 2.35_o therefore_o simeon_n assign_v this_o to_o christ_n as_o proper_a to_o he_o to_o diclose_v the_o thought_n of_o many_o heart_n yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n who_o end_n be_v rather_o this_o to_o frame_v man_n mind_n to_o obey_v god_n after_o that_o it_o have_v subdue_v they_o but_o so_o soon_o as_o satan_n have_v possess_v their_o mind_n if_o they_o be_v urge_v their_o ungodliness_n will_v break_v out_o therefore_o this_o be_v a_o accidentarie_a evil_a yet_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o these_o example_n that_o we_o must_v not_o look_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v draw_v all_o man_n unto_o a_o sound_a mind_n which_o doctrine_n be_v very_o requisite_a for_o we_o unto_o constancy_n those_o which_o be_v teacher_n can_v do_v their_o duty_n as_o they_o ought_v but_o they_o must_v set_v themselves_o against_o the_o contemner_n of_o god_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v always_o some_o wicked_a man_n which_o set_v light_n by_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n they_o must_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o have_v recourse_n unto_o this_o vehemency_n of_o steven_n for_o they_o may_v not_o wink_v when_o god_n honour_n be_v take_v from_o he_o and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n thereof_o their_o ungodliness_n shall_v be_v the_o more_o incense_a so_o that_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o pour_v oil_n into_o the_o fire_n as_o they_o say_v but_o whatsoever_o come_v of_o it_o yet_o must_v we_o not_o spare_v the_o wicked_a but_o we_o must_v keep_v they_o down_o mighty_o although_o they_o can_v pour_v out_o all_o the_o fury_n of_o hell_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o those_o which_o will_v flatter_v the_o wicked_a do_v not_o respect_v the_o fruit_n but_o be_v faint_a heart_a through_o fear_n of_o danger_n but_o as_o for_o we_o howsoever_o we_o have_v no_o such_o success_n as_o we_o can_v wish_v let_v we_o know_v that_o courage_n in_o defend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n be_v a_o sweet_a smell_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n 55_o for_n asmuch_o as_o he_o be_v full_a we_o can_v almost_o express_v into_o what_o strait_n the_o servant_n of_o christ_n be_v bring_v when_o he_o see_v himself_o beset_v round_o with_o rage_a enemy_n the_o goodness_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v oppress_v partly_o with_o false_a accusation_n and_o malice_n partly_o with_o violence_n and_o outrageous_a outcry_n he_o be_v inviron_v with_o stern_a countenance_n on_o every_o side_n he_o himself_o be_v hail_v unto_o a_o cruel_a and_o horrible_a kind_n of_o death_n he_o can_v espy_v succour_n and_o ease_v no_o where_o therefore_o be_v thus_o destitute_a of_o man_n help_n he_o turn_v himself_o to_o ward_v god_n we_o must_v first_o note_v this_o that_o steven_n do_v look_v unto_o god_n who_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o life_n and_o death_n turn_v his_o eye_n from_o behold_v the_o world_n when_o he_o be_v bring_v into_o extreme_a despair_n of_o all_o thing_n while_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o death_n before_o his_o eye_n that_o do_v we_o must_v also_o add_v this_o that_o his_o expectation_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a because_o christ_n appear_v to_o he_o by_o and_o by_o although_o luke_n do_v signify_v that_o he_o be_v now_o arm_v with_o such_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o can_v not_o be_v overcome_v so_o that_o nothing_o can_v hinder_v he_o from_o behold_v the_o heaven_n therefore_o steven_n look_v up_o towards_o heaven_n that_o he_o may_v gather_v courage_n by_o behold_v christ_n that_o die_v he_o may_v triumph_n glorious_o have_v overcome_v death_n but_o as_o for_o we_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_v if_o christ_n do_v not_o show_v himself_o to_o we_o because_o we_o be_v so_o set_v &_o tie_v upon_o the_o earth_n hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o our_o heart_n fail_v we_o at_o every_o light_a rumour_n of_o danger_n and_o even_o at_o the_o fall_n of_o a_o leaf_n and_o that_o for_o good_a cause_n for_o where_o be_v our_o strength_n but_o in_o christ_n but_o we_o pass_v over_o the_o heaven_n as_o if_o we_o have_v no_o help_n any_o where_o else_o save_v only_o in_o the_o world_n furthermore_o this_o vice_n can_v be_v redress_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n then_o if_o god_n lift_v we_o up_o by_o his_o spirit_n be_v natural_o set_v upon_o the_o earth_n therefore_o luke_n assign_v this_o cause_n why_o steven_n look_v up_o steadfast_o towards_o heaven_n because_o he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o spirit_n we_o must_v also_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n have_v this_o spirit_n to_o be_v our_o direct_a and_o guide_v so_o often_o as_o we_o be_v oppress_v with_o trouble_n and_o sure_o until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o illuminate_v we_o our_o eye_n be_v not_o so_o quick_a of_o sight_n that_o they_o can_v come_v unto_o heaven_n yea_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v so_o dull_a that_o they_o can_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n he_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n luke_n signify_v as_o i_o have_v say_v that_o christ_n appear_v forthwith_o to_o steven_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n towards_o heaven_n but_o he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o he_o have_v other_o eye_n give_v he_o than_o the_o fleshly_a eye_n see_v that_o with_o the_o same_o he_o fly_v up_o unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n whence_o we_o must_v gather_v a_o general_a comfort_n that_o god_n will_v be_v no_o less_o present_a with_o we_o if_o forsake_v the_o world_n all_o our_o sense_n strive_v to_o come_v to_o he_o not_o that_o he_o appear_v unto_o we_o by_o any_o external_a vision_n as_o he_o do_v to_o steeven_n but_o he_o will_v so_o reveal_v himself_o unto_o we_o within_o that_o we_o may_v in_o deed_n feel_v his_o presence_n and_o this_o manner_n of_o see_v aught_o to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o when_o god_n do_v not_o only_o by_o his_o power_n and_o grace_n declare_v that_o he_o be_v nigh_o at_o hand_n but_o do_v also_o prove_v that_o he_o dwell_v in_o us._n 56_o behold_v i_o see_v the_o heaven_n god_n mean_v not_o only_o private_o to_o provide_v for_o his_o servant_n but_o also_o to_o wring_v and_o torment_v his_o enemy_n as_o steeven_n do_v courageous_o triumph_v over_o they_o when_o he_o affirm_v plain_o that_o he_o see_v a_o miracle_n and_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v move_v how_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v for_o i_o own_o part_n i_o think_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o change_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o heaven_n but_o that_o steeven_n have_v new_a quickness_n of_o sight_n grant_v he_o which_o pierce_v through_o all_o let_v even_o unto_o the_o invisible_a glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o admit_v we_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v some_o division_n or_o part_v make_v in_o heaven_n yet_o man_n eye_n can_v never_o reach_v so_o far_o again_o steeven_n alone_o do_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o that_o spectacle_n be_v not_o only_o hide_v from_o the_o wicked_a who_o stand_v in_o the_o same_o place_n but_o they_o be_v also_o so_o
gospel_n have_v especial_o sythence_o it_o be_v no_o mean_a seduce_v for_o all_o their_o sense_n be_v besot_v and_o beside_o that_o we_o see_v thereby_o how_o mighty_a the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v also_o set_v before_o we_o a_o example_n of_o constancy_n in_o philip_n who_o though_o he_o see_v no_o way_n yet_o do_v he_o set_v hand_n to_o the_o lord_n work_v with_o a_o valiant_a courage_n wait_v for_o the_o success_n which_o god_n shall_v give_v and_o thus_o must_v we_o do_v we_o must_v valiant_o attempt_v whatsoever_o the_o lord_n command_v even_o when_o our_o endeavour_n seem_v to_o be_v vain_a furthermore_o whereas_o satan_n do_v bewitch_v the_o samaritan_n let_v we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o common_a punishment_n of_o infidelity_n all_o man_n be_v not_o bewitch_v in_o deed_n with_o the_o juggling_n of_o enchanter_n neither_o be_v there_o simons_n every_o where_o which_o can_v so_o seduce_v and_o deceive_v but_o my_o meaning_n be_v that_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o satan_n do_v mock_v man_n diverse_o in_o the_o dark_a for_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o all_o error_n whosoever_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n furthermore_o when_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o be_v all_o seduce_a one_o with_o another_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o neither_o wit_n neither_o all_o that_o reason_n and_o wisdom_n which_o we_o have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o avoid_v the_o craftiness_n of_o satan_n withal_o and_o sure_o we_o see_v in_o what_o foolish_a and_o dote_a error_n they_o be_v entangle_v who_o be_v count_v in_o the_o world_n wise_a than_o other_o the_o great_a power_n of_o god_n therefore_o satan_n abuse_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o deceive_v which_o be_v the_o most_o pestilent_a kind_n of_o deceive_v so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o be_v any_o excuse_n it_o have_v be_v say_v before_o that_o simon_n do_v take_v to_o himself_o the_o name_n of_o the_o principal_a power_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v suppress_v and_o surpass_v whatsoever_o be_v elsewhere_o divine_a as_o the_o sun_n darkness_n all_o the_o star_n with_o his_o light_n this_o be_v wicked_a and_o ungodly_a profane_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n but_o we_o read_v of_o nothing_o which_o be_v do_v here_o which_o be_v not_o do_v as_o yet_o daily_o for_o man_n be_v bend_v to_o nothing_o more_o than_o to_o translate_v that_o to_o satan_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n they_o pretend_v religion_n but_o what_o do_v this_o pretence_n help_v the_o samaritan_n therefore_o it_o go_v well_o with_o we_o when_o god_n set_v forth_o to_o we_o his_o power_n in_o christ_n and_o declare_v therewith_o that_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v the_o same_o any_o where_o else_o &_o do_v discover_v the_o sleight_n and_o juggle_a cast_v of_o satan_n which_o we_o must_v avoid_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v keep_v we_o still_o in_o himself_o 12_o when_o they_o have_v believe_v that_o be_v the_o miracle_n whereof_o i_o speak_v because_o they_o hear_v philip_n who_o be_v altogether_o make_v astony_v with_o the_o illusion_n of_o simon_n in_o that_o they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o heavenly_a wisdom_n who_o be_v blockish_a &_o dull_a so_o that_o they_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n bring_v from_o hell_n to_o heaven_n whereas_o baptism_n follow_v faith_n 16.47_o mark_n 16.47_o it_o agree_v with_o christ_n institution_n as_o concern_v stranger_n and_o those_o which_o be_v without_o for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v engraft_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n before_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o sign_n but_o the_o anabaptist_n be_v too_o foolish_a while_o they_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v by_o these_o place_n that_o infant_n be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v man_n and_o woman_n can_v not_o be_v baptize_v without_o make_v confession_n of_o their_o say_v but_o they_o be_v admit_v unto_o baptism_n upon_o this_o condition_n that_o their_o family_n may_v be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n for_o the_o covenant_n go_v thus_o i_o will_v be_v thy_o god_n 17.7_o gen._n 17.7_o and_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o seed_n 13_o simon_n also_o himself_o he_o which_o have_v besot_v the_o whole_a city_n with_o his_o witchery_n receive_v the_o truth_n together_o with_o other_o he_o which_o have_v boast_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o principal_a power_n of_o god_n submit_v himself_o to_o god_n though_o he_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o so_o much_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n alone_o as_o for_o the_o whole_a country_n sake_n that_o that_o offence_n may_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n which_o may_v have_v hinder_v the_o unskilful_a and_o to_o this_o end_n tend_v that_o which_o luke_n set_v down_o afterward_o that_o he_o wonder_v at_o the_o sign_n for_o god_n mean_v to_o triumph_v over_o this_o man_n who_o the_o samaritan_n count_v a_o petit_fw-fr god_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v while_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o give_v glory_n to_o the_o true_a miracle_n after_o that_o his_o vain_a boast_n be_v take_v away_o and_o yet_o he_o give_v not_o himself_o over_o sincere_o to_o christ_n for_o then_o his_o ambition_n and_o that_o wicked_a and_o profane_a account_n which_o he_o make_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o break_v out_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o not_o of_o their_o mind_n who_o think_v that_o he_o make_v only_o a_o semblance_n of_o faith_n see_v he_o do_v not_o believe_v luke_n say_v plain_o that_o he_o believe_v and_o the_o reason_n be_v add_v because_o he_o be_v touch_v with_o wonder_v how_o then_o do_v he_o short_o after_o bewray_v himself_o to_o be_v but_o a_o hypocrite_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v some_o mean_n between_o faith_n and_o mere_a dissimulation_n the_o epicure_n and_o lucianist_n do_v profess_v that_o they_o believe_v where_o as_o notwithstanding_o they_o laugh_v inward_o whereas_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v unto_o they_o a_o vain_a thing_n final_o whereas_o they_o have_v no_o more_o godliness_n than_o dog_n and_o swine_n but_o there_o be_v many_o who_o howsoever_o they_o be_v not_o regenerate_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n &_o do_v not_o addict_v themselves_o unto_o god_n with_o the_o true_a affection_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v overcome_v with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n do_v not_o only_o confess_v that_o that_o be_v true_a which_o be_v teach_v but_o be_v also_o touch_v with_o some_o fear_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o receive_v doctrine_n for_o they_o conceive_v that_o god_n must_v be_v hear_v that_o he_o be_v both_o the_o author_n and_o also_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o they_o make_v no_o semblance_n of_o faith_n before_o man_n which_o be_v none_o but_o they_o think_v that_o they_o believe_v and_o this_o faith_n continue_v only_o for_o a_o time_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v in_o mark_n 8.13_o mark_n 4._o luk._n 8.13_o to_o wit_n when_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o worde_n conceive_v in_o the_o mind_n be_v notwithstanding_o choke_v forthwith_o with_o diverse_a care_n of_o the_o world_n or_o with_o wicked_a affection_n so_o that_o it_o never_o come_v to_o any_o ripeness_n yea_o rather_o it_o grow_v out_o of_o kind_n unto_o unprofitable_a corn_n nothing_o worth_a such_o therefore_o be_v simons_n faith_n he_o perceive_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v true_a and_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o receive_v the_o same_o with_o the_o feel_n of_o his_o conscience_n but_o the_o groundwork_n be_v want_v that_o be_v the_o denial_n of_o himself_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o his_o mind_n be_v enwrap_v in_o dissimulation_n witch_fw-mi he_o utter_v forthwith_o but_o let_v we_o know_v that_o his_o hypocricie_n be_v such_o as_o he_o deceive_v himself_o in_o and_o not_o that_o gross_a hypocrisy_n whereof_o epicure_n and_o such_o like_a make_v boast_v because_o they_o dare_v not_o confess_v the_o contempt_n of_o god_n he_o be_v baptize_v it_o appear_v plain_o by_o this_o example_n of_o simon_n that_o all_o man_n have_v not_o that_o grace_n give_v they_o in_o baptism_n which_o grace_n be_v there_o figure_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v this_o that_o unless_o mortal_a sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o let_v all_o man_n receive_v the_o truth_n and_o effect_n with_o the_o sign_n so_o that_o they_o attribute_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n magical_a force_n as_o if_o they_o do_v profit_n without_o faith_n but_o let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n offer_v to_o we_o by_o the_o sacrament_n whatsoever_o the_o annex_v promise_n do_v sound_o and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o offer_v in_o vain_a so_o that_o be_v direct_v unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n we_o fetch_v from_o he_o whatsoever_o the_o sacrament_n do_v promise_v and_o although_o the_o receive_n of_o baptism_n do_v profit_v he_o nothing_o then_o yet_o if_o conversion_n follow_v afterward_o as_o some_o man_n suppose_v the_o profit_n be_v not_o extinguish_v nor_o abolish_v
leave_v simons_n mind_n in_o a_o perplexity_n but_o that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o prick_v he_o forward_o to_o be_v earnest_n in_o prayer_n for_o the_o very_a difficulty_n do_v not_o a_o little_a serve_v to_o stir_v we_o up_o because_o when_o we_o see_v the_o thing_n at_o hand_n we_o be_v too_o careless_a and_o sluggish_a therefore_o peter_n do_v not_o terrify_v simon_n that_o he_o may_v overthrow_v or_o trouble_v all_o hope_n of_o obtain_v in_o his_o heart_n but_o put_v he_o in_o sure_a hope_n if_o he_o shall_v crave_v pardon_n humble_o and_o from_o his_o heart_n he_o tell_v he_o only_o that_o pardon_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v get_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o offence_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v provoke_v he_o unto_o ferventness_n for_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o we_o be_v lighten_v by_o faith_n when_o we_o go_v unto_o god_n yea_o that_o she_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o prayer_n 23_o in_o the_o gall_n of_o bitterness_n peter_n do_v sharp_o reprove_v simon_n again_o and_o strike_v he_o with_o god_n judgement_n for_o unless_o he_o have_v be_v compel_v to_o descend_v into_o himself_o he_o will_v never_o have_v be_v turn_v in_o good_a earnest_n unto_o god_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o deadly_a for_o man_n which_o be_v blockish_a than_o when_o we_o flatter_v they_o or_o when_o we_o do_v but_o a_o little_a scrape_v the_o skin_n whereas_o they_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v thrust_v through_o therefore_o until_o such_o time_n as_o a_o sinner_n shall_v conceive_v sorrow_n and_o true_a heaviness_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o sin_n we_o must_v use_v such_o severity_n as_o may_v wound_n his_o mind_n otherwise_o the_o rot_a sore_n shall_v be_v nourish_v within_o which_o shall_v by_o little_a and_o little_o consume_v the_o man_n himself_o yet_o let_v we_o always_o observe_v this_o mean_a that_o we_o provide_v for_o man_n salvation_n so_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v moreover_o there_o be_v two_o excellent_a fine_a metaphor_n in_o peter_n word_n the_o one_o whereof_o seem_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o moses_n where_o he_o forbid_v that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o we_o any_o root_n from_o which_o spring_v gall_n and_o wormwood_n deut._n 29._o by_o which_o speech_n be_v note_v the_o inward_a wickedness_n of_o the_o hart_n when_o as_o it_o have_v so_o conceive_v the_o poison_n of_o ungodliness_n that_o be_v therewith_o infect_v it_o can_v bring_v forth_o nothing_o but_o bitterness_n to_o the_o same_o end_n tend_v the_o bind_n of_o iniquity_n to_o wit_n when_o the_o whole_a hart_n be_v keep_v bind_v and_o tie_v by_o satan_n for_o it_o fall_v out_o sometime_o that_o man_n which_o be_v otherwise_o give_v very_o godly_o do_v break_v out_o into_o evil_a work_n who_o have_v not_o their_o heart_n corrupt_v inward_o with_o poison_n we_o know_v that_o hypocrisy_n be_v engender_v in_o man_n nature_n but_o when_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v shine_v we_o be_v not_o so_o blind_v in_o our_o vice_n that_o we_o nourish_v they_o within_o as_o if_o it_o be_v some_o hide_a bundle_n therefore_o peter_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o simon_n fall_v not_o only_o in_o one_o point_n but_o that_o his_o very_a heart_n root_n be_v corrupt_a and_o bitter_a that_o he_o fall_v into_o satan_n snare_n not_o only_o in_o one_o kind_n of_o sin_n but_o that_o all_o his_o sense_n be_v ensnare_v so_o that_o he_o be_v whole_o give_v over_o to_o satan_n and_o be_v become_v the_o bond_n slave_n of_o iniquity_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o greatness_n of_o offence_n be_v esteem_v not_o so_o much_o according_a to_o the_o fact_n which_o appear_v as_o according_a to_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n 24_o simon_n answer_v hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o take_v that_o which_o peter_n have_v threaten_v unto_o he_o but_o that_o he_o do_v consider_v that_o his_o salvation_n be_v seek_v and_o though_o peter_n alone_o speak_v yet_o he_o attribute_v the_o speech_n unto_o all_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o consent_n now_o arise_v a_o question_n what_o we_o ought_v to_o think_v of_o simon_n the_o scripture_n carry_v we_o no_o far_o save_v only_o unto_o a_o conjecture_n whereas_o he_o yield_v when_o he_o be_v reprove_v and_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o his_o sin_n fear_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o that_o do_v fly_v unto_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o commend_v himself_o to_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n these_o be_v assure_o no_o small_a sign_n of_o repentance_n therefore_o we_o may_v conject_v that_o he_o repent_v and_o yet_o the_o old_a writer_n affirm_v with_o one_o consent_n that_o he_o be_v a_o great_a enemy_n to_o peter_n afterward_o &_o that_o he_o dispute_v with_o he_o by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o day_n at_o rome_n the_o disputation_n be_v also_o extant_a in_o write_v under_o the_o name_n of_o clement_n but_o it_o have_v in_o it_o such_o filthy_a dote_n that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o christian_a care_n can_v abide_v to_o hear_v they_o again_o augustine_n write_v to_o jannarius_n say_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a and_o false_a rumour_n spread_v abroad_o in_o rome_n in_o his_o time_n concern_v that_o matter_n wherefore_o nothing_o be_v more_o safe_a than_o bid_v adve_o to_o uncertain_a opinion_n simple_o to_o embrace_v that_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o which_o we_o read_v elsewhere_o of_o simon_n may_v just_o be_v suspect_v for_o many_o cause_n 25_o and_o they_o testify_v in_o these_o word_n luke_n teach_v that_o peter_n and_o john_n come_v not_o only_o that_o they_o may_v enrich_v the_o samaritan_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o also_o that_o they_o may_v establish_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v already_o receive_v by_o approve_v philip_n his_o doctrine_n for_o thus_o much_o do_v the_o word_n testify_v import_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o come_v pass_v by_o their_o testimony_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v full_a and_o perfect_a authority_n and_o that_o the_o truth_n be_v of_o force_n as_o be_v well_o testify_v and_o authentical_a notwithstanding_o luke_n teach_v therewithal_o that_o they_o be_v faithful_a witness_n of_o god_n when_o he_o add_v that_o they_o utter_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o be_v therefore_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n faithful_o to_o utter_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o their_o own_o invention_n or_o the_o invention_n of_o any_o man_n else_o he_o say_v that_o they_o do_v this_o not_o only_o in_o the_o city_n but_o also_o in_o village_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o they_o be_v so_o inflame_v to_o further_a the_o glory_n of_o christ_n that_o whither_o soever_o they_o come_v they_o have_v he_o in_o their_o mouth_n so_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o life_n begin_v to_o be_v sow_v throughout_o the_o whole_a region_n after_o that_o it_o be_v preach_v in_o the_o city_n 26_o and_o a_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o philip_n say_v arise_v and_o go_v towards_o the_o south_n to_o the_o way_n which_o go_v down_o from_o jerusalem_n to_o gaza_n it_o be_v waste_v 27_o and_o when_o he_o arise_v he_o go_v and_o behold_v a_o man_n a_o aethiopian_a a_o eunuch_n a_o man_n of_o great_a authority_n with_o candace_n queen_n of_o aethiopia_n which_o have_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o her_o treasure_n which_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o worship_n 28_o and_o as_o he_o return_v and_o sit_v in_o his_o chariot_n he_o read_v isaias_n the_o prophet_n 29_o and_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o philip_n draw_v near_o and_o be_v thou_o join_v to_o this_o chariot_n 30_o and_o as_o philip_n run_v unto_o it_o he_o hear_v he_o read_v the_o prophet_n i_o say_v and_o he_o say_v understand_v thou_o what_o thou_o read_v 31_o he_o say_v how_o can_v i_o unless_o some_o man_n direct_v i_o and_o he_o request_v philip_n that_o he_o will_v come_v up_o and_o sit_v with_o he_o 26_o and_o the_o angel_n luke_n pass_v over_o unto_o a_o new_a history_n to_o wit_n how_o the_o gospel_n come_v even_o unto_o the_o aethiopian_n for_o though_o he_o report_v there_o be_v but_o one_o man_n convert_v unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n yet_o because_o his_o authority_n and_o power_n be_v great_a in_o all_o the_o realm_n his_o faith_n may_v spread_v abroad_o a_o sweet_a smell_v far_o and_o wide_o for_o we_o know_v that_o the_o gospel_n grow_v of_o small_a beginning_n and_o therein_o appear_v the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n more_o plain_o in_o that_o one_o grain_n of_o seed_n do_v fill_v a_o whole_a country_n in_o a_o small_a space_n philip_n be_v first_o command_v by_o the_o angel_n to_o go_v toward_o the_o south_n the_o angel_n tell_v he_o not_o to_o what_o end_n and_o thus_o
he_o offer_v himself_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o purge_v man_n sin_n that_o he_o be_v punish_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n &_o that_o he_o go_v down_o even_o unto_o the_o very_a hell_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v we_o unto_o heaven_n have_v deliver_v we_o from_o destruction_n in_o sum_n this_o place_n teach_v plain_o how_o man_n be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n how_o they_o obtain_v righteousness_n how_o they_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o satan_n and_o loose_v from_o the_o yoke_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v brief_a whence_o they_o must_v fetch_v all_o part_n of_o their_o salvation_n notwithstanding_o i_o will_v only_o expound_v those_o thing_n which_o luke_n here_o cit_v and_o there_o be_v in_o deed_n two_o member_n in_o the_o former_a he_o teach_v that_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v redeem_v the_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v so_o break_v that_o he_o appear_v like_a to_o a_o man_n which_o be_v cast_v down_o &_o past_a hope_n second_o he_o affirm_v that_o his_o death_n shall_v give_v life_n &_o that_o there_o shall_v a_o singular_a triumph_n issue_n out_o of_o great_a despair_n whereas_o he_o compare_v christ_n to_o a_o lamb_n which_o suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v lead_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o to_o a_o sheep_n which_o offer_v herself_o meek_o to_o be_v shear_v his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v voluntary_a and_o sure_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o appease_v god_n wrath_n in_o that_o he_o show_v himself_o obedient_a he_o speak_v in_o deed_n before_o pilate_n but_o not_o to_o save_v his_o life_n 18.34.36_o john_n 18.34.36_o but_o rather_o that_o he_o may_v willing_o offer_v himself_o to_o die_v as_o he_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o father_n and_o so_o may_v bring_v that_o punishment_n upon_o himself_o which_o be_v prepare_v for_o us._n therefore_o the_o prophet_n teach_v both_o thing_n that_o christ_n must_v needs_o have_v suffer_v that_o he_o may_v purchase_v life_n for_o we_o and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o suffer_v death_n willing_o that_o he_o may_v blot_v out_o the_o stubbornness_n of_o man_n by_o his_o obedience_n and_o hence_o must_v we_o gather_v a_o exhortation_n unto_o godliness_n as_o peter_n do_v but_o that_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o i_o have_v already_o touch_v be_v former_a in_o order_n 33_o in_o his_o humility_n his_o judgement_n the_o eunuch_n have_v either_o the_o greek_a volume_n or_o else_o luke_n do_v set_v down_o the_o read_n which_o be_v then_o use_v as_o he_o use_v to_o do_v the_o prophet_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v exalt_v out_o of_o sorrow_n and_o judgement_n by_o which_o word_n he_o signify_v a_o wonderful_a victory_n which_o immediate_o ensue_v his_o cast_n down_o for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v oppress_v with_o death_n there_o can_v nothing_o have_v be_v hope_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n the_o prophet_n may_v establish_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n after_o that_o he_o have_v describe_v he_o to_o be_v strike_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o be_v slay_v he_o put_v upon_o he_o a_o new_a person_n now_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o death_n as_o a_o conqueror_n &_o our_o of_o the_o very_a hell_n be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a life_n i_o know_v in_o deed_n that_o this_o place_n be_v diverse_o expound_v some_o there_o be_v which_o understande_v by_o this_o that_o he_o be_v carry_v from_o the_o prison_n to_o the_o cross_n other_o some_o there_o be_v who_o think_v that_o to_o be_v take_v away_o do_v signify_v as_o much_o as_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o nought_o and_o indeed_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n lacham_n be_v doubtful_a as_o be_v also_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n airesthai_n but_o he_o which_o shall_v thorough_o weigh_v the_o text_n shall_v agree_v with_o i_o in_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v that_o he_o pass_v now_o from_o that_o doleful_a and_o unseemly_a sight_n which_o he_o have_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n unto_o the_o new_a beginning_n of_o unlooked_a for_o glory_n therefore_o the_o greek_a interpretation_n differ_v not_o much_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o matter_n for_o christ_n judgement_n be_v exalt_v in_o his_o humility_n or_o cast_v down_o because_o at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v cast_v down_o and_o oppress_v the_o father_n maintain_v his_o cause_n after_o this_o sort_n judgement_n shall_v be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n as_o in_o many_o other_o for_o right_a but_o it_o signify_v condemnation_n in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n for_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o after_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bring_v into_o great_a strait_n and_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o a_o condemn_a and_o lose_v man_n he_o shall_v be_v lift_v up_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o father_n therefore_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n be_v that_o christ_n must_v first_o have_v suffer_v death_n before_o the_o father_n shall_v exalt_v he_o unto_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o doctrine_n must_v be_v translate_v unto_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o all_o the_o godly_a aught_o wonderful_o to_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o they_o be_v not_o swallow_v uppe_o of_o death_n but_o when_o god_n appear_v to_o be_v the_o revenger_n of_o he_o he_o do_v not_o only_o restore_v they_o to_o life_n but_o also_o get_v to_o they_o excellent_a triumph_n of_o many_o death_n as_o christ_n do_v triumph_v most_o glorious_o upon_o the_o cross_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n make_v mention_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o collossian_o his_o generation_n after_o that_o the_o prophet_n have_v set_v forth_o the_o victorious_a death_n of_o christ_n he_o add_v now_o that_o his_o victory_n shall_v not_o last_v only_o for_o a_o small_a time_n but_o shall_v go_v beyond_o all_o number_n of_o year_n for_o the_o exclamation_n of_o the_o prophet_n import_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v deny_v that_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n can_v be_v express_v by_o the_o tongue_n of_o man_n but_o interpreter_n have_v wrest_v this_o place_n miserable_o whereas_o the_o old_a writer_n have_v endeavour_v hereby_o to_o prove_v the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n against_o arrius_n it_o be_v too_o far_o dissent_v from_o the_o prophet_n mind_n chrysostome_n his_o exposition_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n true_a who_o refer_v it_o unto_o the_o humane_a generation_n neither_o do_v they_o understand_v the_o prophet_n his_o meaning_n which_o suppose_v that_o he_o inveigh_v against_o the_o man_n of_o that_o age_n othersome_a think_v better_a who_o take_v it_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n save_v only_o that_o they_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o word_n generation_n which_o they_o think_v do_v signify_v a_o posterity_n or_o issue_n but_o the_o word_n dor_n which_o the_o prophet_n use_v signify_v among_o the_o hebrew_n a_o age_n or_o the_o continuance_n of_o man_n life_n therefore_o undoubted_o this_o be_v the_o prophet_n meaning_n that_o christ_n his_o life_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o when_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v once_o deliver_v by_o his_o father_n grace_n from_o death_n although_o this_o life_n which_o be_v without_o end_n appertain_v unto_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o christ_n rise_v not_o that_o he_o may_v live_v for_o himself_o but_o for_o us._n therefore_o he_o extoll_v now_o in_o the_o member_n the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o that_o victory_n which_o he_o place_v in_o the_o head_n wherefore_o every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a may_v conceive_v sure_a hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n out_o of_o this_o place_n second_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v rather_o avouch_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n because_o his_o life_n be_v take_v from_o the_o earth_n this_o be_v to_o look_v too_o to_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a reason_n that_o christ_n do_v reign_v with_o such_o renoun_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n because_o he_o be_v cut_v off_o for_o who_o can_v believe_v that_o death_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o life_n but_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o wonderful_a counsel_n of_o god_n that_o hell_n shall_v be_v a_o ladder_n whereby_o christ_n shall_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o reproach_n shall_v be_v unto_o he_o a_o passage_n into_o life_n that_o the_o joyful_a brightness_n of_o salvation_n shall_v appear_v out_o of_o the_o horror_n and_o darkness_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o bless_a immortality_n shall_v flow_v from_o the_o deep_a pit_n of_o death_n because_o he_o humble_v himself_o therefore_o the_o father_n exalt_v he_o 2.10_o phil._n 2.10_o that_o every_o knee_n may_v bow_v before_o he_o etc._n etc._n now_o must_v we_o bethink_v ourselves_o what_o fellowship_n we_o
that_o skill_v not_o much_o for_o the_o sense_n and_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o apostle_n who_o have_v no_o certain_a place_n of_o abode_n shall_v wander_v hither_o and_o thither_o as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v wherefore_o while_o they_o be_v all_o occupy_v in_o diverse_a part_n peter_n take_v upon_o he_o this_o charge_n whereby_o the_o foolishness_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v refute_v who_o gather_v peter_n his_o primacy_n by_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v to_o visit_v as_o if_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v live_v idle_o at_o jerusalem_n like_o private_a man_n when_o peter_n do_v visit_v the_o church_n again_o admit_v we_o grant_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o chief_a apostle_n which_o thing_n the_o scripture_n show_v oftentimes_o do_v it_o thereupon_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n but_o will_v to_o god_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o will_v be_v count_v peter_n his_o successor_n will_v travel_v as_o he_o do_v to_o animate_v the_o brethren_n and_o will_v every_o where_n prove_v in_o deed_n that_o he_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n now_o he_o which_o out_o of_o his_o throne_n do_v with_o more_o than_o tyrannous_a lordship_n oppress_v all_o the_o church_n pretend_v that_o peter_n do_v visit_v the_o church_n with_o great_a pain_n which_o dwell_v at_o lydda_n lydda_n which_o be_v afterward_o call_v diospolis_n be_v situate_a not_o far_o from_o the_o mediterranean_a sea_n be_v a_o renown_a city_n as_o well_o for_o antiquity_n as_o also_o for_o many_o gift_n joppa_n be_v nigh_o to_o this_o city_n which_o have_v a_o famous_a haven_n though_o very_o full_a of_o rock_n the_o city_n itself_o stand_v upon_o a_o high_a cliff_n whence_o they_o may_v see_v to_o jerusalem_n at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v there_o but_o the_o ruinous_a wall_n of_o the_o old_a city_n save_v only_o that_o the_o haven_n remain_v which_o they_o call_v most_o common_o japhet_n it_o shall_v seem_v that_o luke_n name_v assaron_n as_o some_o town_n or_o city_n hierom_n read_v it_o saron_n and_o think_v that_o thereby_o be_v mean_v the_o whole_a plain_n lie_v between_o cesaria_n and_o joppa_n but_o because_o jerom_o show_v no_o reason_n why_o he_o shall_v change_v the_o read_n which_o be_v common_o use_v i_o admit_v that_o willing_o which_o luke_n his_o text_n show_v i_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v a_o city_n hard_a by_o but_o i_o do_v not_o contend_v about_o this_o matter_n as_o i_o do_v not_o ambitious_o gather_v those_o thing_n which_o may_v serve_v for_o a_o vain_a brag_n because_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o godly_a reader_n to_o know_v those_o thing_n which_o make_v to_o luke_n his_o meaning_n 34_o jesus_n christ_n make_v thou_o whole_a it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o apostle_n will_v never_o have_v attempt_v the_o do_v of_o miracle_n unless_o they_o have_v be_v first_o certify_v of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereupon_o the_o effect_n do_v depend_v for_o they_o have_v no_o such_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n give_v they_o that_o they_o can_v heal_v whatsoever_o sick_a person_n they_o will_v but_o as_o christ_n himself_o use_v a_o measure_n in_o his_o miracle_n so_o he_o will_v have_v his_o apostle_n to_o work_v no_o more_o than_o he_o know_v be_v profitable_a therefore_o peter_n do_v not_o rash_o break_v out_o into_o these_o word_n because_o he_o may_v have_v set_v himself_o to_o be_v laugh_v at_o unless_o he_o have_v already_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n it_o may_v be_v that_o he_o pray_v apart_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o miracle_n and_o which_o wrought_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o peter_n do_v even_o then_o direct_v his_o tongue_n and_o do_v move_v his_o heart_n by_o a_o secret_a inspiration_n and_o in_o these_o word_n peter_n show_v plain_o that_o he_o be_v only_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o miracle_n and_o that_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v by_o this_o mean_n extol_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n alone_o make_v thy_o bed_n these_o circumstance_n do_v amplify_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o miracle_n in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o recover_v strength_n to_o rise_v but_o be_v also_o able_a to_o make_v his_o own_o bed_n who_o can_v move_v no_o member_n before_o to_o the_o same_o end_n tend_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o disease_n for_o a_o palsy_n of_o eight_o year_n continuance_n be_v not_o easy_o cure_v in_o like_a sort_n be_v he_o say_v to_o have_v lay_v in_o his_o bed_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o all_o his_o member_n be_v lame_a for_o it_o be_v a_o little_a bed_n wherein_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o rest_v at_o noon_n whereas_o aeneas_n be_v so_o ready_a to_o make_v trial_n of_o his_o member_n he_o thereby_o declare_v the_o obedience_n of_o his_o faith_n for_o although_o he_o perceive_v the_o strength_n which_o be_v give_v he_o yet_o he_o be_v most_o of_o all_o move_v with_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o word_n to_o rise_v 35_o and_o all_o those_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o miracle_n be_v publish_v abroad_o and_o be_v know_v throughout_o the_o whole_a city_n for_o when_o the_o scripture_n say_v all_o it_o do_v not_o comprehend_v every_o one_o how_o many_o so_o ever_o it_o note_v but_o it_o put_v all_o for_o the_o more_o part_n or_o for_o many_o or_o for_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n therefore_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o whereas_o there_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n of_o godly_a man_n there_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n become_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o this_o clause_n be_v express_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o miracle_n because_o they_o embrace_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n wherefore_o those_o man_n corrupt_a miracle_n whosoever_o they_o be_v which_o look_v only_o upon_o man_n &_o do_v not_o turn_v their_o eye_n towards_o this_o end_n that_o be_v instruct_v concern_v the_o power_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n they_o may_v stick_v only_o to_o he_o therefore_o that_o token_n of_o christ_n divine_a power_n which_o he_o show_v be_v the_o beginning_n of_o turn_v to_o he_o 36_o and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a disciple_n at_o joppa_n call_v thabita_n which_o if_o you_o interpret_v it_o be_v call_v dorcas_n this_o woman_n be_v full_a of_o good_a work_n and_o alm_n which_o she_o do_v 37_o and_o it_o happen_v in_o those_o day_n that_o she_o be_v sick_a and_o die_v and_o when_o they_o have_v wash_v she_o they_o lay_v she_o in_o a_o upper_a parlour_n 38_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o lydda_n be_v near_o to_o joppa_n the_o disciple_n who_o have_v hear_v that_o peter_n be_v there_o send_v two_o man_n to_o he_o request_v he_o that_o he_o will_v come_v to_o they_o 36_o there_o follow_v a_o more_o famous_a token_n of_o christ_n power_n by_o how_o much_o it_o be_v more_o hard_a to_o restore_v life_n to_o a_o dead_a body_n than_o to_o restore_v health_n to_o a_o man_n that_o be_v sick_a but_o luke_n do_v first_o commend_v the_o person_n of_o tabita_n on_o who_o the_o miracle_n be_v show_v and_o that_o with_o a_o double_a title_n to_o wit_n that_o she_o be_v christ_n disciple_n and_o that_o she_o approve_v her_o faith_n with_o good_a work_n and_o alm_n he_o have_v oftentimes_o already_o put_v this_o word_n disciple_n for_o a_o christian_a man_n and_o lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o that_o name_n be_v proper_a to_o man_n only_o he_o attribute_v the_o same_o to_o a_o woman_n and_o this_o title_n teach_v we_o that_o christianity_n can_v be_v without_o doctrine_n &_o that_o that_o form_n of_o learning_n be_v prescribe_v that_o the_o same_o christ_n may_v be_v master_n to_o al._n this_o be_v the_o chief_a praise_n this_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o holy_a life_n this_o be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o virtue_n to_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o way_n to_o live_v and_o the_o true_a life_n the_o fruit_n of_o good_a work_n proceed_v afterward_o from_o faith_n by_o good_a work_n i_o mean_v the_o duty_n of_o love_n wherewith_o our_o neighbour_n be_v holpen_v and_o luke_n place_v the_o chief_a kind_n in_o alm_n the_o commendation_n of_o liberality_n be_v great_a because_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v witness_v it_o contain_v in_o itself_o the_o sum_n of_o a_o godly_a and_o perfect_a life_n now_o we_o see_v what_o title_n thabita_n have_v for_o religion_n towards_o god_n or_o faith_n go_v first_o second_o that_o she_o exercise_v herself_o in_o help_v the_o brethren_n and_o special_o in_o relieve_v the_o poverty_n of_o the_o poor_a for_o by_o we_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o all_o that_o help_v wherewith_o the_o poor_a and_o those_o which_o be_v in_o misery_n be_v holpen_v be_v call_v eleemosyna_fw-la thabita_n be_v rather_o a_o syrian_a word_n than_o a_o
for_o it_o skill_v much_o whether_o man_n mind_n be_v direct_v in_o seek_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n because_o they_o shall_v not_o receive_v one_o drop_n without_o christ_n therefore_o there_o be_v this_o general_a difference_n between_o christ_n &_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o give_v the_o external_a sign_n of_o water_n but_o he_o fulfil_v and_o perform_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o sign_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n the_o reader_n be_v to_o be_v admonish_v of_o this_o thing_n again_o in_o this_o place_n because_o many_o do_v false_o infer_v that_o johns_n baptism_n &_o we_o be_v not_o all_o one_o while_o that_o christ_n challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o spirit_n do_v leave_v nothing_o for_o john_n save_o water_n alone_o but_o if_o any_o man_n trust_v to_o this_o testimony_n do_v make_v baptism_n a_o cold_a spectacle_n and_o void_a of_o all_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o shall_v be_v also_o great_o deceive_v for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n use_v to_o speak_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o because_o christ_n be_v not_o unfaithful_a in_o his_o promise_n he_o do_v not_o suffer_v that_o to_o be_v vain_a which_o he_o do_v institute_v but_o when_o as_o the_o scripture_n do_v attribute_n to_o baptism_n strength_n to_o wash_v &_o regenerate_v it_o ascribe_v all_o this_o to_o christ_n and_o do_v only_o teach_v what_o he_o woork_v by_o his_o spirit_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n and_o the_o visible_a sign_n where_o christ_n be_v thus_o join_v with_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o the_o sign_n 5._o tit._n 3_o 5._o there_o be_v so_o much_o attribute_v to_o the_o sacrament_n as_o be_v needful_a but_o that_o conjunction_n must_v not_o be_v so_o confuse_v but_o that_o man_n mind_n be_v draw_v from_o mortal_a and_o frail_a thing_n and_o thing_n like_v to_o themselves_o and_o from_o the_o element_n of_o the_o world_n they_o must_v learn_v to_o seek_v for_o salvation_n at_o christ_n hand_n &_o to_o look_v unto_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n alone_o because_o he_o miss_v the_o mark_n of_o faith_n whosoever_o turn_v aside_o even_o but_o a_o little_a from_o the_o spirit_n unto_o the_o sign_n &_o he_o be_v a_o sacrilegious_a person_n who_o take_v even_o but_o a_o inch_n of_o christ_n praise_n that_o he_o may_v deck_v man_n therewith_o and_o we_o must_v also_o remember_v that_o christ_n do_v comprehend_v under_o the_o word_n spirit_n not_o only_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n but_o all_o the_o whole_a grace_n of_o our_o renew_v but_o because_o these_o gift_n be_v a_o excellent_a argument_n of_o christ_n his_o power_n this_o sentence_n may_v well_o be_v apply_v unto_o they_o i_o will_v make_v this_o more_o plain_a see_v that_o christ_n do_v bestow_v upon_o the_o apostle_n the_o visible_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o do_v plain_o declare_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o his_o hand_n so_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o do_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v the_o alone_a author_n of_o cleanness_n righteousness_n &_o of_o the_o whole_a regeneration_n and_o peter_n appli_v it_o unto_o his_o purpose_n thus_o that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o christ_n do_v go_v before_o carry_v with_o he_o the_o force_n of_o baptism_n it_o become_v he_o to_o follow_v with_o the_o addition_n that_o be_v the_o outward_a sign_n of_o water_n 17_o who_o be_v i._o now_o do_v we_o see_v to_o what_o end_n peter_n make_v that_o narration_n to_o wit_n than_o he_o may_v declare_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a matter_n therefore_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n consist_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n whether_o meat_n be_v not_o of_o more_o weight_n than_o man_n counsel_n peter_n affirm_v that_o he_o do_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v right_o and_o orderly_o do_v because_o he_o obey_v god_n he_o show_v that_o he_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n neither_o amiss_o neither_o rash_o where_o christ_n bestow_v the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n the_o approbation_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o also_o our_o deed_n must_v be_v bring_v to_o this_o rule_n so_o often_o as_o man_n call_v we_o to_o a_o account_n for_o whosoever_o stay_v himself_o upon_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o have_v defence_n enough_o if_o man_n be_v not_o content_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o he_o shall_v pass_v for_o their_o judgement_n any_o more_o and_o hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o faithful_a minister_n of_o god_n word_n may_v in_o such_o sort_n give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v no_o whit_n impayr_a the_o credit_n and_o certainty_n thereof_o to_o wit_n if_o they_o show_v that_o it_o be_v give_v they_o by_o god_n but_o if_o they_o shall_v deal_v with_o unjust_a man_n who_o will_v not_o be_v enforce_v with_o the_o reverence_n of_o god_n to_o yield_v let_v we_o let_v they_o alone_o with_o their_o obstinacy_n appeal_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o we_o do_v not_o only_o resist_v god_n by_o strive_v against_o he_o but_o also_o by_o linger_v if_o we_o do_v not_o that_o which_o our_o calling_n require_v and_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o it_o for_o peter_n say_v that_o he_o can_v deny_v baptism_n and_o brotherly_a fellowship_n to_o the_o gentile_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o enemy_n to_o god_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v assay_v nothing_o which_o be_v manifest_o contrary_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n but_o he_o which_o do_v not_o receive_v those_o who_o god_n offer_v and_o shut_v the_o gate_n which_o god_n open_v he_o hinder_v the_o work_n of_o god_n so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v as_o we_o say_v at_o this_o day_n that_o those_o man_n make_v war_n against_o god_n who_o be_v set_v against_o the_o baptise_n of_o infant_n because_o they_o most_o cruel_o exclude_v those_o out_o of_o the_o church_n who_o god_n have_v adopt_v into_o the_o church_n and_o they_o deprive_v those_o of_o the_o outward_a sign_n who_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o call_v his_o child_n like_o unto_o this_o be_v that_o kind_n of_o resist_v in_o that_o many_o dissembler_n who_o while_o they_o be_v magistrate_n ought_v to_o assist_v according_a to_o their_o office_n the_o martyr_n of_o christ_n go_v about_o to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n and_o to_o take_v from_o they_o their_o liberty_n for_o because_o they_o hate_v the_o truth_n they_o will_v have_v it_o suppress_v 18_o when_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n they_o be_v quiet_v the_o end_n do_v show_v that_o those_o be_v not_o move_v with_o malice_n which_o do_v contend_v with_o peter_n for_o this_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n of_o godliness_n in_o that_o be_v thorough_o instruct_v touch_v the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o cease_v forthwith_o to_o contend_v by_o which_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o those_o be_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v who_o be_v offend_v through_o unaduised_a zeal_n reprove_v any_o thing_n wrongful_o but_o that_o their_o conscience_n must_v be_v appease_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v trouble_v by_o error_n and_o that_o their_o docilitie_n be_v try_v at_o least_o thus_o far_o forth_o as_o touch_v we_o we_o do_v hereby_o in_o like_a sort_n learn_v whereupon_o our_o judgement_n must_v depend_v namely_o upon_o the_o sole_a &_o simple_a beck_n of_o god_n for_o this_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o he_o that_o his_o will_v be_v to_o we_o the_o certain_a and_o principal_a rule_n of_o truth_n and_o justice_n so_o often_o as_o it_o be_v requisite_a for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o cause_n of_o any_o thing_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o conceal_v the_o same_o from_o we_o but_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v accustom_v our_o faith_n unto_o just_a obedience_n he_o tell_v we_o sometime_o simple_o and_o plain_o that_o this_o or_o that_o thing_n please_v he_o he_o which_o grant_v liberty_n to_o himself_o to_o inquire_v far_o and_o take_v a_o delight_n in_o his_o curiosity_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o throw_v himself_o headlong_o with_o devilish_a boldness_n and_o luke_n do_v not_o only_o declare_v that_o these_o man_n hold_v their_o peace_n but_o that_o they_o give_v glory_n also_o to_o god_n some_o be_v enforce_v by_o shame_n to_o hold_v their_o peace_n who_o notwithstanding_o keep_v in_o that_o in_o their_o mind_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o utter_v that_o be_v rather_o a_o dissemblance_n of_o modesty_n they_o docilitie_n but_o these_o man_n do_v so_o thorough_o submit_v themselves_o to_o god_n that_o they_o be_v not_o afraid_a nor_o ashamed_a to_o recant_v by_o and_o by_o then_o have_v god_n luke_n do_v brief_o declare_v in_o these_o word_n what_o the_o gospel_n contain_v and_o to_o what_o end_v it_o tend_v to_o wit_n
a_o little_a to_o confirm_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o man_n this_o place_n do_v also_o teach_v we_o that_o what_o pain_n soever_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n take_v in_o teach_v it_o shall_v be_v all_o vain_a and_o void_a unless_o god_n bless_v their_o labour_n from_o heaven_n 3._o 1._o cor._n 3._o for_o we_o may_v plant_v and_o water_n as_o paul_n teach_v but_o the_o increase_n come_v from_o god_n alone_o in_o who_o hand_n the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v that_o he_o may_v bend_v and_o frame_v the_o same_o at_o his_o pleasure_n therefore_o as_o often_o as_o we_o be_v to_o entreat_v of_o faith_n let_v we_o always_o remember_v this_o speech_n that_o god_n wrought_v by_o his_o minister_n and_o that_o he_o make_v their_o doctrine_n effectual_a by_o his_o hand_n that_o be_v by_o the_o secret_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o let_v the_o minister_n attempt_v nothing_o trust_v to_o his_o own_o wit_n and_o industry_n but_o let_v he_o commit_v his_o labour_n to_o the_o lord_n upon_o who_o grace_n the_o whole_a success_n depend_v and_o where_o doctrine_n shall_v work_v effectual_o let_v those_o which_o shall_v believe_v thank_v god_n for_o their_o faith_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v that_o which_o luke_n say_v that_o many_o be_v turn_v unto_o god_n by_o faith_n because_o he_o do_v very_o well_o express_v the_o force_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v not_o idle_a and_o cold_a but_o such_o as_o restore_v man_n who_o be_v before_o turn_v away_o from_o god_n unto_o his_o government_n and_o bind_v they_o unto_o his_o righteousness_n 22_o and_o the_o tiding_n if_o this_o report_n have_v be_v bring_v before_o peter_n do_v excuse_v himself_o those_o good_a man_n shall_v have_v be_v reprove_v of_o many_o who_o ministry_n notwithstanding_o god_n have_v seal_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n but_o that_o superstition_n be_v now_o wipe_v away_o out_o of_o their_o mind_n forasmuch_o as_o god_n have_v by_o evident_a sign_n declare_v that_o no_o nation_n ought_v to_o be_v count_v profane_a therefore_o they_o contend_v no_o long_o neither_o do_v they_o count_v it_o a_o point_n of_o rashness_n that_o some_o dare_v preach_v christ_n unto_o the_o gentile_n but_o by_o send_v help_n they_o testify_v that_o they_o allow_v that_o which_o they_o have_v do_v furthermore_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o send_v barnabas_n the_o apostle_n do_v at_o that_o time_n bear_v all_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o frame_v and_o set_v in_o order_n church_n every_o where_o to_o keep_v all_o the_o faithful_a wheresoever_o disperse_v in_o the_o pure_a consent_n of_o faith_n to_o appoint_v minister_n and_o pastor_n wheresoever_o there_o be_v any_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o crafty_a wiliness_n of_o satan_n be_v well_o know_v so_o soon_o as_o he_o see_v a_o gate_n set_v open_a for_o the_o gospel_n he_o indevour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o corrupt_v that_o which_o be_v sincere_a whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o diverse_a heresy_n break_v out_o together_o with_o christ_n doctrine_n therefore_o the_o great_a gift_n every_o church_n have_v the_o more_o careful_a ãâ¦ã_o it_o to_o be_v lest_o satan_n mix_v or_o trouble_v any_o thing_n among_o the_o ig_a ãâ¦ã_o and_o those_o who_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o establish_v in_o the_o right_a faith_n be_v ãâ¦ã_o the_o â¦_o est_fw-la matter_n in_o the_o world_n to_o corrupt_v corn_n in_o the_o blade_n ãâ¦ã_o â¦_o abas_fw-la be_v send_v to_o bring_v they_o far_o forward_o in_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o set_v thing_n in_o some_o certain_a order_n to_o give_v the_o building_n which_o be_v ãâ¦ã_o some_o form_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o lawful_a state_n of_o the_o church_n 23_o when_o he_o ãâ¦ã_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o these_o word_n luke_n teach_v first_o that_o the_o goâpel_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v be_v true_a second_o that_o barnabas_n souâât_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n for_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o see_v the_o grace_n of_o âod_n &_o that_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o go_v forward_o hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o they_o be_v well_o teach_v and_o the_o joy_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o sincere_a godliness_n ambition_n be_v evermore_o envious_a &_o malicious_a so_o that_o we_o see_v many_o seek_v for_o praise_n by_o reprove_v other_o man_n because_o they_o be_v more_o desirous_a of_o their_o own_o glory_n then_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n must_v rejoice_v as_o do_v barnabas_n when_o they_o see_v the_o gospel_n increase_v by_o whosoever_o god_n shall_v make_v his_o name_n know_v and_o assure_o those_o which_o help_v one_o another_o so_o that_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o the_o effect_n which_o spring_v thence_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n will_v never_o envy_v one_o another_o neither_o will_v they_o seek_v to_o carp_v one_o another_o but_o will_v with_o one_o mouth_n and_o mind_n praise_v the_o power_n of_o god_n again_o this_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o luke_n do_v artribute_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v worthy_a praise_n there_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o may_v have_v reckon_v up_o all_o those_o virtue_n which_o may_v make_v for_o the_o commendation_n of_o man_n but_o he_o comprehend_v what_o excellency_n soever_o be_v in_o that_o church_n under_o this_o word_n grace_n last_o we_o must_v note_v barnabas_n his_o exhortation_n we_o have_v already_o say_v that_o barnabas_n do_v subscribe_v to_o the_o former_a doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v embrace_v but_o least_o doctrine_n fall_v away_o it_o be_v most_o requisite_a that_o it_o be_v thorough_o imprint_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o continual_a exhortation_n for_o see_v that_o we_o have_v to_o encounter_v continual_o with_o so_o many_o &_o such_o strong_a adversary_n &_o our_o mind_n be_v so_o slippery_a unless_o every_o man_n arm_v himself_o diligent_o it_o will_v by_o &_o by_o fall_n away_o which_o thing_n infinite_a number_n do_v show_v to_o be_v true_a by_o their_o fall_v away_o whereas_o he_o set_v down_o this_o manner_n of_o perseverance_n that_o they_o continue_v with_o purpose_n of_o heart_n we_o be_v hereby_o teach_v that_o faith_n have_v take_v deep_a root_n then_o when_o it_o have_v a_o place_n in_o the_o heart_n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o scarce_o one_o of_o ten_o of_o those_o who_o profess_v faith_n do_v stand_v unto_o the_o end_n see_v that_o very_o few_o know_v what_o the_o affection_n and_o purpose_n of_o heart_n mean_v 24_o for_o he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n barnabas_n be_v commend_v with_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o we_o must_v know_v that_o there_o be_v respect_n have_v not_o so_o much_o of_o he_o as_o of_o us._n for_o all_o those_o be_v condemn_v of_o ungodliness_n and_o malice_n who_o envy_v other_o man_n labour_n and_o be_v grieve_v when_o they_o see_v the_o same_o have_v good_a success_n also_o we_o must_v note_v the_o epithet_n use_v in_o the_o description_n of_o a_o good_a man_n full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n full_a of_o faith_n for_o after_o that_o he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o upright_o and_o good_a man_n he_o show_v from_o what_o fountain_n this_o goodness_n do_v flow_v that_o abandon_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n he_o do_v with_o all_o his_o heart_n embrace_v godliness_n have_v the_o spirit_n to_o be_v his_o guide_n but_o why_o do_v he_o separate_a faith_n from_o the_o spirit_n who_o gift_n it_o be_v i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o name_v severallie_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o diverse_a thing_n but_o it_o be_v rather_o set_v forth_o as_o a_o principal_a token_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o barnabas_n be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v a_o great_a multitude_n add_v though_o the_o number_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v already_o great_a yet_o luke_n say_v that_o it_o increase_v by_o barnabas_n his_o come_n thus_o do_v the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n go_v forward_o when_o one_o do_v help_v another_o with_o mutual_a consent_n and_o one_o do_v gentle_o allow_v that_o which_o another_o have_v begin_v 25_o and_o barnabas_n go_v to_o tarsus_n to_o seek_v saul_n 26_o and_o when_o he_o have_v find_v he_o he_o bring_v he_o to_o antioch_n and_o it_o happen_v that_o they_o live_v a_o whole_a year_n in_o the_o church_n &_o do_v teach_v a_o great_a multitude_n so_o that_o at_o antioch_n the_o disciple_n be_v first_o call_v christian_n 25_o barnabas_n his_o simplicity_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o now_o the_o second_o time_n that_o whereas_o he_o may_v have_v bear_v the_o chief_a swinge_n at_o antioch_n yet_o go_v he_o into_o cilicia_n that_o he_o may_v fetch_v paul_n thence_o who_o he_o know_v shall_v
they_o we_o see_v what_o filthy_a monster_n of_o superstition_n do_v reign_v among_o the_o most_o witty_a gentile_n and_o such_o as_o be_v furnish_v with_o all_o manner_n learning_n therefore_o there_o be_v neither_o judgement_n not_o wisdom_n save_v only_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o just_a vengeance_n of_o god_n upon_o all_o idolater_n that_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n they_o can_v discern_v nothing_o 1.28_o rom._n 1.28_o though_o it_o may_v be_v that_o sergius_n paulus_n be_v weary_a of_o superstition_n do_v then_o begin_v to_o desire_v a_o more_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o light_v upon_o that_o sorcerer_n which_o if_o we_o receive_v it_o be_v sure_o a_o wonderful_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o he_o suffer_v a_o man_n godly_a affect_v to_o throw_v himself_o headlong_o into_o the_o snare_n of_o satan_n but_o god_n do_v sometime_o so_o exercise_v his_o elect_a that_o he_o cause_v they_o to_o wander_v many_o way_n before_o they_o be_v direct_v into_o the_o right_a way_n 7_o and_o whereas_o sergius_n paulus_n desire_v some_o better_a thing_n than_o that_o which_o he_o have_v learn_v from_o his_o childhood_n be_v unapt_o draw_v a_o side_n unto_o diverse_a superstition_n i_o gather_v hereby_o that_o he_o send_v for_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n to_o teach_v he_o therefore_o he_o have_v conceive_v a_o certain_a reverence_n &_o fear_v of_o god_n though_o he_o know_v he_o not_o as_o yet_o &_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a god_n which_o be_v worship_v in_o judea_n he_o desire_v to_o know_v out_o of_o his_o word_n a_o pure_a and_o certain_a rulâ_n of_o godliness_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o dote_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n he_o stand_v in_o doubt_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o god_n do_v solicit_v his_o mind_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v altogether_o stay_v in_o vanity_n though_o he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v disceive_v for_o a_o time_n by_o a_o wicked_a man_n 8_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o deputy_n from_o the_o faith_n no_o marvel_n if_o the_o seducer_n seek_v to_o put_v away_o the_o light_n whereby_o he_o see_v his_o own_o darkness_n drive_v away_o the_o same_o stour_n have_v we_o at_o this_o day_n with_o a_o number_n of_o brabler_n who_o use_v to_o sell_v their_o smoke_n and_o to_o shut_v by_o all_o shift_n possible_a the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a that_o they_o may_v not_o behold_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n be_v now_o rise_v we_o must_v wrestle_v with_o such_o let_n for_o as_o there_o be_v always_o and_o every_o where_o magician_n present_a which_o procure_v we_o some_o business_n satan_n thrust_v in_o let_n enough_o which_o possess_v our_o mind_n to_o drive_v away_o christ_n which_o the_o flesh_n be_v too_o ready_a to_o receive_v final_o both_o the_o enticement_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o wicked_a affection_n of_o our_o flesh_n be_v as_o many_o charm_n whereby_o satan_n cease_v not_o to_o overthrow_v the_o faith_n 9_o and_o saul_n who_o be_v also_o call_v paul_n luke_n show_v now_o how_o god_n break_v the_o bond_n wherein_o the_o deputy_n be_v bind_v for_o see_v that_o he_o be_v too_o much_o addict_v to_o the_o magician_n he_o can_v not_o embrace_v true_a doctrine_n as_o one_o that_o be_v free_a and_o at_o liberty_n for_o the_o devil_n keep_v those_o mind_n which_o he_o have_v entangle_v in_o his_o slavery_n after_o a_o wonderful_a and_o uncredible_a manner_n that_o they_o can_v see_v even_o the_o most_o plain_a truth_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v once_o vanquish_v paul_n can_v easy_o enter_v in_o unto_o the_o deputy_n and_o mark_v what_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o faith_n be_v overthrow_v when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v resist_v whence_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o faith_n be_v so_o ground_v in_o the_o word_n that_o without_o this_o shore_n it_o faint_v at_o every_o assault_n yea_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o spiritual_a build_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 10_o o_o thou_o full_a of_o all_o deceit_n it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o paul_n be_v thus_o hot_a and_o angry_a for_o he_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o do_v any_o good_a if_o he_o shall_v deal_v after_o some_o moderate_a &_o mild_a sort_n we_o must_v always_o begin_v with_o doctrine_n and_o those_o be_v also_o to_o be_v admonish_v exhort_v and_o prick_v forward_o who_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o appear_v to_o be_v altogether_o obstinate_a neither_o do_v paul_n so_o vehement_o inveigh_v against_o the_o sorcerer_n at_o the_o first_o dash_n but_o when_o he_o see_v he_o malicious_o and_o manifest_o fight_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n he_o handle_v he_o like_o a_o bondslave_n of_o satan_n thus_o must_v we_o deal_v with_o the_o desperate_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o who_o appear_v open_a contumacy_n and_o wicked_a contempt_n of_o god_n especial_o when_o they_o stop_v the_o way_n before_o other_o and_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o paul_n be_v out_o of_o measure_n angry_a luke_n say_v plain_o that_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v his_o guide_n wherefore_o this_o heat_n of_o zeal_n be_v not_o only_o not_o to_o be_v reprehend_v but_o it_o ought_v to_o make_v the_o profane_a contemner_n of_o god_n sore_o afraid_a who_o fear_v not_o to_o rebel_v against_o his_o word_n forasmuch_o as_o this_o judgement_n be_v give_v upon_o they_o all_o not_o by_o mortal_a man_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o paul_n as_o touch_v the_o word_n this_o place_n refute_v their_o error_n who_o think_v that_o paul_n take_v his_o name_n of_o the_o deputy_n as_o if_o he_o have_v set_v up_o some_o token_n of_o victory_n there_o may_v many_o reason_n be_v bring_v and_o those_o strong_a enough_o on_o the_o contrary_a but_o this_o one_o place_n be_v sufficient_a where_o luke_n show_v that_o at_o such_o time_n as_o the_o deputy_n be_v not_o bring_v to_o the_o faith_n he_o have_v two_o name_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o retain_v his_o own_o name_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o we_o know_v that_o this_o be_v a_o usual_a thing_n that_o those_o who_o be_v citizen_n of_o rome_n shall_v borrow_v some_o italian_a name_n luke_n join_v subtlety_n with_o deceit_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o sincerity_n to_o wit_n while_o crafty_a man_n transform_v their_o wit_n hither_o and_o thither_o so_o that_o they_o have_v in_o they_o no_o simplicity_n though_o the_o greek_a word_n which_o luke_n use_v signify_v ready_a boldness_n to_o do_v hurt_v but_o the_o former_a signification_n agree_v better_a by_o the_o son_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v mean_v a_o reprobate_n and_o desperate_a man_n such_o be_v all_o those_o which_o resist_v malicious_o and_o as_o it_o be_v of_o set_a purpose_n that_o which_o be_v just_a and_o right_o therefore_o paul_n add_v that_o he_o be_v a_o great_a enemy_n of_o all_o righteousness_n do_v thou_o not_o cease_v to_o pervert_v he_o call_v all_o that_o mean_n whereby_o the_o lord_n bring_v we_o unto_o himself_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o testify_v that_o this_o be_v plain_a and_o straight_o and_o he_o accuse_v the_o sorcerer_n for_o make_v the_o same_o crooked_a full_a of_o turninge_n and_o doubtful_a with_o his_o bought_n and_o turn_n whence_o may_v be_v gather_v a_o profitable_a doctrine_n that_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v through_o the_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n that_o we_o do_v not_o ready_o with_o straight_a course_n go_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o show_v we_o in_o his_o word_n a_o plain_a way_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o thorny_a wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v good_a heed_n of_o seducer_n which_o trouble_v the_o way_n with_o their_o ditch_n or_o thorn_n or_o else_o make_v the_o same_o hard_a and_o unpleasaunt_a and_o it_o shall_v be_v convenient_a to_o repeat_v here_o that_o which_o i_o touch_v before_o that_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n must_v not_o be_v blame_v if_o they_o do_v sore_o inveigh_v against_o the_o profess_a enemy_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n unless_o we_o will_v accuse_v the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o intemperancy_n neither_o be_o i_o ignorant_a how_o easy_o man_n may_v fall_v in_o this_o point_n for_o which_o cause_n godly_a teacher_n must_v take_v so_o much_o the_o more_o heed_n first_o that_o they_o favour_v not_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n too_o much_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o zeal_n second_o that_o they_o break_v not_o out_o with_o headlong_a and_o unseasonable_a heat_n where_o there_o be_v yet_o place_n for_o moderation_n three_o that_o they_o give_v not_o themselves_o over_o to_o foolish_a and_o uncomely_a rail_n but_o only_o that_o they_o express_v the_o unseemliness_n of_o the_o thing_n by_o
their_o holy_a assembly_n so_o that_o the_o cease_v off_o from_o earthly_a work_n do_v give_v a_o place_n to_o their_o heavenly_a exercise_n so_o even_o at_o this_o day_n we_o must_v use_v holy_a day_n for_o we_o must_v therefore_o omit_v all_o other_o thing_n that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o free_o serve_v god_n 15_o after_o the_o lecture_n of_o the_o law_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o prayer_n and_o yet_o undoubted_o they_o be_v not_o omit_v or_o foreslow_v but_o because_o luke_n do_v intend_v to_o set_v down_o the_o sermon_n make_v there_o by_o paul_n no_o marvel_v if_o he_o reckon_v up_o those_o thing_n only_o which_o do_v belong_v unto_o the_o order_n of_o teach_v and_o this_o be_v a_o notable_a place_n out_o of_o which_o we_o learn_v after_o what_o sort_n they_o handle_v doctrine_n at_o that_o time_n among_o the_o jew_n the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n have_v the_o first_o place_n because_o there_o must_v nothing_o be_v set_v before_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o draw_v out_o of_o that_o fountain_n also_o we_o gather_v by_o this_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o suppress_v among_o a_o few_o but_o that_o both_o one_o and_o other_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o read_n thereof_o afterward_o those_o who_o be_v able_a and_o have_v the_o grace_n to_o teach_v and_o exhort_v have_v the_o second_o place_n as_o interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v read_v notwithstanding_o luke_n show_v last_o of_o all_o that_o every_o one_o be_v not_o suffer_v to_o speak_v lest_o confusion_n shall_v arise_v by_o liberty_n but_o the_o office_n of_o exhort_v be_v commit_v to_o certain_a man_n who_o he_o call_v ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n or_o master_n therefore_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n begin_v not_o forthwith_o to_o speak_v lest_o they_o disturb_v the_o accustom_a order_n with_o too_o much_o haste_n but_o they_o do_v modest_o stay_v till_o they_o have_v liberty_n grant_v they_o to_o speak_v and_o that_o with_o their_o leave_n who_o have_v authority_n by_o public_a consent_n we_o know_v how_o corrupt_a the_o state_n of_o that_o people_n be_v then_o and_o luke_n will_v at_o length_n declare_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n that_o these_o man_n of_o antioch_n be_v too_o stout_a and_o stubborn_a in_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o there_o remain_v this_o goodness_n among_o they_o that_o their_o assembly_n be_v honest_o and_o decent_o govern_v for_o which_o cause_n such_o evil_a favour_a confusion_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o shameful_a which_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n among_o those_o who_o will_v be_v count_v christian_n the_o papist_n do_v in_o deed_n sing_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o church_n with_o shrill_a and_o sound_a voice_n but_o in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n so_o that_o the_o people_n reap_v no_o fruit_n thereby_o there_o be_v seldom_o any_o doctrine_n use_v and_o it_o be_v better_o for_o the_o wicked_a brabler_n even_o then_o to_o hold_v their_o peace_n who_o thrust_v in_o their_o own_o unclean_a invention_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o pollute_v with_o the_o stink_n of_o their_o impiety_n whatsoever_o be_v holy_a if_o there_o be_v in_o you_o this_o speech_n do_v signify_v that_o what_o grace_n soever_o be_v in_o man_n to_o edify_v the_o church_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o although_o the_o word_n in_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n may_v be_v superfluous_a therefore_o i_o stand_v not_o great_o upon_o that_o because_o the_o sense_n may_v be_v plain_a if_o you_o have_v any_o exhortation_n which_o be_v apt_a and_o profitable_a for_o the_o people_n a_o exhortation_n do_v not_o exclude_v doctrine_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o this_o word_n be_v common_o use_v among_o they_o because_o it_o be_v proper_o the_o office_n of_o the_o teacher_n to_o utter_v no_o new_a thing_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n but_o to_o apply_v the_o scripture_n wherein_o be_v comprehend_v the_o whole_a wisdom_n of_o the_o godly_a unto_o the_o present_a use_n of_o the_o people_n thus_o they_o do_v not_o only_o teach_v but_o also_o apply_v the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v else_o where_o unto_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o think_v be_v mean_v by_o the_o word_n exhortation_n 16_o and_o paul_n rise_v and_o when_o he_o have_v give_v a_o token_n of_o silence_n with_o the_o hand_n he_o say_v man_n and_o brethren_n which_o fear_n god_n hear_v 17_o the_o god_n of_o this_o people_n do_v choose_v our_o father_n and_o exalt_v the_o people_n when_o they_o be_v stranger_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n and_o he_o bring_v they_o thence_o with_o a_o high_a arm_n 18_o and_o about_o forty_o year_n he_o suffer_v their_o manner_n in_o the_o wilderness_n 19_o and_o have_v destroy_v seven_o nation_n in_o the_o land_n of_o chanaan_n he_o give_v they_o their_o land_n for_o a_o inheritance_n 20_o after_o these_o thing_n about_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n he_o give_v they_o judge_n until_o samuel_n the_o prophet_n 21_o afterward_o they_o require_v a_o king_n and_o god_n give_v they_o saul_n the_o son_n of_o cis_n a_o man_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n forty_o year_n 22_o and_o when_o he_o have_v take_v he_o away_o he_o raise_v up_o to_o they_o david_n to_o be_v king_n of_o who_o bear_v witness_n he_o say_v i_o have_v find_v david_n the_o son_n of_o jesse_n a_o man_n according_a to_o my_o heart_n who_o shall_v do_v all_o my_o will_n 23_o of_o who_o seed_n god_n according_a to_o promise_v raise_v to_o israel_n the_o saviour_n jesus_n 16_o we_o must_v first_o note_v the_o state_n of_o this_o sermon_n lest_o we_o think_v that_o he_o utter_v word_n in_o vain_a paul_n seem_v in_o deed_n to_o begin_v even_o at_o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n but_o he_o speak_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v most_o convenient_a for_o the_o present_a purpose_n his_o purpose_n be_v to_o bring_v the_o jew_n unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o do_v this_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o declare_v that_o they_o excel_v other_o nation_n in_o this_o one_o thing_n because_o the_o saviour_n be_v promise_v they_o who_o kingdom_n be_v their_o principal_n and_o only_a felicity_n this_o be_v therefore_o paul_n his_o beginning_n that_o whereas_o they_o be_v choose_v in_o time_n past_a to_o be_v the_o peculiar_a people_n of_o god_n whereas_o they_o have_v so_o many_o benefit_n bestow_v upon_o they_o from_o time_n to_o time_n though_o they_o show_v themselves_o most_o unworthy_a this_o do_v depend_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o do_v tend_v to_o that_o end_n that_o god_n may_v govern_v they_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o have_v nothing_o whereof_o they_o may_v boast_v unless_o they_o be_v gather_v under_o their_o head_n yea_o that_o unless_o they_o receive_v he_o when_o he_o be_v offer_v the_o covenant_n of_o life_n which_o god_n have_v make_v with_o their_o father_n shall_v be_v void_a and_o the_o adoption_n shall_v be_v frustrate_a this_o be_v the_o drift_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o sermon_n that_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n covenant_n that_o they_o have_v christ_n for_o their_o captain_n and_o governor_n that_o he_o may_v restore_v all_o thing_n among_o they_o that_o without_o he_o religion_n can_v stand_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v most_o miserable_a without_o he_o thence_o paul_n pass_v unto_o another_o member_n that_o jesus_n who_o he_o preach_v be_v christ_n in_o deed_n through_o who_o salvation_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o people_n also_o he_o declare_v the_o mean_n of_o the_o redemption_n purchase_v by_o he_o furthermore_o he_o intreat_v of_o his_o power_n and_o office_n that_o they_o may_v know_v what_o good_a thing_n they_o ought_v to_o hope_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n the_o conclusion_n contain_v a_o chide_n for_o he_o threaten_v to_o they_o horrible_a judgement_n if_o they_o refuse_v the_o author_n of_o salvation_n who_o offer_v himself_o even_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n who_o earnest_o to_o desire_v the_o law_n and_o prophet_n provoke_v this_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o sum_n now_o let_v we_o discuss_v every_o point_n by_o itself_o man_n and_o brethren_n because_o paul_n know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o bastardlie_a son_n of_o abraham_n or_o such_o as_o be_v grow_v out_o of_o kind_n he_o call_v the_o jew_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v by_o a_o double_a name_n first_o he_o call_v they_o brethren_n have_v respect_n unto_o common_a kindred_n notwithstanding_o he_o show_v therewithal_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v true_a israelite_n if_o they_o fear_v god_n &_o that_o even_o than_o they_o be_v likewise_o true_a hearer_n because_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o wisdom_n in_o
that_o they_o profess_v open_o and_o free_o that_o which_o they_o know_v concern_v christ_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v make_v know_v open_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o proof_n be_v not_o so_o light_a because_o in_o the_o fearful_a power_n of_o the_o enemy_n who_o be_v ready_a and_o bend_v to_o resist_v and_o do_v omit_v nothing_o there_o be_v notwithstanding_o such_o as_o do_v open_o affirm_v that_o christ_n rise_v again_o and_o be_v also_o such_o as_o see_v that_o thing_n with_o their_o eye_n for_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o refutation_n in_o readiness_n the_o scribe_n will_v not_o have_v neglect_v it_o 32_o and_o we_o preach_v to_o you_o glad_a tiding_n that_o the_o promise_v make_v to_o the_o father_n 33_o have_v god_n fulfil_v to_o their_o child_n have_v raise_v up_o jesus_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o second_o psalm_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o 34_o and_o in_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a not_o to_o return_v hereafter_o to_o corruption_n he_o have_v say_v thus_o i_o will_v give_v you_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o david_n 35_o therefore_o he_o say_v also_o in_o another_o place_n thou_o shall_v not_o suffer_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n 36_o david_n in_o deed_n when_o he_o have_v serve_v his_o time_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n he_o fall_v on_o sleep_n and_o be_v lay_v unto_o his_o father_n and_o see_v corruption_n 37_o but_o he_o who_o god_n raise_v see_v no_o corruption_n 32_o we_o preach_v to_o you_o glad_a tiding_n he_o do_v now_o challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o office_n and_o honour_n of_o a_o apostle_n that_o he_o may_v be_v hear_v as_o a_o lawful_a minister_n of_o god_n and_o he_o say_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o ambassage_n enjoin_v he_o be_v that_o that_o be_v reveal_v &_o give_v in_o their_o time_n which_o be_v promise_v in_o time_n past_a and_o in_o few_o word_n do_v he_o comprehend_v many_o &_o great_a matter_n first_o he_o give_v they_o to_o understande_v that_o he_o bring_v in_o nothing_o which_o be_v new_a or_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n but_o that_o he_o do_v reveal_v the_o fulfil_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o themselves_o do_v confess_v and_o be_v persuade_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o god_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o can_v refuse_v that_o which_o he_o offer_v they_o but_o they_o shall_v break_v the_o covenant_n make_v with_o the_o father_n by_o god_n so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o shall_v lie_v second_o he_o commend_v the_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n because_o it_o do_v now_o in_o very_a deed_n appear_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o promise_v in_o time_n pass_v unaduised_o or_o in_o vain_a but_o he_o do_v chief_o extol_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o grace_n give_v at_o length_n in_o christ_n for_o we_o must_v note_v the_o comparison_n between_o they_o and_o the_o father_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o have_v get_v that_o which_o be_v promise_v to_o the_o father_n for_o the_o more_o liberal_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o they_o the_o more_o filthy_a shall_v their_o unthankfulness_n be_v if_o they_o shall_v despice_fw-la or_o loathe_v that_o unestimable_a good_a thing_n for_o what_o else_o be_v this_o but_o to_o cast_v down_o at_o their_o foot_n a_o treasure_n even_o reach_v out_o to_o they_o that_o they_o may_v take_v hold_n thereof_o and_o so_o consequent_o lay_v in_o their_o lap_n the_o hope_n whereof_o be_v reverentlie_o embrace_v by_o the_o father_n when_o it_o be_v show_v they_o a_o far_o off_o and_o which_o they_o do_v foster_v during_o their_o whole_a life_n but_o some_o man_n may_v ask_v this_o question_n concern_v those_o who_o live_v under_o the_o law_n whether_o even_o they_o be_v not_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o promise_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o society_n of_o the_o same_o grace_n among_o we_o which_o do_v not_o hinder_v the_o long_a distance_n but_o this_o be_v paul_n his_o meaning_n that_o their_o faith_n stand_v as_o it_o be_v in_o doubt_n until_o christ_n appear_v in_o who_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_o 1.19.20_o 2._o cor._n 1.19.20_o as_o he_o teach_v 2._o cor._n 1._o therefore_o we_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o same_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a good_a thing_n which_o god_n bestow_v upon_o his_o child_n also_o god_n give_v to_o they_o some_o taste_n of_o his_o love_n in_o this_o life_n as_o we_o taste_v he_o now_o but_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n and_o of_o eternal_a life_n be_v only_o promise_v to_o they_o but_o he_o be_v give_v to_o we_o and_o they_o desire_v he_o as_o be_v far_o off_o we_o enjoy_v he_o be_v present_a 33_o to_o their_o child_n namely_o to_o us._n it_o be_v certain_a that_o paul_n speak_v of_o natural_a child_n who_o have_v their_o beginning_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n which_o we_o must_v therefore_o note_v because_o certain_a brainsick_a man_n draw_v all_o thing_n unto_o allegory_n dream_v that_o there_o be_v no_o respect_n to_o be_v have_v in_o this_o place_n of_o kindred_n but_o only_o of_o faith_n and_o with_o such_o a_o invention_n they_o make_v the_o holy_a covenaunt_n of_o god_n of_o none_o effect_n where_o it_o be_v say_v i_o will_v be_v thy_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o seed_n it_o be_v faith_n say_v they_o alone_a which_o make_v we_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n 17.7_o gen._n 17.7_o but_o i_o say_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o even_o those_o who_o be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v also_o count_v the_o spiritual_a child_n of_o god_n unless_o they_o grow_v out_o of_o kind_n through_o unbelief_n for_o the_o bough_n be_v natural_o holy_a because_o they_o spring_v from_o a_o holy_a root_n 11.16_o rom._n 11.16_o until_o they_o become_v profane_a through_o their_o own_o fault_n and_o assure_o it_o be_v paul_n his_o drift_n to_o allure_v the_o jew_n unto_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o may_v do_v this_o they_o must_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o common_a sort_n by_o some_o privilege_n and_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o thereupon_o which_o these_o knave_n do_v odious_o object_v that_o the_o gtace_n of_o god_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o carnal_a seed_n because_o though_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n come_v by_o inheritance_n to_o the_o posterity_n of_o abraham_n yet_o many_o be_v deprive_v by_o their_o unbelief_n therefore_o faith_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o of_o a_o great_a multitude_n only_o a_o few_o be_v count_v child_n and_o that_o be_v the_o double_a election_n whereof_o i_o speak_v before_o the_o one_o common_a to_o all_o the_o whole_a nation_n alike_o because_o the_o first_o adoption_n of_o god_n contain_v the_o whole_a family_n of_o abraham_n the_o other_o which_o be_v restrain_v unto_o the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o god_n and_o be_v at_o length_n establish_v by_o faith_n that_o it_o may_v be_v confirm_v to_o man_n therefore_o paul_n do_v well_o &_o true_o affirm_v that_o that_o be_v perform_v to_o the_o jew_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o the_o father_n for_o it_o be_v promise_v to_o they_o also_o as_o zacharias_n say_v in_o his_o song_n the_o oath_n which_o he_o swear_v to_o our_o father_n abraham_n that_o he_o will_v give_v himself_o for_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o the_o worthiness_n of_o that_o nation_n do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n may_v also_o spread_v itself_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n because_o the_o first_o beget_v have_v the_o first_o degree_n of_o honour_n so_o that_o he_o do_v notwithstanding_o leave_v the_o second_o place_n to_o his_o brethren_n for_o in_o that_o after_o the_o old_a people_n be_v cast_v off_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n be_v leave_v empty_a for_o stranger_n it_o begin_v to_o be_v a_o new_a occasion_n of_o gather_v the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o &_o if_o that_o people_n have_v stand_v in_o the_o say_v the_o gentile_n have_v be_v join_v into_o the_o common_a society_n of_o honour_n after_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v christ._n the_o word_n raise_v in_o my_o judgement_n reach_v far_a they_o it_o do_v where_o it_o be_v short_o after_o repeat_v for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o christ_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o that_o he_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o light_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v fulfil_v the_o office_n of_o the_o messiah_n as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v every_o where_o that_o king_n and_o prophet_n be_v raise_v up_o for_o the_o word_n anastesai_fw-fr be_v sometime_o take_v in_o this_o sense_n and_o this_o reason_n move_v i_o thus_o to_o
of_o christ_n though_o israel_n be_v not_o gather_v together_o he_o add_v afterward_o by_o way_n of_o exposition_n that_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v restrain_v unto_o one_o people_n only_o because_o his_o light_n shall_v shed_v abroad_o his_o beam_n unto_o the_o far_a part_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o salvation_n it_o seem_v that_o paul_n note_v this_o occasion_n of_o call_v the_o gentile_n namely_o because_o see_v he_o find_v no_o matter_n to_o exercise_v himself_o in_o among_o the_o jew_n he_o give_v himself_o whole_o to_o the_o gentile_n we_o must_v note_v this_o by_o the_o way_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o salvation_n be_v put_v after_o light_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v thou_o the_o true_a god_n etc._n etc._n for_o if_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n alone_o 17.3_o john_n 17.3_o bring_v to_o we_o salvation_n it_o be_v likewise_o the_o only_a resurrection_n from_o destruction_n of_o eternal_a death_n for_o we_o to_o be_v illuminate_v into_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n after_o that_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o darkness_n of_o ignorance_n 48_o and_o when_o the_o gentile_n hear_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o gentile_n joy_n be_v this_o when_o they_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o call_v to_o salvation_n at_o a_o sudden_a as_o if_o this_o have_v not_o be_v decree_v before_o by_o god_n but_o that_o that_o be_v now_o at_o length_n fulfil_v which_o be_v foretell_v many_o year_n before_o for_o doubtless_o it_o be_v no_o small_a confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n because_o salvation_n be_v promise_v to_o they_o by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n whereby_o it_o do_v also_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o do_v with_o more_o earnest_a desire_n &_o reverence_n embrace_v the_o gospel_n to_o glorify_v the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v be_v expound_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n either_o that_o they_o do_v confess_v that_o it_o be_v true_a which_o be_v prophesy_v by_o isaias_n or_o that_o they_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v set_v before_o they_o with_o faith_n assure_o there_o be_v a_o full_a subscription_n note_v our_o because_o they_o dispute_v or_o doubt_v no_o long_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o see_v that_o paul_n have_v get_v the_o victory_n and_o sure_o we_o do_v then_o honour_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o we_o ought_v when_o we_o submit_v ourselves_o obedientlie_o to_o it_o by_o faith_n as_o it_o can_v be_v more_o grievous_o blaspheme_v then_o when_o man_n refuse_v to_o believe_v it_o and_o here_o we_o see_v how_o the_o gentile_n be_v not_o hinder_v by_o that_o stubbernesse_n which_o they_o see_v in_o the_o jew_n from_o give_v their_o name_n to_o christ_n with_o like_a courage_n must_v we_o despise_v and_o tread_v underfoot_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o wicked_a when_o by_o their_o obstinacy_n they_o study_v to_o stop_v the_o way_n before_o us._n and_o they_o beleve_v this_o be_v a_o exposition_n of_o the_o member_n next_o go_v before_o at_o least_o in_o my_o judgement_n for_o luke_n show_v what_o manner_n glory_n they_o give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o here_o we_o must_v note_v the_o restraint_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o beleve_v but_o not_o all_o in_o general_n but_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v unto_o life_n and_o we_o need_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o luk_n call_v those_o tetagmenous_a who_o be_v choose_v by_o the_o free_a adoption_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a cavil_v to_o refer_v this_o unto_o the_o affection_n of_o those_o which_o beleve_v as_o if_o those_o receive_v the_o gospel_n who_o mind_n be_v well_o dispose_v for_o this_o ordain_v must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n alone_o neither_o do_v luke_n say_v that_o they_o be_v ordain_v unto_o faith_n but_o unto_o life_n because_o the_o lord_n do_v predestine_v his_o unto_o the_o inheritance_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o this_o place_n reach_v that_o faith_n depend_v upon_o god_n election_n and_o assure_o see_v that_o all_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n be_v blind_a and_o stubborn_a those_o disease_n stick_v fast_o in_o our_o nature_n until_o they_o be_v redress_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o redress_v flow_v from_o the_o fountain_n of_o election_n alone_o for_o in_o that_o of_o two_o which_o hear_v the_o same_o doctrine_n together_o the_o one_o show_v himself_o apt_a to_o be_v teach_v the_o other_o continue_v in_o his_o obstinacy_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o because_o they_o differ_v by_o nature_n but_o because_o god_n do_v lighten_v the_o former_a and_o do_v not_o vouchsafe_v the_o other_o the_o like_a grace_n we_o be_v in_o deed_n make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n as_o faith_n as_o touch_v we_o be_v the_o gate_n and_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o salvation_n but_o there_o be_v a_o high_a respect_n of_o god_n for_o he_o do_v not_o begin_v to_o choose_v we_o after_o that_o we_o believe_v but_o he_o seal_v his_o adoption_n which_o be_v hide_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n that_o it_o may_v be_v manifest_a and_o sure_a for_o if_o this_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n alone_o to_o be_v his_o disciple_n it_o follow_v that_o it_o do_v not_o apperrein_a unto_o all_o the_o child_n of_o adam_n in_o general_n no_o marvel_v therefore_o if_o all_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o gospel_n because_o though_o our_o heavenly_a father_n invit_v all_o man_n unto_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o external_a voice_n of_o man_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o call_v effectual_o by_o his_o spirit_n any_o save_o those_o who_o he_o have_v determine_v to_o save_v now_o if_o god_n election_n whereby_o he_o ordein_v we_o unto_o life_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n there_o remain_v nothing_o for_o worthiness_n or_o merit_n therefore_o let_v we_o hold_v and_o mark_v that_o which_o luke_n say_v that_o those_o be_v ordain_v before_o unto_o life_n who_o be_v ingraft_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n do_v receive_v the_o earnest_n and_o pledge_n of_o their_o adoption_n in_o christ_n whence_o we_o do_v also_o gather_v what_o force_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v of_o itself_o for_o it_o do_v not_o find_v faith_n in_o man_n save_v only_o because_o god_n do_v call_v those_o inwardlie_a who_o he_o have_v choose_v and_o because_o he_o draw_v those_o who_o be_v his_o own_o before_o unto_o christ_n 6.37_o john_n 6.25_o john_n 6.37_o also_o luke_n teach_v in_o the_o same_o word_n that_o it_o can_v be_v that_o any_o of_o the_o elect_a shall_v perish_v for_o he_o say_v not_o that_o one_o or_o a_o few_o of_o the_o elect_a do_v believe_v but_o so_o many_o as_o be_v elect_v for_o though_o god_n election_n be_v unknowen_a to_o we_o until_o we_o perceive_v it_o by_o faith_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o doubtful_a or_o in_o suspense_n in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n because_o he_o commend_v all_o those_o who_o he_o count_v he_o to_o the_o safeguard_n and_o tuition_n of_o his_o son_n who_o will_v continue_v a_o faithful_a keeper_n even_o unto_o the_o end_n both_o member_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v when_o election_n be_v place_v above_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o man_n shall_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o any_o thing_n in_o any_o part_n of_o their_o salvation_n for_o if_o faith_n wherein_o consist_v salvation_n which_o be_v unto_o we_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o free_a adoption_n of_o god_n which_o couple_v we_o to_o christ_n and_o make_v his_o life_n we_o whereby_o we_o possess_v god_n with_o his_o righteousness_n &_o final_o whereby_o we_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o sanctification_n be_v ground_v without_o we_o in_o the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n what_o good_a thing_n so_o ever_o we_o have_v we_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o do_v prevent_v we_o of_o it_o own_o accord_n again_o because_o many_o entangle_v themselves_o in_o doubtful_a and_o thorny_a imagination_n while_o that_o they_o seek_v for_o their_o salvation_n in_o the_o hide_a counsel_n of_o god_n let_v we_o learn_v that_o the_o election_n of_o god_n be_v therefore_o approve_a by_o faith_n that_o our_o mind_n may_v be_v turn_v unto_o christ_n as_o unto_o the_o pledge_n of_o election_n &_o that_o they_o may_v seek_v no_o other_o certainty_n 3â_n john_n 3_o 3â_n save_o that_o which_o be_v reveal_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n i_o say_v let_v this_o seal_n suffice_v we_o that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n have_v eternal_a life_n 49_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v spread_v abroad_o luke_n do_v in_o this_o place_n declare_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o gospel_n wherein_o appear_v how_o true_a the_o parable_n of_o christ_n be_v when_o he_o say_v
in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v refer_v unto_o another_o end_n they_o commit_v themselves_o to_o the_o lord_n we_o gather_v hereby_o first_o what_o great_a care_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n have_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o who_o by_o their_o industry_n be_v turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o testify_v that_o in_o this_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n man_n be_v subject_a to_o more_o danger_n then_o that_o their_o faith_n can_v continue_v steadfast_a through_o his_o own_o strength_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o only_a refuge_n and_o aid_n if_o the_o lord_n keep_v they_o continual_o who_o he_o have_v once_o receive_v and_o when_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o be_v commend_v to_o god_n in_o who_o they_o believe_v there_o come_v no_o small_a confidence_n hence_o unto_o we_o because_o he_o assign_v this_o office_n to_o god_n as_o proper_a to_o he_o to_o save_v and_o defend_v all_o those_o who_o by_o true_a faith_n have_v embrace_v his_o word_n 24_o pass_v through_o pisidia_n we_o have_v already_o say_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n come_v to_o antioch_n of_o pisidia_n be_v now_o about_o to_o return_v to_o antioch_n of_o syria_n whence_o they_o be_v send_v away_o they_o go_v through_o pamphilia_n which_o be_v the_o middle_a region_n towards_o the_o mount_n taurus_n and_o perga_n &_o attalia_n be_v city_n lie_v near_o together_o and_o whereas_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o the_o one_o only_o we_o may_v thereby_o guess_v that_o they_o have_v not_o opportunity_n offer_v they_o every_o where_o to_o teach_v which_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o neglect_v or_o let_v pass_v no_o where_o 26_o when_o they_o have_v be_v commend_v luke_n may_v have_v say_v that_o they_o be_v ordain_v there_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o by_o a_o circuit_n of_o word_n he_o do_v more_o plain_o express_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o send_v away_o of_o man_n neither_o do_v they_o attempt_v any_o thing_n trust_v to_o their_o own_o strength_n but_o that_o their_o whole_a journey_n together_o with_o the_o success_n be_v commit_v to_o god_n the_o author_n thereof_o therefore_o their_o preach_n be_v not_o man_n work_n but_o a_o work_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o word_n grace_n be_v refer_v as_o well_o unto_o the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o also_o unto_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o favour_n because_o all_o those_o gift_n be_v free_a which_o god_n bestow_v upon_o his_o servant_n and_o the_o sentence_n may_v be_v thus_o resolve_v that_o they_o pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v show_v forth_o his_o grace_n to_o further_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o servant_n 27_o after_o they_o have_v call_v the_o church_n together_o as_o those_o who_o return_v from_o a_o embassage_n use_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o act_n so_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n declare_v to_o the_o church_n all_o the_o sum_n of_o their_o voyage_n that_o it_o may_v thereby_o appear_v what_o good_a success_n they_o have_v &_o how_o faithful_o they_o behave_v themselves_o in_o their_o office_n and_o also_o that_o they_o may_v exhort_v the_o faithful_a to_o give_v thank_n to_o god_n as_o the_o thing_n itself_o give_v they_o large_a matter_n therefore_o luk_n say_v not_o that_o they_o do_v extol_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o themselves_o have_v do_v but_o whatsoever_o thing_n the_o lord_n have_v do_v by_o they_o it_o be_v word_n for_o word_n with_o they_o but_o according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v in_o they_o or_o by_o they_o or_o towards_o they_o or_o simple_o to_o they_o in_o the_o dative_n case_n therefore_o luke_n do_v not_o say_v sun_n autois_fw-fr but_o meta_fw-la autoon_n which_o i_o say_v for_o this_o cause_n lest_o any_o unskilful_a man_n ascribe_v some_o part_n of_o the_o praise_n to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v partner_n with_o god_n in_o the_o work_n whereas_o he_o do_v rather_o make_v he_o the_o only_a author_n of_o all_o those_o famous_a fact_n which_o they_o have_v do_v luke_n add_v immediate_o after_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v open_v the_o door_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o gentile_n for_o though_o they_o be_v send_v unto_o the_o gentile_n yet_o the_o strangeness_n of_o the_o matter_n cause_v they_o to_o wonder_v not_o a_o little_a &_o not_o only_o the_o sudden_a change_n do_v make_v the_o jew_n astonish_v but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v to_o they_o as_o it_o be_v a_o monster_n that_o unclean_a man_n &_o such_o as_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v mix_v with_o the_o holy_a seed_n of_o abraham_n that_o they_o may_v both_o together_o make_v one_o &_o the_o same_o church_n of_o god_n they_o be_v now_o teach_v by_o the_o event_n itself_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o nothing_o that_o there_o be_v apostle_n send_v to_o they_o moreover_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o door_n of_o faith_n be_v set_v open_a to_o the_o gentile_n not_o only_o because_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o with_o the_o external_a voice_n but_o because_o be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v call_v effectual_o unto_o the_o faith_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v in_o deed_n set_v open_a to_o we_o by_o the_o external_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o no_o man_n enter_v in_o save_v he_o to_o who_o god_n reach_v out_o his_o hand_n no_o man_n draw_v near_o unless_o he_o be_v draw_v inward_o by_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n show_v and_o prove_v by_o the_o effect_n that_o their_o call_n be_v approve_v and_o ratify_v by_o god_n because_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n engrave_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n 3.7_o rom._n 16.15_o 2._o cor._n 3.7_o ro_o establish_v the_o same_o as_o paul_n say_v chap._n xv._o 1_o and_o certain_a which_o come_v down_o from_o judea_n do_v teach_v the_o brethren_n that_o unless_o they_o shall_v be_v circumcise_v according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o moses_n they_o can_v not_o be_v save_v 2_o and_o when_o there_o arise_v sedition_n and_o dispute_v not_o a_o little_a to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n against_o they_o they_o appoint_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n and_o certain_a other_o of_o they_o shall_v go_v up_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n to_o jerusalem_n about_o this_o question_n 3_o and_o when_o they_o be_v send_v by_o the_o church_n they_o pass_v through_o phenice_n and_o samaria_n declare_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o bring_v great_a joy_n to_o all_o the_o brethren_n 4_o and_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n they_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n and_o they_o show_v what_o thing_n so_o ever_o god_n have_v do_v with_o they_o 5_o and_o there_o arise_v certain_a of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o pharisee_n which_o believe_v say_v that_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v circumcise_v and_o to_o declare_v that_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n must_v be_v keep_v 1_o when_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n have_v endure_v many_o cumbate_n against_o the_o profess_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n luke_n do_v now_o begin_v to_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v try_v by_o domestical_a war_n so_o that_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o their_o doctrine_n and_o ministry_n shall_v be_v prove_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v the_o better_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v furnish_v by_o god_n and_o arm_v against_o all_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o world_n and_o satan_n for_o that_o be_v no_o small_a confirmation_n for_o their_o doctrine_n in_o that_o be_v shake_v and_o batter_v with_o so_o many_o engine_n it_o stand_v nevertheless_o neither_o can_v the_o course_n thereof_o be_v break_v off_o by_o so_o many_o hindrance_n therefore_o to_o this_o end_n do_v paul_n boast_v that_o he_o suffer_v fight_n without_o and_o terror_n within_o 7.5_o 2._o cor._n 7.5_o this_o history_n be_v most_o worthy_a the_o note_n for_o though_o we_o do_v all_o natural_o abhor_v the_o cross_n and_o all_o manner_n persecution_n yet_o civil_a &_o domestical_a discord_n be_v more_o dangerous_a least_o happy_o they_o discourage_v us._n when_o tyrant_n bend_v their_o force_n and_o run_v violent_o upon_o man_n flesh_n in_o deed_n be_v afraid_a &_o all_o those_o who_o be_v not_o endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o fortitude_n do_v tremble_v with_o all_o their_o heart_n but_o then_o their_o conscience_n be_v not_o proper_o touch_v with_o any_o temptation_n for_o this_o be_v know_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o fatal_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n but_o when_o it_o fall_v out_o so_o that_o the_o brethren_n go_v together_o by_o the_o ear_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v on_o a_o uproar_n
be_v that_o objection_n easy_o answer_v which_o the_o jew_n think_v not_o possible_o be_v answer_v 17.13_o gen._n 17.13_o circumcision_n be_v call_v the_o eternal_a covenant_n or_o of_o the_o world_n therefore_o say_v they_o it_o be_v âot_n to_o be_v abolish_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o this_o be_v not_o refer_v unto_o the_o visible_a sign_n but_o rather_o unto_o the_o thing_n figure_v it_o shall_v be_v well_o answer_v but_o there_o be_v another_o answer_n beside_o this_o see_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o certain_a renew_n of_o the_o world_n there_o shall_v no_o inconvenience_n follow_v if_o he_o make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o law_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o law_n be_v ground_v in_o christ_n i_o come_v now_o unto_o the_o second_o member_n where_o peter_n place_v the_o cleanness_n of_o the_o gentile_n in_o faith_n why_o do_v not_o he_o say_v in_o perfection_n of_o virtue_n or_o holiness_n of_o life_n save_o only_o because_o man_n have_v righteousness_n from_o another_o and_o not_o from_o themselves_o for_o if_o man_n by_o live_v well_o and_o just_o shall_v purchase_v righteousness_n or_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v clean_o before_o god_n by_o nature_n this_o sentence_n of_o peter_n shall_v fall_v to_o ground_n therefore_o the_o spirit_n do_v in_o these_o word_n plain_o pronounce_v that_o all_o mankind_n be_v pollute_v and_o with_o filthiness_n defile_v second_o that_o their_o blot_n can_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n be_v wipe_v away_o than_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n for_o see_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o remedy_n whereby_o the_o lord_n do_v free_o help_v we_o it_o be_v set_v as_o well_o against_o the_o common_a nature_n of_o all_o man_n as_o against_o every_o man_n own_o merit_n when_o i_o say_v that_o all_o mankind_n be_v pollute_v my_o meaning_n be_v that_o we_o bring_v nothing_o from_o our_o mother_n womb_n but_o mere_a filthiness_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o righteousness_n in_o our_o nature_n which_o can_v reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n man_n soul_n be_v in_o deed_n endue_v with_o singular_a gift_n at_o the_o first_o but_o all_o part_n thereof_o be_v so_o corrupt_a with_o sin_n that_o there_o remain_v in_o it_o no_o drop_n of_o pureness_n any_o long_o therefore_o we_o must_v seek_v for_o cleanness_n without_o ourselves_o for_o if_o any_o man_n allege_v that_o it_o may_v be_v recover_v by_o merit_n of_o work_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o absurd_a than_o to_o imagine_v that_o wicked_a and_o froward_a nature_n can_v deserve_v any_o thing_n therefore_o it_o rest_v that_o man_n seek_v elsewhere_o for_o that_o which_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o find_v within_o themselves_o and_o sure_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o faith_n to_o translate_v that_o unto_o we_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v it_o we_o by_o free_a participation_n so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o mutual_a relation_n between_o faith_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n for_o faith_n do_v not_o make_v we_o clean_o as_o a_o virtue_n or_o quality_n pour_v into_o our_o soul_n but_o because_o it_o receive_v that_o cleanness_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o christ_n we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o phrase_n that_o god_n purify_v the_o heart_n whereby_o luke_n do_v both_o make_n god_n the_o author_n of_o faith_n and_o he_o reach_v also_o that_o cleanness_n be_v his_o benefit_n to_o make_v short_a he_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o that_o be_v give_v to_o man_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o they_o can_v give_v to_o themselves_o but_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o say_v that_o faith_n take_v that_o of_o christ_n which_o it_o transpour_v into_o we_o we_o must_v now_o see_v how_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n do_v make_v we_o clean_o that_o we_o may_v please_v god_n and_o there_o be_v a_o double_a manner_n of_o purge_v because_o christ_n do_v offer_v &_o present_v we_o clean_o and_o just_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o father_n by_o put_v away_o our_o sin_n daily_o which_o he_o have_v once_o purge_v by_o his_o blood_n second_o because_o by_o mortify_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n by_o his_o spirit_n he_o reform_v we_o unto_o holiness_n of_o life_n i_o do_v willing_o comprehend_v both_o kind_n of_o purge_v under_o these_o word_n because_o luke_n do_v not_o touch_v one_o kind_n of_o purge_v only_o but_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o whole_a perfection_n thereof_o consist_v without_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n 10_o now_o therefore_o why_o tempt_v you_o this_o be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o sermon_n wherein_o peter_n show_v how_o deadly_a that_o doctrine_n be_v which_o paul_n his_o enemy_n seek_v to_o bring_v in_o to_o wit_n which_o may_v drown_v godly_a soul_n in_o despair_n he_o infer_v and_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o former_a member_n that_o god_n be_v tempt_v if_o the_o gentile_n be_v enforce_v to_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o necessity_n he_o rise_v high_a and_z pierce_v even_o unto_o the_o very_a fountain_n for_o he_o reason_v hitherto_o that_o the_o gentile_n shall_v have_v injury_n do_v they_o if_o there_o be_v more_o require_v at_o their_o hand_n than_o god_n will_v and_o see_v that_o he_o make_v they_o equal_a with_o the_o holy_a people_n &_o do_v vouchsafe_v they_o the_o honour_n of_o adoption_n it_o be_v a_o unmeet_a and_o inconvenient_a matter_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v reject_v and_o so_o his_o liberality_n shall_v be_v restrain_v for_o he_o say_v last_o of_o all_o that_o this_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o though_o they_o want_v ceremony_n and_o now_o he_o take_v a_o high_a principle_n that_o those_o who_o tie_v man_n salvation_n to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n leave_v they_o no_o good_a hope_n but_o rather_o throw_v the_o whole_a world_n headlong_o into_o horrible_a destruction_n if_o it_o can_v obtain_v salvation_n by_o no_o other_o mean_n but_o by_o keep_v the_o law_n with_o what_o argument_n he_o prove_v this_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o their_o place_n as_o touch_v the_o word_n see_v the_o scripture_n say_v that_o god_n be_v tempt_v diverse_a way_n peter_n his_o meaning_n be_v in_o this_o place_n that_o god_n be_v provoke_v as_o it_o be_v of_o set_a purpose_n when_o there_o be_v a_o heavy_a burden_n lay_v upon_o man_n than_o they_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v and_o that_o his_o power_n be_v bring_v within_o bound_n when_o that_o yoke_n be_v bind_v which_o he_o do_v loose_a which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o by_o strive_v against_o nature_n to_o match_v ourselves_o with_o giant_n as_o they_o say_v that_o the_o yoke_n shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o their_o neck_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n be_v plain_a that_o god_n be_v tempt_v when_o there_o be_v lay_v upon_o man_n conscience_n a_o sore_a burden_n than_o they_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n be_v sore_o shake_v see_v that_o they_o must_v needs_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v drown_v in_o despair_n which_o can_v be_v without_o their_o destruction_n but_o that_o injury_n which_o be_v do_v to_o god_n be_v no_o whit_n more_o tolerable_a when_o as_o he_o be_v rob_v of_o his_o right_n that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v liberty_n to_o deliver_v us._n but_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o ceremony_n only_o the_o servitude_n of_o the_o old_a train_n up_o under_o the_o law_n be_v hard_a and_o laborious_a but_o yet_o it_o be_v too_o absurd_a to_o call_v it_o a_o yoke_n that_o can_v be_v bear_v and_o we_o know_v that_o not_o only_o holy_a man_n but_o also_o even_o most_o hypocrite_n do_v well_o &_o exact_o accomplish_v the_o outward_a observation_n of_o the_o rite_n moreover_o it_o be_v not_o any_o hard_a matter_n to_o satisfy_v the_o moral_a law_n if_o it_o be_v content_a with_o corporal_a obedience_n only_o and_o do_v not_o require_v spiritual_a righteousness_n for_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o many_o to_o bridle_v their_o hand_n and_o foot_n but_o to_o moderate_v all_o the_o affection_n so_o that_o there_o may_v reign_v perfect_a abstinence_n and_o purity_n as_o well_o in_o the_o soul_n as_o in_o the_o body_n this_o be_v too_o hard_a a_o matter_n therefore_o those_o be_v too_o foolish_a who_o restrain_v unto_o ceremony_n peter_n word_n whereby_o the_o weakness_n of_o man_n to_o perform_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v express_v which_o do_v not_o only_o far_o pass_v their_o strength_n but_o be_v altogether_o contrary_a to_o nature_n these_o man_n be_v i_o warrant_v you_o deceive_v by_o one_o reason_n because_o the_o question_n be_v move_v concern_v ceremony_n only_o but_o they_o do_v remember_v that_o peter_n do_v more_o attentive_o and_o more_o wise_o consider_v as_o become_v he_o what_o a_o labyrinth_n this_o error_n to_o
look_v to_o but_o light_n do_v bring_v with_o it_o the_o false_a apostle_n do_v avouch_v that_o no_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o salvation_n unless_o he_o do_v keep_v the_o ceremony_n if_o man_n salvation_n be_v tie_v to_o work_n it_o shall_v be_v no_o long_o ground_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o by_o this_o mean_n free_a reconciliation_n shall_v fall_v flat_a to_o the_o ground_n now_o see_v that_o man_n strength_n be_v unable_a to_o keep_v the_o law_n all_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o curse_n which_o the_o lord_n there_o denounce_v against_o the_o trangressour_n and_o so_o by_o this_o mean_v all_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o danger_n of_o despair_n see_v that_o they_o see_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o eternal_a death_n by_o the_o law_n peradventure_o the_o false_a apostle_n understand_v these_o thing_n crafty_o but_o peter_n pierce_v the_o very_a fountain_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v to_o light_v the_o deadly_a poison_n of_o that_o doctrine_n and_o thus_o must_v we_o do_v so_o often_o as_o satan_n do_v crafty_o thrust_v in_o wicked_a error_n at_o this_o day_n we_o seem_v to_o some_o to_o be_v too_o contentious_a when_o as_o we_o do_v so_o stout_o stand_v in_o this_o that_o man_n must_v not_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a for_o it_o be_v both_o a_o most_o ancient_a custom_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o thing_n to_o look_v to_o very_o dangerous_a though_o man_n pour_v out_o superfluous_a prayer_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o plausible_a opinion_n because_o it_o carry_v some_o colour_n of_o humane_a godliness_n furthermore_o unskilful_a man_n judge_v thus_o because_o they_o seek_v not_o out_o the_o head_n spring_n for_o if_o we_o grant_v that_o man_n may_v pray_v for_o the_o dead_a we_o must_v also_o admit_v this_o that_o they_o be_v now_o punish_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n because_o they_o make_v not_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o life_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o so_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o force_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n be_v translate_v unto_o the_o work_n of_o man_n second_o the_o rule_n of_o pray_v aright_o be_v overthrow_v if_o man_n may_v pray_v at_o all_o adventure_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o be_v also_o a_o great_a absurdity_n than_o that_o we_o ought_v light_o to_o pass_v over_o it_o in_o sum_n we_o can_v never_o give_v true_a judgement_n of_o any_o question_n unless_o have_v thorough_o rip_v up_o the_o fountain_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v call_v in_o question_n we_o deduct_v all_o consequent_n which_o it_o bring_v with_o it_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o peter_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v pull_v the_o false_a apostle_n out_o by_o the_o ear_n as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o their_o lurk_a den_n do_v general_o dispute_v touch_v the_o whole_a law_n because_o he_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o open_a the_o matter_n itself_o whereof_o the_o simple_a be_v ignorant_a that_o they_o may_v all_o see_v what_o a_o deadly_a doctrine_n it_o be_v which_o do_v both_o extinguish_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o drown_v soul_n in_o the_o horrible_a dungeon_n of_o despair_n neither_o we_o nor_o our_o father_n peter_n do_v not_o only_o dispute_v what_o man_n have_v do_v in_o deed_n but_o what_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v neither_o do_v he_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o common_a riff_o raff_o but_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n see_v that_o he_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o law_n can_v possible_o be_v keep_v i_o know_v that_o jerome_n his_o say_n be_v so_o general_o receive_v that_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a and_o most_o certain_a maxim_n if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n unpossible_a to_o keep_v the_o law_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v but_o we_o must_v not_o hearken_v to_o any_o voice_n of_o man_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n pronounce_v in_o this_o place_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o peter_n not_o concern_v the_o will_n and_o work_n of_o man_n but_o touch_v their_o hability_n and_o power_n and_o hereunto_o agree_v paul_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o unpossible_a thing_n that_o the_o law_n shall_v give_v we_o life_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n in_o deed_n if_o any_o man_n be_v able_a to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n he_o shall_v find_v the_o life_n which_o be_v there_o promise_v but_o forasmuch_o as_o paul_n deny_v that_o life_n can_v be_v get_v by_o the_o law_n it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v far_a &_o high_a righteousness_n require_v there_o then_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v i_o confess_v in_o deed_n that_o jerome_n do_v not_o whole_o grant_v to_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n power_n to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n but_o partly_o also_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o he_o do_v afterward_o expound_v himself_o that_o a_o faithful_a man_n holpen_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v able_a to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n but_o even_o that_o mitigation_n be_v not_o true_a for_o if_o we_o do_v weigh_v the_o strength_n of_o nature_n only_o man_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v unable_a to_o bear_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n but_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o move_v so_o much_o as_o a_o finger_n to_o perform_v the_o least_o jot_n of_o the_o law_n and_o sure_o if_o that_o be_v true_a that_o all_o the_o cogitation_n of_o man_n mind_n be_v wicked_a from_o his_o childhood_n that_o all_o the_o understanding_n of_o flesh_n be_v enemy_n to_o god_n that_o there_o be_v none_o which_o seek_v after_o god_n and_o other_o such_o place_n which_o be_v common_a in_o the_o scripture_n tend_v to_o the_o same_o end_n 3.11_o gen._n 8.21_o rom._n 8.7_o psal_n 14.3_o rom._n 3.11_o but_o especial_o which_o be_v cite_v by_o paul_n in_o the_o three_o to_o the_o roman_n man_n his_o power_n and_o ability_n to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v weak_a and_o lame_a but_o altogether_o none_o to_o begin_v therefore_o we_o must_v thus_o think_v that_o even_o the_o very_a faithful_a after_o they_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v study_n to_o attain_v unto_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n do_v perform_v notwithstanding_o but_o the_o half_a and_o far_o less_o than_o half_a not_o the_o whole_a for_o doubtless_o peter_n speak_v not_o in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o epicure_n or_o profane_a man_n but_o of_o abraham_n of_o moses_n and_o of_o other_o holy_a father_n which_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_a in_o the_o world_n &_o yet_o he_o say_v that_o these_o faint_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o law_n because_o it_o do_v pass_v their_o strength_n it_o be_v hateful_o object_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v blaspheme_v when_o as_o ability_n to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n be_v take_v away_o from_o his_o grace_n and_o help_v but_o we_o may_v ready_o answer_v because_o the_o question_n be_v not_o what_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v able_a to_o do_v but_o what_o that_o measure_n of_o grace_n be_v able_a to_o do_v which_o god_n do_v divide_v to_o every_o one_o in_o this_o life_n for_o we_o must_v always_o consider_v what_o god_n do_v promise_n to_o do_v neither_o let_v we_o unaduised_o ask_v this_o question_n whether_o that_o can_v be_v do_v which_o he_o himself_o do_v testify_v shall_v never_o be_v and_o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v he_o promise_v the_o grace_n &_o aid_v of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o faithful_a whereby_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o resist_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n &_o to_o subdue_v they_o yet_o shall_v they_o not_o quite_o abolish_v &_o drive_v they_o away_o he_o promise_v they_o grace_v whereby_o they_o may_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n yea_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v able_a to_o run_v so_o swift_o as_o the_o law_n require_v for_o he_o will_v have_v they_o keep_v under_o during_o their_o whole_a life_n that_o they_o may_v fly_v to_o beg_v pardon_n if_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o separate_v from_o the_o power_n of_o god_n his_o counsel_n &_o the_o order_n by_o he_o set_v down_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a and_o vain_a cavil_n whereby_o the_o adversary_n go_v about_o to_o burden_v we_o when_o as_o they_o say_v that_o we_o diminish_v the_o power_n of_o god_n nay_o rather_o they_o transform_v god_n when_o they_o hold_v that_o his_o counsel_n &_o purpose_n can_v be_v alter_v the_o pelagian_o do_v in_o time_n pass_v in_o like_a sort_n burden_n augustine_n he_o aunswear_v that_o though_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n possible_a that_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v yet_o be_v that_o sufficient_a for_o he_o that_o no_o man_n do_v ever_o fulfil_v it_o and_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o
get_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o free_a forgiveness_n of_o sin_n which_o by_o pacify_v and_o appease_v god_n do_v make_v he_o of_o a_o enemy_n or_o severe_a judge_n and_o which_o can_v be_v please_v nor_o entreat_v a_o merciful_a father_n i_o confess_v indeed_o that_o we_o be_v regenerate_v into_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n but_o when_o we_o be_v about_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n then_o must_v we_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o free_a adoption_n alone_o which_o be_v join_v with_o the_o purge_n &_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n for_o if_o work_n be_v admit_v that_o they_o may_v make_v we_o righteous_a even_o in_o part_n only_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o be_v break_v and_o so_o peter_n his_o contrariety_n shall_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n or_o else_o be_v dissolve_v even_o as_o they_o peter_n do_v testify_v in_o this_o place_n that_o though_o the_o servitude_n of_o the_o law_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o father_n as_o touch_v the_o external_a show_n yet_o be_v their_o conscience_n free_a and_o quit_v whereby_o be_v put_v away_o that_o absurdity_n which_o may_v otherwise_o have_v trouble_v godly_a mind_n not_o a_o little_a for_o see_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o life_n be_v eternal_a and_o the_o same_o which_o god_n make_v with_o his_o servant_n from_o the_o begin_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n &_o untollerable_a that_o any_o other_o way_n to_o obtain_v salvation_n shall_v be_v teach_v at_o this_o day_n then_o that_o which_o the_o father_n have_v in_o time_n past_a therefore_o peter_n affirm_v that_o we_o agree_v very_o well_o with_o the_o father_n because_o they_o no_o less_o than_o we_o repose_v hope_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o reconcile_a the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n together_o as_o touch_v the_o end_n of_o the_o doctrine_n he_o take_v from_o the_o jew_n the_o stumble_a block_n which_o they_o feign_v to_o themselves_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o discord_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o law_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o father_n that_o they_o may_v thereby_o purchase_v salvation_n neither_o be_v the_o ceremony_n add_v that_o by_o the_o observe_v thereof_o they_o may_v attain_v unto_o righteousness_n but_o this_o be_v the_o only_a end_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a law_n that_o cast_v from_o they_o all_o confidence_n which_o they_o may_v repose_v in_o work_n they_o may_v repose_v all_o their_o hope_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n whereby_o be_v also_o refute_v the_o dote_n of_o those_o who_o think_v that_o the_o old_a people_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v content_a with_o earthly_a good_n do_v think_v no_o whit_n of_o the_o heavenly_a life_n but_o peter_n make_v the_o father_n partner_n with_o we_o of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o do_v make_v salvation_n common_a to_o both_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v some_o which_o delight_n in_o that_o brainsick_a fellow_n seruetus_fw-la with_o his_o so_o filthy_a sacrilege_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v that_o peter_n teach_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n be_v always_o ground_v in_o christ_n see_v that_o they_o can_v neither_o find_v life_n any_o where_o else_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o way_n for_o man_n to_o come_v unto_o god_n therefore_o this_o place_n agree_v with_o that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n christ_n yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n 13.8_o heb._n 13.8_o and_o for_o ever_o 12_o and_o all_o the_o multitude_n keep_v silence_n and_o hear_v barnabas_n and_o paul_n declare_v what_o sign_n &_o wonder_n god_n have_v wrought_v by_o they_o among_o the_o gentile_n 13_o and_o after_o that_o they_o have_v do_v speak_v james_n answer_v say_v man_n &_o brethren_n hear_v i_o 14_o simeon_n have_v show_v how_o at_o the_o first_o god_n have_v visit_v that_o he_o may_v take_v of_o the_o gentile_n a_o people_n in_o his_o name_n 15_o and_o hereunto_o agree_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 16_o after_o these_o thing_n i_o will_v return_v and_o will_v build_v again_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o david_n which_o be_v decay_v and_o i_o will_v restore_v the_o ruin_n thereof_o and_o will_v set_v it_o up_o 17_o that_o the_o man_n which_o remain_v may_v seek_v the_o lord_n and_o all_o nation_n which_o call_v upon_o my_o name_n say_v the_o lord_n which_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n 18_o know_v from_o the_o beginning_n be_v all_o his_o work_n 12_o all_o the_o multitude_n hold_v their_o peace_n by_o these_o word_n luke_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v so_o reign_v in_o that_o assembly_n that_o they_o yield_v forth_o with_o to_o reason_n the_o disputation_n be_v hot_o before_o but_o now_o after_o that_o peter_n have_v lay_v open_a the_o counsel_n of_o god_n &_o have_v handle_v the_o question_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o &_o by_o all_o noise_n be_v stay_v they_o be_v quiet_a and_o whist_a who_o do_v of_o late_o unaduised_o defend_v the_o error_n this_o be_v a_o lively_a image_n of_o a_o lawful_a counsel_n when_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n alone_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v once_o come_v to_o light_v make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o controversy_n and_o assure_o it_o be_v effectual_a enough_o to_o appease_v all_o discord_n when_o the_o spirit_n bear_v the_o chief_a sway_n because_o he_o be_v again_o a_o fit_a governor_n as_o well_o to_o moderate_v their_o tongue_n who_o must_v speak_v before_o other_o as_o to_o keep_v the_o rest_n under_o obedience_n that_o they_o be_v not_o too_o much_o addict_v to_o themselves_o and_o wed_v to_o their_o own_o will_n but_o that_o lay_v away_o stubbornness_n they_o may_v show_v themselves_o obedient_a to_o god_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o few_o which_o will_v not_o yield_v as_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o a_o great_a assembly_n yet_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n have_v the_o upper_a hand_n so_o that_o the_o silence_n whereof_o luke_n speak_v be_v a_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o common_a obedience_n and_o this_o be_v no_o small_a moderation_n in_o peter_n in_o that_o have_v suffer_v every_o one_o to_o say_v for_o himself_o what_o he_o can_v he_o defer_v his_o judgement_n lest_o it_o shall_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o other_o so_o long_o until_o the_o question_n have_v be_v thorough_o discuss_v too_o and_o fro_o they_o hear_v barnabas_n and_o paul_n we_o may_v gather_v by_o these_o word_n that_o they_o be_v not_o hear_v with_o silence_n before_o for_o see_v that_o the_o more_o part_n be_v persuade_v that_o they_o do_v wicked_o admit_v the_o profane_a gentile_n into_o the_o church_n there_o shall_v nothing_o which_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v have_v be_v patient_o receive_v until_o this_o false_a opinion_n be_v correct_v &_o reform_v but_o all_o shall_v have_v be_v take_v at_o the_o worst_a we_o see_v what_o a_o poison_n displeasure_n conceive_v for_o no_o cause_n be_v which_o do_v so_o possess_v man_n mind_n that_o it_o stop_v the_o way_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n can_v never_o have_v entrance_n hereby_o we_o learn_v how_o true_a that_o say_n be_v all_o thing_n be_v sound_a to_o the_o sound_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o wholesome_a but_o corrupt_a affection_n do_v turn_v the_o same_o in_o to_o that_o which_o be_v hurtful_a 1.15_o tit._n 1.15_o and_o to_o this_o end_n tend_v the_o narration_n make_v by_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n that_o they_o may_v show_v &_o prove_v that_o god_n do_v allow_v their_o apostleship_n among_o the_o gentile_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a seal_n thereof_o 13_o james_n answer_v say_v some_o old_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n think_v that_o this_o james_n be_v one_o of_o the_o disciple_n who_o syrname_n be_v justus_n and_o oblia_n who_o cruel_a death_n be_v record_v by_o josephus_n in_o the_o twenty_o book_n of_o his_o antiquity_n but_o will_v to_o god_n the_o old_a writer_n have_v travel_v rather_o to_o know_v the_o man_n than_o to_o set_v forth_o with_o feign_a praise_n the_o holiness_n of_o a_o man_n who_o they_o know_v not_o it_o be_v a_o childish_a toy_n &_o surmise_n in_o that_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o alone_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o most_o holy_a place_n for_o if_o in_o that_o enter_v in_o there_o have_v be_v any_o religion_n he_o have_v do_v it_o contrary_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v not_o the_o high_a priest_n second_o it_o be_v a_o superstitious_a thing_n thus_o to_o foster_v the_o shadowishe_a worship_n of_o the_o temple_n i_o omit_v other_o trifle_n and_o they_o be_v great_o deceive_v in_o that_o they_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o 12._o
apostle_n 2.9_o gal._n 2.9_o for_o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o paul_n commend_v so_o honourable_o that_o he_o make_v he_o the_o chief_a among_o the_o three_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n assure_o a_o man_n inferior_a in_o order_n and_o degree_n can_v never_o have_v excel_v the_o apostle_n so_o far_o for_o paul_n give_v he_o the_o title_n of_o a_o apostle_n neither_o be_v that_o worth_a the_o hear_n which_o hierome_n bring_v that_o the_o word_n be_v general_a there_o see_v that_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o order_n be_v there_o handle_v for_o as_o much_o as_o christ_n do_v prefer_v the_o apostle_n before_o other_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n moreover_o we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o they_o make_v no_o small_a account_n of_o james_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o do_v with_o his_o voice_n and_o consent_v so_o confirm_v the_o word_n of_o peter_n 21.18_o cha._n 21.18_o that_o they_o be_v all_o of_o his_o mind_n and_o we_o shall_v see_v afterward_o how_o great_a his_o authority_n be_v at_o jerusalem_fw-la the_o old_a writer_n think_v that_o this_o be_v because_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o place_n but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o faithful_a do_v at_o their_o pleasure_n change_v the_o order_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v wherefore_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o be_v son_n to_o alpheus_n &_o christ_n cousin_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o be_v also_o call_v his_o brother_n whether_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la or_o no_o i_o leave_v it_o indifferent_a neither_o do_v it_o great_o make_v for_o the_o matter_n save_v only_o because_o the_o impudency_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v hereby_o refute_v because_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o counsel_n be_v set_v down_o rather_o at_o the_o appointment_n and_o according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o james_n then_o of_o peter_n and_o assure_o eusebius_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o second_o book_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o call_v james_n whosoever_o he_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostle_n let_v the_o man_n of_o rome_n go_v now_o &_o boast_v that_o their_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n because_o he_o be_v peter_n successor_n who_o suffer_v another_o to_o rule_v he_o if_o we_o believe_v eusebius_n man_n and_o brethren_n hear_v i_o james_n his_o oration_n consist_v upon_o two_o principal_a member_n for_o first_o he_o confirm_v and_o prove_v the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o prophet_n amos_n second_o he_o show_v what_o be_v best_a to_o be_v do_v to_o nourish_v peace_n &_o concord_n among_o the_o faithful_a yet_o so_o that_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gentile_n may_v continue_v safe_a &_o sound_a &_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v darken_v whereas_o peter_n be_v in_o this_o place_n call_v simeon_n it_o may_v be_v that_o this_o name_n be_v diverse_o pronounce_v then_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o god_n do_v visit_v to_o take_v a_o people_n of_o the_o gentile_n it_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o receive_v stranger_n into_o his_o family_n it_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o harsh_a phrase_n yet_o such_o as_o contain_v a_o profitable_a doctrine_n because_o he_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v through_o his_o goodness_n that_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o his_o people_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v take_v by_o he_o but_o he_o proceed_v further_a when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v visit_v that_o he_o may_v take_v for_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n that_o at_o such_o time_n as_o the_o gentile_n be_v turn_v away_o from_o god_n he_o do_v merciful_o look_v upon_o they_o because_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o depart_v far_o and_o far_o from_o he_o until_o such_o time_n as_o his_o fatherly_a look_n prevent_v we_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n in_o his_o name_n the_o old_a interpreter_n have_v to_o his_o name_n which_o be_v almost_o all_o one_o though_o the_o preposition_n epi_fw-la may_v be_v otherwise_o translate_v to_o wit_n for_o his_o name_n or_o upon_o his_o name_n neither_o shall_v the_o sense_n disagree_v that_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v ground_v in_o the_o power_n or_o name_n of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n do_v respect_v no_o other_o thing_n in_o call_v they_o but_o his_o own_o glory_n yet_o do_v i_o retain_v that_o which_o be_v more_o usual_a to_o wit_n that_o in_o number_v they_o among_o his_o people_n he_o will_v have_v they_o count_v in_o his_o name_n like_v as_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v short_o after_o that_o his_o name_n be_v call_v upon_o by_o all_o those_o who_o he_o gather_v together_o into_o his_o church_n the_o adverbe_n of_o time_n proton_fw-mi may_v be_v expound_v two_o way_n if_o you_o read_v it_o first_o as_o the_o old_a interpreter_n and_o erasmus_n have_v it_o the_o sense_n shall_v be_v that_o cornelius_n and_o other_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n at_o who_o god_n begin_v the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o it_o may_v be_v take_v also_o comparitive_o because_o there_o be_v already_o some_o token_n of_o the_o adoption_n of_o the_o gentile_n show_v in_o cornelius_n and_o his_o cousin_n before_o that_o barnabas_n and_o paul_n preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n and_o i_o do_v better_o like_o this_o latter_a sense_n 15_o hereto_o agree_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n we_o see_v now_o how_o the_o apostle_n take_v nothing_o to_o themselves_o imperious_o but_o do_v reverent_o follow_v that_o which_o be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v it_o grieve_v they_o neither_o do_v they_o count_v it_o any_o disgrace_n to_o they_o to_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o scholar_n of_o the_o scripture_n also_o we_o must_v here_o note_v that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v yet_o in_o force_n which_o some_o brainsick_a man_n will_v banish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o cite_v the_o prophet_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n to_o be_v witness_n whereas_o he_o do_v allege_v one_o place_n only_o he_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o agreement_n among_o they_o that_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o one_o be_v the_o common_a testimony_n of_o they_o all_o because_o they_o speak_v all_o with_o one_o mouth_n and_o every_o one_o speak_v as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o or_o rather_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o they_o all_o moreover_o the_o oracle_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n be_v gather_v together_o that_o they_o may_v make_v one_o body_n wherefore_o that_o may_v worthy_o and_o fit_o be_v ascribe_v to_o all_o the_o prophet_n in_o general_a which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o some_o one_o part_n of_o the_o general_a book_n 16_o after_o these_o thing_n i_o will_v return_v because_o the_o place_n be_v not_o cite_v word_n for_o word_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o prophet_n we_o must_v see_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v though_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o examine_v strait_o what_o diversity_n there_o be_v in_o the_o word_n so_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o pprophecy_n do_v fit_o agree_v with_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v in_o hand_n after_o that_o god_n have_v promise_v the_o restore_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o david_n he_o say_v also_o that_o he_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v possess_v the_o remnant_n of_o edom._n in_o all_o that_o text_n there_o appear_v nothing_o as_o yet_o whence_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n can_v be_v fetch_v or_o gather_v but_o that_o which_o follow_v immediate_o after_o in_o the_o prophet_n concern_v the_o remnant_n of_o the_o gentile_n which_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o jew_n &_o gentile_n shall_v make_v one_o church_n because_o that_o which_o be_v then_o proper_a to_o the_o jew_n alone_o be_v give_v to_o both_o in_o general_n for_o god_n place_v the_o gentile_n in_o like_a degree_n of_o honour_n with_o the_o jew_n when_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n those_o of_o idumea_n and_o the_o people_n there_o about_o be_v in_o time_n pass_v under_o david_n subject_n to_o the_o jew_n but_o though_o they_o be_v tributary_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v they_o nevertheless_o stranger_n from_o the_o church_n therefore_o this_o be_v news_n &_o a_o strange_a thing_n in_o that_o god_n reckon_v they_o up_o with_o the_o holy_a people_n that_o he_o may_v be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o they_o al._n see_v that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v all_o make_v equal_a in_o honour_n among_o themselves_o by_o this_o mean_n whereby_o it_o do_v plain_o appear_v how_o well_o the_o testimony_n of_o
silas_n see_v they_o be_v also_o prophet_n do_v with_o many_o word_n comfort_n word_n or_o they_o do_v comfort_n exhort_v the_o brethren_n and_o strengthen_v they_o 33_o and_o they_o tarry_v there_o for_o a_o time_n and_o then_o they_o be_v let_v go_v by_o the_o brethren_n in_o peace_n unto_o the_o apostle_n 34_o but_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o silas_n to_o stay_v there_o 35_o and_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n stay_v at_o antiochia_n teach_v and_o preach_v with_o many_o i_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n 30_o when_o the_o multitude_n be_v gather_v this_o be_v the_o most_o lawful_a kind_n of_o deal_v to_o admit_v the_o whole_a multitude_n unto_o the_o read_n of_o the_o epistle_n for_o if_o there_o fall_v out_o any_o controversy_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o judgement_n be_v refer_v over_o unto_o the_o learned_a and_o godly_a &_o to_o such_o as_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o chief_o to_o the_o pastor_n right_o ordain_v notwithstanding_o because_o it_o belong_v to_o all_o alike_o to_o know_v for_o a_o surety_n what_o they_o must_v hold_v the_o godly_a and_o learned_a teacher_n must_v make_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n what_o they_o have_v set_v down_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unfitting_a for_o holy_a and_o christian_a order_n than_o to_o drive_v away_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n from_o common_a doctrine_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o heerd_v of_o swine_n as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o popery_n for_o because_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o horn_a bishop_n do_v think_v that_o the_o people_n will_v never_o be_v obedient_a enough_o until_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o gross_a ignorance_n they_o imagine_v that_o this_o be_v the_o best_a summarie_n of_o faith_n to_o know_v nothing_o but_o to_o depend_v whole_o upon_o their_o decree_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a there_o must_v be_v a_o mean_v observe_v that_o lawful_a government_n may_v continue_v and_o that_o on_o the_o otherside_n the_o people_n may_v have_v that_o liberty_n which_o unto_o they_o belong_v lest_o they_o be_v oppress_v like_o slave_n 31_o they_o rejoice_v over_o the_o consolation_n see_v that_o the_o epistle_n be_v so_o short_a and_o contain_v nothing_o but_o a_o bare_a narration_n what_o consolation_n can_v they_o have_v by_o it_o but_o we_o must_v note_v that_o there_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n of_o consolation_n therein_o because_o when_o they_o know_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o be_v all_o pacify_v and_o also_o whereas_o before_o there_o be_v variance_n among_o they_o they_o be_v now_o reconcile_v one_o to_o another_o see_v there_o go_v a_o false_a report_n about_o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v against_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n this_o same_o have_v shake_v some_o who_o be_v too_o light_a of_o belief_n many_o do_v stand_v in_o doubt_n the_o wicked_a abuse_v this_o occasion_n to_o speak_v evil_a othersome_a be_v prick_v forward_o with_o love_n of_o novalty_n and_o with_o curiosity_n and_o one_o be_v set_v against_o another_o but_o now_o after_o that_o they_o see_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o first_o church_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n they_o obtain_v that_o for_o which_o the_o child_n of_o god_n ought_v most_o to_o wish_v that_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o right_a faith_n and_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n among_o themselves_o they_o may_v with_o quiet_a mind_n have_v peace_n one_o with_o another_o 32_o judas_n and_o silas_n these_o two_o brethren_n be_v send_v for_o this_o cause_n that_o they_o may_v also_o testify_v the_o same_o thing_n by_o word_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o letter_n and_o more_o also_o otherwise_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v send_v such_o short_a letter_n concern_v so_o great_a and_o weighty_a a_o matter_n and_o they_o will_v have_v also_o speak_v somewhat_o touch_v the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o will_v have_v make_v some_o long_a exhortation_n wherein_o they_o will_v have_v persuade_v they_o unto_o the_o study_n of_o godliness_n now_o luke_n show_v some_o far_a thing_n by_o they_o do_v to_o wit_n that_o be_v furnish_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n they_o edify_v the_o church_n in_o general_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v they_o do_v not_o only_o do_v their_o duty_n faithful_o in_o the_o cause_n which_o be_v now_o in_o hand_n but_o they_o do_v also_o take_v good_a and_o profitable_a pain_n in_o teach_v and_o exhort_v the_o church_n and_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o say_v that_o they_o exhort_v the_o church_n because_o they_o be_v prophet_n for_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n common_a to_o all_o man_n to_o enter_v such_o a_o excellent_a function_n therefore_o we_o must_v beware_v lest_o any_o man_n pass_v his_o bound_n as_o paul_n teach_v 1._o cor._n 7._o and_o ephesian_n 4._o 4.1_o 1._o cor._n 7.20_o ephes_n 4.1_o that_o every_o one_o keep_v himself_o within_o the_o measure_n of_o grace_n receive_v wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v be_v peculiar_a lest_o any_o man_n through_o ambition_n be_v void_a of_o hability_n or_o through_o rash_a zeal_n or_o through_o any_o other_o foolish_a desire_n covet_v to_o put_v out_o his_o head_n trouble_v the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v prophet_n whereas_o the_o word_n have_v diverse_a signification_n it_o be_v not_o take_v in_o this_o place_n for_o those_o prophet_n to_o who_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v because_o this_o title_n shall_v come_v in_o out_o of_o season_n when_o he_o intreat_v of_o another_o matter_n but_o luke_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o judas_n and_o silas_n be_v endue_v with_o excellent_a knowledge_n and_o understanding_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v be_v good_a interpreter_n of_o god_n as_o paul_n in_o the_o forteenth_n of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o intreat_v of_o the_o prophecy_n 14.3_o 1._o cor._n 14.3_o and_o prefer_v it_o before_o all_o other_o gift_n speak_v not_o of_o foretell_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o he_o commend_v it_o for_o this_o fruit_n because_o it_o do_v edify_v the_o church_n by_o doctrine_n exhortation_n &_o consolation_n after_o this_o manner_n do_v luke_n assign_v exhortation_n to_o the_o prophet_n as_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o their_o office_n 33_o they_o be_v let_v go_v in_o peace_n that_o be_v when_o they_o depart_v the_o brethren_n in_o take_v their_o leave_n of_o they_o do_v wish_v they_o well_o as_o friend_n use_v to_o do_v and_o there_o be_v synecdoche_n in_o this_o member_n because_o the_o one_o of_o the_o two_o do_v only_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o the_o text_n there_o be_v a_o correction_n add_v immediate_o that_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o silas_n to_o tarry_v there_o but_o when_o luke_n join_v they_o both_o together_o his_o meaning_n be_v only_o to_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v quiet_a before_o they_o think_v upon_o any_o return_v at_o length_n he_o add_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v at_o antioch_n give_v themselves_o to_o teach_v and_o do_v continue_v in_o this_o work_n and_o yet_o do_v they_o give_v place_n to_o many_o mo_z whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o have_v all_o one_o &_o the_o same_o desire_n without_o grudge_v so_o that_o they_o join_v hand_n in_o hand_n to_o do_v good_a though_o it_o seem_v that_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o many_o more_o of_o set_a purpose_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o after_o that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v depart_v that_o church_n be_v destitute_a which_o do_v flourish_v in_o abundance_n of_o teacher_n moreover_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n which_o begin_v straightway_o to_o appear_v again_o in_o that_o church_n be_v now_o again_o commend_v and_o extol_v which_o church_n satan_n go_v about_o by_o his_o minister_n miserable_o to_o scatter_v and_o lay_v waist_n 36_o and_o after_o a_o few_o day_n paul_n say_v to_o barnabas_n return_v let_v we_o now_o visit_v our_o brethren_n throughout_o all_o city_n wherein_o we_o have_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o see_v how_o they_o do_v 37_o and_o barnabas_n counsel_v to_o take_v john_n who_o syrname_n be_v mark_n 38_o but_o paul_n beseech_v he_o that_o he_o which_o slide_v back_o from_o they_o in_o pamphilia_n and_o have_v not_o go_v with_o they_o to_o the_o work_n may_v not_o be_v take_v to_o their_o company_n 39_o and_o the_o contention_n wax_v so_o hot_a between_o they_o that_o they_o part_v company_n and_o barnabas_n have_v take_v to_o he_o mark_v sail_v to_o cyprus_n 40_o but_o paul_n have_v choose_v silas_n iorney_v be_v commit_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o the_o brethren_n 41_o and_o he_o go_v through_o syria_n and_o
as_o for_o we_o see_v that_o the_o papist_n do_v place_n the_o spiritual_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o man_n invention_n and_o translate_v the_o right_n which_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o unto_o man_n that_o they_o may_v reign_v as_o lord_n over_o soul_n we_o be_v enforce_v manful_o to_o withstand_v they_o unless_o through_o treacherous_a silence_n we_o will_v betray_v the_o grace_n get_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n now_o what_o likelihood_n can_v there_o be_v between_o three_o decree_n set_v down_o for_o the_o help_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o a_o infinite_a heap_n of_o law_n which_o do_v not_o only_o oppress_v miserable_a soul_n with_o the_o weight_n thereof_o but_o also_o swallow_v up_o faith_n we_o know_v the_o complaint_n of_o augustine_n write_v to_o januarius_n that_o the_o church_n be_v wicked_o lade_v even_o then_o with_o too_o great_a a_o burden_n of_o tradition_n can_v he_o i_o pray_v you_o suffer_v the_o bondage_n of_o these_o time_n which_o be_v almost_o a_o hundred_o time_n hard_o and_o heavy_a 5_o the_o church_n be_v confirm_v by_o this_o we_o gather_v that_o that_o which_o luke_n set_v down_o or_o rather_o touch_v concern_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v as_o it_o be_v put_v in_o by_o the_o way_n be_v not_o much_o appertinent_a unto_o the_o matter_n for_o he_o commend_v a_o far_a other_o fruit_n of_o paul_n doctrine_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n therefore_o paul_n do_v so_o order_v external_a thing_n that_o he_o be_v principal_o careful_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o do_v far_o surpass_v and_o surmount_v external_a order_n therefore_o those_o decree_n be_v mention_v in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v expedient_a for_o maintain_v concord_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o holy_a man_n have_v a_o care_n thereof_o but_o religion_n and_o godliness_n have_v the_o former_a place_n who_o sole_a foundation_n be_v faith_n which_o again_o do_v stay_v itself_o upon_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o man_n law_n now_o by_o this_o example_n luke_n prick_v we_o forward_o to_o proceed_v continual_o lest_o at_o the_o beginning_n sloth_n or_o neglect_n of_o profit_v come_v upon_o us._n also_o the_o way_n to_o increase_v faith_n be_v express_v to_o wit_n when_o the_o lord_n do_v stir_v we_o up_o by_o the_o industry_n of_o his_o servant_n as_o at_o that_o time_n he_o use_v the_o labour_n and_o diligence_n of_o paul_n and_o his_o companion_n when_o he_o add_v immediate_o that_o they_o be_v also_o increase_v in_o number_n he_o commend_v another_o fruit_n of_o preach_v and_o yet_o he_o do_v therewithal_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o more_o those_o profit_n in_o faith_n who_o be_v first_o call_v the_o more_o do_v they_o bring_v unto_o christ_n as_o if_o faith_n do_v creep_v abroad_o unto_o other_o by_o branch_n 6_o and_o when_o they_o have_v go_v through_o phrygia_n and_o the_o country_n if_o galacia_n they_o be_v forbid_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o speak_v the_o word_n in_o asia_n 7_o and_o go_v into_o mysia_n they_o assay_v to_o go_v into_o bythinia_n and_o the_o spirit_n suffer_v they_o not_o 8_o and_o when_o they_o have_v pass_v through_o mysia_n they_o come_v down_o to_o troada_n 9_o and_o paul_n see_v a_o vision_n by_o night_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a man_n of_o macedonia_n stand_v and_o pray_v he_o and_o say_v come_v into_o macedonia_n help_v us._n 10_o and_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o see_v the_o vision_n we_o seek_v straightway_o to_o go_v into_o macedonia_n be_v sure_o confirm_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v call_v we_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o they_o 6_o when_o they_o have_v go_v throughout_o luke_n show_v here_o how_o diligent_a &_o careful_a paul_n and_o his_o companion_n be_v in_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v for_o he_o say_v that_o they_o iorney_v through_o diverse_a region_n of_o the_o lesser_a asia_n that_o they_o may_v preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o he_o recite_v one_o thing_n which_o be_v worth_a the_o remember_n that_o they_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o speak_v of_o christ_n in_o some_o place_n which_o serve_v not_o a_o little_a to_o set_v forth_o the_o apostleship_n of_o paul_n as_o undoubted_o he_o be_v not_o a_o little_a encourage_v to_o proceed_v when_o he_o know_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v his_o guide_n in_o his_o way_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o his_o action_n and_o whereas_o whither_o soever_o they_o come_v they_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o teach_v they_o do_v that_o according_a to_o their_o call_n and_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v and_o publish_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n without_o exception_n but_o the_o lord_n reveal_v his_o counsel_n in_o govern_v the_o course_n of_o their_o journey_n which_o be_v before_o unknown_a even_o in_o a_o moment_n notwithstanding_o the_o question_n be_v if_o paul_n teach_v not_o where_o but_o whither_o he_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n what_o certainty_n shall_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n have_v at_o this_o day_n of_o their_o call_n who_o be_v certify_v by_o no_o oracle_n when_o they_o must_v speak_v or_o hold_v their_o peace_n i_o answer_v see_v that_o paul_n province_n and_o charge_n be_v so_o wide_a he_o have_v need_n of_o the_o singular_a direction_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o be_v not_o make_v the_o apostle_n of_o one_o particular_a place_n or_o of_o a_o few_o city_n but_o he_o have_v receive_v commandment_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n through_o asia_n and_o europa_n which_o be_v to_o sail_v in_o a_o most_o wide_a sea_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v wonder_v that_o in_o that_o confuse_a wideness_n god_n beckon_v unto_o he_o as_o it_o be_v by_o reach_v forth_o his_o hand_n how_o far_o he_o will_v have_v he_o go_v or_o whither_o but_o here_o arise_v a_o other_o hard_a question_n why_o the_o lord_n do_v forbid_v paul_n to_o speak_v in_o asia_n and_o suffer_v he_o not_o to_o come_v into_o bythinia_n for_o if_o answer_n be_v make_v that_o these_o gentile_n be_v unworthy_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n we_o may_v again_o demand_v why_o macedonia_n be_v more_o worthy_a those_o who_o desire_v to_o be_v too_o wise_a do_v assign_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o difference_n in_o man_n that_o the_o lord_n vouchsafe_v every_o man_n of_o his_o gospel_n as_o he_o see_v he_o bend_v unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n but_o he_o himself_o say_v far_o otherwise_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o appear_v plain_o to_o those_o which_o seek_v he_o not_o and_o that_o he_o speak_v to_o those_o who_o ask_v not_o of_o he_o for_o whence_o come_v aptness_n to_o be_v teach_v and_o a_o mind_n to_o obey_v but_o from_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o some_o be_v not_o prefer_v before_o othersome_a by_o their_o merit_n see_v that_o all_o man_n be_v natural_o like_o backward_a and_o wayward_a from_o faith_n therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o better_a than_o to_o leave_v free_a power_n to_o god_n to_o vouchsafe_v and_o deprive_v of_o his_o grace_n who_o he_o will_n and_o sure_o as_o his_o eternal_a election_n be_v free_a so_o his_o calling_n be_v also_o free_a which_o flow_v thence_o and_o be_v not_o ground_v in_o man_n see_v that_o he_o be_v not_o indebt_v to_o any_o wherefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o gospel_n spring_v and_o issue_v out_o to_o we_o out_o of_o the_o sole_a fountain_n of_o mere_a grace_n and_o yet_o god_n do_v not_o want_v a_o just_a reason_n why_o he_o offer_v his_o gospel_n to_o some_o and_o pass_v over_o othersome_a but_o i_o say_v that_o that_o reason_n lie_v hide_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n let_v the_o faithful_a know_v that_o they_o be_v call_v free_o when_o other_o be_v set_v aside_o lest_o they_o take_v that_o to_o themselves_o which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o in_o the_o rest_n who_o god_n reject_v for_o no_o manifest_a cause_n let_v they_o learn_v to_o wonder_v at_o the_o deep_a depth_n of_o his_o judgement_n which_o they_o may_v not_o seek_v out_o and_o here_o the_o word_n asia_n be_v take_v for_o that_o part_n which_o be_v proper_o so_o call_v when_o luke_n say_v that_o paul_n and_o his_o companion_n assay_v to_o come_v into_o bythinia_n until_o they_o be_v forbid_v of_o the_o spirit_n he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o direct_v by_o oracle_n save_v only_o when_o need_v require_v as_o the_o lord_n use_v to_o be_v present_a with_o he_o in_o doleful_a and_o uncertain_a matter_n 9_o a_o vision_n by_o night_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o that_o paul_n shall_v stay_v any_o
word_n sabaoth_o that_o luke_n speak_v of_o the_o jew_n second_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o commend_v the_o godliness_n of_o lydia_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o she_o be_v a_o jewesse_n which_o matter_n need_v no_o long_a disputation_n forasmuch_o as_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a offence_n for_o the_o grecian_n &_o roman_n to_o celebrate_v the_o sabaoth_n or_o to_o take_v up_o jewish_a rite_n now_o we_o understand_v that_o the_o jew_n make_v choice_n of_o the_o river_n bank_n that_o they_o may_v there_o pray_v not_o for_o any_o superstition_n sake_n but_o because_o they_o shun_v the_o company_n of_o man_n &_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n if_o any_o man_n object_n why_o do_v not_o every_o man_n pray_v in_o his_o house_n private_o the_o answer_n be_v ready_a that_o this_o be_v a_o solemn_a rite_n of_o pray_v to_o testify_v godliness_n &_o that_o be_v far_o from_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n they_o may_v one_o exhort_v another_o to_o worship_n god_n alone_o &_o that_o they_o may_v nourish_v the_o religion_n receive_v of_o the_o father_n among_o themselves_o as_o touch_v paul_n &_o his_o fellow_n who_o be_v late_o come_v it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o they_o come_v thither_o not_o only_o to_o pray_v but_o also_o because_o they_o hope_v to_o do_v some_o good_a for_o it_o be_v a_o fit_a place_n for_o they_o to_o teach_v in_o be_v far_o from_o noise_n &_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v more_o attentive_a to_o hear_v the_o word_n who_o come_v thither_o to_o pray_v luke_n put_v the_o day_n of_o the_o sabbath_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o sabaoth_v where_o follow_v erasmus_n i_o have_v translate_v it_o there_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v prayer_n the_o old_a interpreter_n have_v do_v seem_v and_o the_o word_n nomizesthai_fw-mi have_v both_o signification_n among_o the_o grecian_n yet_o this_o sense_n be_v more_o fit_a for_o this_o present_a place_n that_o they_o do_v common_o use_v to_o have_v prayer_n there_o we_o speak_v to_o the_o woman_n either_o that_o place_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o assembly_n of_o woman_n or_o else_o religion_n be_v cold_a among_o man_n so_o that_o they_o come_v more_o slow_o howsoever_o it_o be_v we_o see_v that_o the_o holy_a man_n omit_v no_o occasion_n or_o opportunity_n because_o they_o vouchsafe_v to_o offer_v the_o gospel_n even_o to_o woman_n alone_o furthermore_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o seem_v likely_a to_o i_o that_o man_n and_o woman_n make_v their_o prayer_n there_o together_o i_o suppose_v that_o luke_n omit_v the_o man_n either_o because_o they_o will_v not_o hear_v or_o else_o because_o they_o profit_v nothing_o by_o hear_v 14_o a_o woman_n name_v lydia_n if_o they_o have_v be_v hear_v of_o a_o few_o woman_n yet_o this_o have_v be_v but_o to_o enter_v in_o as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o straight_a chink_n but_o now_o whereas_o one_o only_o hear_v attentive_o and_o with_o fruit_n may_v it_o not_o have_v seem_v that_o the_o way_n be_v stop_v before_o christ_n but_o afterward_o there_o sprunge_v a_o noble_a church_n of_o that_o one_o small_a graft_n which_o paul_n set_v out_o with_o many_o excellent_a commendation_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v that_o lydia_n have_v some_o companion_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v because_o she_o do_v far_o excel_v they_o all_o and_o luke_n do_v not_o assign_v that_o for_o the_o cause_n why_o this_o one_o woman_n do_v show_v herself_o apt_a to_o be_v teach_v because_o she_o be_v more_o witty_a than_o the_o rest_n or_o because_o she_o have_v some_o preparation_n of_o herself_o but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n open_v her_o heart_n that_o she_o may_v give_v ear_n and_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o speech_n of_o paul_n he_o have_v of_o late_o commend_v her_o godliness_n and_o yet_o he_o show_v that_o she_o can_v not_o comprehend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n save_v only_o through_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o not_o faith_n alone_o but_o all_o understanding_n and_o knowledge_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v the_o peculiar_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o minister_n do_v no_o good_a by_o teach_v and_o speak_v unless_o the_o inward_a call_n of_o god_n be_v thereunto_o add_v by_o the_o word_n heart_n the_o scripture_n mean_v sometime_o the_o mind_n as_o when_o moses_n say_v god_n have_v not_o give_v thou_o hitherto_o a_o heart_n to_o understand_v so_o likewise_o in_o this_o place_n luke_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o lydia_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o affection_n of_o heart_n to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n but_o that_o her_o mind_n be_v lighten_v that_o she_o may_v understand_v it_o by_o this_o let_v we_o learn_v that_o such_o be_v the_o blockishness_n such_o be_v the_o blindness_n of_o man_n that_o in_o see_v they_o see_v not_o in_o hear_v they_o hear_v not_o until_o such_o time_n as_o god_n do_v give_v they_o new_a eye_n and_o new_a ear_n but_o we_o must_v note_v the_o speech_n that_o the_o heart_n of_o lydia_n be_v open_v that_o she_o may_v give_v ear_n to_o the_o external_a voice_n of_o the_o teacher_n for_o as_o preach_v alone_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o dead_a letter_n so_o we_o must_v beware_v lest_o a_o false_a imagination_n or_o a_o show_n of_o secret_a illumination_n lead_v we_o away_o from_o the_o word_n whereupon_o faith_n depend_v and_o wherein_o it_o rest_v for_o many_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v amplify_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n feign_v to_o themselves_o certain_a inspire_v person_n that_o they_o may_v leave_v no_o use_n of_o the_o external_a word_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o suffer_v any_o such_o divorce_n to_o be_v make_v which_o join_v the_o ministry_n of_o man_n with_o the_o secret_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n unless_o the_o mind_n of_o lydia_n have_v be_v open_v paul_n preach_v shall_v have_v be_v only_o literal_a and_o yet_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o inspire_v she_o with_o bare_a revelation_n only_o but_o he_o give_v she_o the_o reverence_n of_o his_o word_n so_o that_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n which_o may_v otherwise_o have_v be_v utter_v in_o vain_a do_v pierce_v into_o a_o mind_n endue_v with_o heavenly_a light_n therefore_o let_v those_o brainsick_a fellow_n be_v pack_v who_o under_o colour_n of_o the_o spirit_n refuse_v external_a doctrine_n for_o we_o must_v note_v the_o temperature_n or_o moderation_n which_o luke_n set_v down_o here_o that_o we_o can_v have_v or_o obtain_v nothing_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n alone_o without_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v we_o not_o that_o he_o may_v bring_v contempt_n of_o the_o word_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o may_v dip_v into_o our_o mind_n and_o write_v in_o our_o heart_n the_o faith_n thereof_o now_o if_o the_o cause_n be_v demand_v why_o the_o lord_n open_v one_o woman_n heart_n alone_o we_o must_v return_v unto_o that_o principle_n that_o so_o many_o believe_v as_o be_v ordain_v to_o life_n for_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n which_o go_v before_o the_o plain_a and_o manifest_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n in_o lydia_n be_v also_o a_o fruit_n of_o free_a election_n the_o describer_n of_o situation_n of_o place_n say_v that_o thyatira_n be_v a_o city_n of_o lydia_n situate_v upon_o the_o side_n of_o the_o river_n call_v hermus_n and_o that_o it_o be_v sometime_o call_v pelopia_n but_o some_o there_o be_v who_o attribute_n it_o to_o phrygia_n some_o to_o mysia_n 15_o when_o she_o be_v baptize_v hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o effectual_o god_n wrought_v in_o lydia_n even_o in_o a_o short_a moment_n for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o she_o receive_v and_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n sincere_o and_o give_v he_o her_o name_n before_o paul_n will_v admit_v she_o unto_o baptism_n this_o be_v a_o token_n of_o mere_a readiness_n also_o her_o holy_a zeal_n and_o godliness_n do_v therein_o show_v themselves_o in_o that_o she_o do_v also_o consecrate_v her_o family_n to_o god_n and_o sure_o all_o the_o godly_a aught_o to_o have_v this_o desire_n to_o have_v those_o who_o be_v under_o they_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n for_o he_o be_v unworthy_a to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v a_o ruler_n over_o other_o whosoever_o be_v desirous_a to_o reign_v and_o rule_v in_o his_o own_o house_n over_o his_o wife_n child_n servant_n and_o maid_n and_o will_v cause_v they_o to_o give_v no_o place_n to_o christ_n therefore_o let_v every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a study_n to_o govern_v and_o order_v his_o house_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o image_n of_o the_o church_n i_o grant_v that_o lydia_n have_v not_o in_o her_o hand_n the_o heart_n of_o all_o those_o
which_o be_v of_o her_o household_n that_o she_o may_v turn_v unto_o christ_n whosoever_o she_o will_v but_o the_o lord_n do_v bless_v her_o godly_a desire_n so_o that_o she_o have_v all_o her_o household_n obedient_a the_o godly_a as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v must_v endeavour_v with_o might_n and_o main_a to_o drive_v from_o their_o house_n all_o manner_n superstition_n secondlye_o that_o they_o have_v not_o profane_a family_n but_o that_o they_o keep_v they_o under_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v command_v to_o circumcise_v all_o his_o servant_n with_o he_o and_o he_o be_v commend_v for_o the_o care_n he_o have_v to_o govern_v his_o house_n and_o to_o insttuct_v his_o family_n furthermore_o if_o this_o duty_n be_v require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o householder_n much_o more_o of_o a_o prince_n that_o he_o suffer_v not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o be_v profane_v in_o his_o realm_n she_o beseech_v they_o say_v this_o have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o admiration_n when_o she_o say_v if_o you_o have_v judge_v i_o faithful_a as_o if_o she_o shall_v say_v i_o beseech_v you_o by_o that_o faith_n which_o you_o have_v approve_v by_o baptism_n that_o you_o refuse_v not_o to_o lodge_v with_o i_o and_o lydia_n do_v by_o such_o a_o earnest_a desire_n testify_v how_o entire_o she_o love_v the_o gospel_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n give_v she_o such_o a_o affection_n to_o the_o end_n paul_n may_v be_v the_o more_o encourage_v to_o proceed_v not_o only_o because_o he_o see_v that_o he_o be_v liberal_o and_o courteous_o entertain_v but_o also_o because_o he_o may_v thereby_o judge_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o doctrine_n therefore_o this_o be_v not_o the_o woman_n invite_v only_o but_o also_o god_n to_o keep_v paul_n and_o his_o company_n there_o to_o which_o end_n that_o tend_v also_o that_o lydia_n inforce_v they_o as_o if_o god_n do_v lay_v hand_n upon_o they_o and_o stay_v they_o in_o the_o woman_n person_n 16_o and_o it_o happen_v as_o we_o go_v to_o prayer_n a_o certain_a maid_n have_v a_o spirit_n of_o divination_n do_v meet_v we_o which_o bring_v her_o master_n much_o gain_n by_o divine_a 17_o she_o follow_v paul_n and_o we_o and_o cry_v say_v these_o man_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n which_o preach_v to_o we_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n 18_o and_o this_o she_o do_v many_o day_n and_o paul_n take_v it_o greevouslye_o and_o turn_v back_o say_v to_o the_o spirit_n i_o command_v thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o thou_o come_v out_o of_o she_o and_o he_o come_v out_o the_o same_o hour_n 19_o and_o when_o her_o master_n see_v that_o the_o hope_n of_o their_o gain_n be_v go_v have_v take_v paul_n and_o silas_n they_o draw_v they_o into_o the_o market_n place_n to_o the_o ruler_n 20_o and_o when_o they_o have_v present_v they_o to_o the_o magistrate_n they_o say_v these_o man_n trouble_v our_o city_n see_v they_o be_v jew_n 21_o and_o they_o preach_v ordinance_n which_o we_o may_v not_o receive_v nor_o keep_v see_v we_o be_v roman_n 22_o and_o the_o multitude_n come_v together_o against_o they_o and_o when_o the_o magistrate_n have_v rend_v their_o garment_n they_o command_v they_o to_o be_v beat_v with_o rod_n 16_o luke_n prosecute_v the_o increase_n of_o the_o church_n for_o though_o he_o do_v not_o straightway_o in_o a_o word_n express_v that_o thing_n yet_o be_v it_o easy_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o text_n that_o many_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o faith_n or_o at_o lest_o that_o the_o church_n be_v somewhat_o augment_v and_o paul_n do_v not_o frequent_v the_o assembly_n in_o time_n of_o prayer_n in_o vain_a notwithstanding_o luke_n do_v also_o report_v that_o satan_n do_v interrupt_v this_o course_n to_o wit_n because_o after_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v beat_v with_o rod_n &_o cast_v in_o prison_n they_o be_v at_o length_n enforce_v to_o depart_v the_o city_n yet_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o when_o satan_n have_v do_v his_o worst_a there_o be_v some_o body_n of_o the_o church_n gather_v before_o they_o do_v depart_v have_v a_o spirit_n of_o python_n of_o or_o of_o python_n divination_n the_o poet_n do_v feign_v that_o the_o serpent_n call_v python_n be_v slay_v with_o the_o dart_n of_o phoebus_n hereupon_o rise_v another_o invention_n that_o they_o say_v that_o those_o who_o be_v possess_v be_v inspire_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o python_n and_o peradventure_o they_o be_v thereupon_o call_v phoebades_n in_o honour_n of_o apollo_n but_o luke_n follow_v the_o common_a custom_n of_o speak_v because_o he_o show_v the_o error_n of_o the_o common_a people_n and_o not_o through_o what_o inspiration_n the_o maid_n do_v prophesy_v for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o devil_n do_v deceive_v man_n under_o the_o visure_n of_o apollo_n as_o all_o idolatry_n &_o subtlety_n be_v invent_v &_o forge_v in_o his_o shop_n but_o some_o man_n may_v marvel_v that_o the_o devil_n through_o who_o motion_n &_o persuasion_n the_o maid_n do_v cry_v be_v the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o honourable_a commendation_n wherewith_o she_o adorn_v paul_n &_o silas_n &_o the_o rest_n for_o see_v that_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_v how_o can_v the_o truth_n proceed_v from_o he_o second_o how_o be_v it_o that_o he_o give_v place_n willing_o to_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n by_o who_o his_o kingdom_n be_v destroy_v how_o can_v this_o hang_v together_o that_o he_o prepare_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n to_o hear_v the_o gospel_n who_o mortal_a enemy_n he_o be_v assure_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o proper_a to_o he_o then_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o he_o do_v now_o will_n &_o wish_v they_o to_o hear_v whence_o come_v such_o a_o sudden_a change_n or_o unwonted_a motion_n but_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o cover_v himself_o under_o the_o false_a &_o deceivable_a colour_n of_o truth_n there_o he_o play_v another_o person_n through_o his_o crafty_a subtlety_n than_o be_v agreeable_a to_o his_o nature_n that_o by_o creep_v in_o crafty_o he_o may_v do_v the_o more_o hurt_n &_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o lie_n we_o must_v not_o so_o take_v it_o as_o if_o he_o do_v always_o lie_v manifest_o &_o without_o any_o colour_n yea_o rather_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o his_o crafty_a subtlety_n lest_o when_o he_o pretend_v the_o colour_n of_o truth_n he_o deceive_v we_o under_o a_o vain_a show_n we_o see_v also_o how_o he_o use_v like_o subtlety_n daily_o for_o what_o can_v bear_v a_o fair_a show_n than_o the_o pope_n his_o title_n wherein_o he_o do_v not_o boast_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o adversary_n of_o christ_n but_o his_o vicar_n what_o can_v be_v more_o plausible_a than_o that_o solemn_a preface_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n amen_o notwithstanding_o we_o know_v that_o while_o the_o hypocritical_a minister_n of_o satan_n do_v thus_o pretend_v the_o truth_n they_o corrupt_v it_o &_o with_o a_o deadly_a corruption_n infect_v it_o see_v that_o satan_n have_v a_o double_a way_n to_o resist_v the_o gospel_n to_o wit_n because_o he_o do_v sometime_o rage_n open_o &_o sometime_o he_o creep_v in_o crafty_o under_o lie_n he_o have_v also_o two_o kind_n of_o lie_v and_o deceive_v either_o when_o he_o overthrow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o false_a doctrine_n &_o gross_a superstition_n or_o else_o when_o he_o do_v crafty_o feign_v that_o he_o be_v a_o friend_n of_o the_o word_n and_o so_o do_v insinuate_v himself_o subtle_o yea_o he_o do_v never_o hurt_v more_o deadly_a than_o when_o he_o transfourm_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n now_o we_o perceive_v to_o what_o end_n that_o so_o gorgeous_a a_o title_n do_v tend_v wherewith_o he_o do_v extol_v paul_n and_o his_o companion_n name_n lie_v because_o it_o be_v not_o so_o convenient_a for_o he_o to_o make_v open_a war_n against_o the_o gospel_n he_o go_v about_o to_o overthrow_v the_o credit_n thereof_o by_o secret_a shift_n for_o if_o paul_n have_v admit_v that_o testimony_n there_o shall_v have_v be_v no_o long_o any_o difference_n between_o the_o wholesome_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o mock_n of_o satan_n the_o light_n and_o brightness_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v have_v be_v entangle_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o lie_v and_o so_o quite_o put_v out_o but_o the_o question_n be_v why_o god_n do_v grant_v satan_n so_o great_a liberty_n as_o to_o suffer_v he_o to_o deceive_v miserable_a man_n and_o to_o bewitch_v they_o with_o true_a divination_n for_o
the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n yet_o be_v it_o certain_a that_o he_o be_v draw_v thither_o with_o some_o great_a necessity_n and_o yet_o we_o may_v gather_v by_o this_o text_n that_o he_o stay_v not_o long_o at_o jerusalem_n peradventure_o because_o thing_n fall_v not_o out_o as_o he_o will_v moreover_o he_o declare_v that_o his_o journey_n in_o his_o return_n be_v not_o idle_a or_o barren_a in_o that_o he_o say_v that_o he_o strengthen_v all_o the_o disciple_n undoubted_o not_o without_o great_a pain_n take_v because_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o go_v hither_o and_o thither_o and_o oft_o to_o turn_v out_o of_o his_o way_n for_o this_o word_n cathex_v do_v signify_v a_o continual_a course_n now_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v in_o what_o respect_n those_o be_v call_v disciple_n who_o have_v give_v their_o name_n to_o christ_n 9.36_o cha._n 9.36_o and_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n because_o there_o be_v no_o godliness_n without_o true_a instruction_n they_o have_v in_o deed_n their_o pastor_n under_o who_o they_o may_v profit_v yet_o the_o great_a paul_n his_o authority_n be_v and_o the_o more_o excellent_a spirit_n he_o have_v give_v he_o so_o they_o be_v not_o a_o little_a strengthen_v by_o his_o pass_v by_o they_o especial_o see_v he_o be_v the_o chief_a workmaster_n in_o the_o sound_n of_o all_o these_o church_n 24_o and_o a_o certain_a jew_n name_v apollo_n bear_v in_o alexandria_n a_o eloquent_a man_n come_z to_z ephesus_z be_v mighty_a in_o the_o scripture_n 25_o he_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n &_o be_v fervent_a in_o the_o spirit_n he_o speak_v and_o teach_v diligent_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o lord_n know_v only_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n 26_o and_o he_o begin_v to_o speak_v free_o in_o the_o synagogue_n who_o when_o priscilla_n and_o aquila_n have_v hear_v they_o take_v he_o to_o their_o company_n &_o show_v he_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n more_o perfect_o 27_o and_o when_o he_o be_v determine_v to_o go_v into_o achaia_n the_o brethren_n exhort_v he_o write_v to_o the_o disciple_n that_o they_o shall_v receive_v he_o who_o when_o he_o be_v come_v he_o help_v they_o much_o who_o have_v believe_v through_o grace_n 28_o for_o he_o overcome_v the_o jew_n mighty_o and_o that_o open_o show_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n 24_o a_o certain_a jew._n this_o aught_o for_o good_a cause_n to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o that_o while_n paul_n be_v enforce_v to_o depart_v from_o ephesus_n apollos_n come_v in_o his_o place_n to_o supply_v his_o absence_n and_o it_o be_v very_o expedient_a to_o know_v the_o beginning_n of_o this_o man_n of_o what_o sort_n it_o be_v for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v also_o paul_n his_o successor_n among_o the_o corinthian_n &_o do_v behave_v himself_o so_o excellent_o and_o do_v his_o faithful_a endeavour_n and_o take_v great_a pain_n so_o that_o paul_n commend_v he_o honourable_o as_o a_o singular_a fellow_n in_o office_n i_o have_v plant_v say_v he_o apollo_n have_v water_v 3.6.4.6_o 1._o cor._n 3.6.4.6_o also_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o figurative_o appoint_v unto_o myself_o and_o apollos_n luke_n give_v he_o first_o two_o title_n of_o commendation_n that_o he_o be_v eloquent_a &_o mighty_a in_o the_o scripture_n afterward_o he_o will_v add_v his_o zeal_n faith_n and_o constancy_n and_o though_o paul_n do_v true_o deny_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n consist_v in_o word_n and_o he_o himself_o be_v not_o commend_v for_o eloquence_n yet_o dexterity_n in_o speak_v &_o reason_v such_o as_o luke_n do_v here_o commend_v be_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v especial_o when_o no_o pomp_n or_o vain_a boast_v be_v seek_v after_o by_o use_v fine_a word_n &_o great_a eloquence_n but_o he_o which_o be_v to_o teach_v count_v it_o sufficient_a for_o he_o without_o fraud_n or_o ambition_n without_o lofty_a wordâ_n &_o curious_a cunning_n plain_o to_o lay_v open_a the_o matter_n he_o have_v in_o hand_n paul_n be_v without_o eloquence_n the_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o chief_a apostle_n to_o want_v this_o virtue_n to_o the_o end_n the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v appear_v more_o excellent_a in_o his_o rude_a &_o homely_a speech_n and_o yet_o be_v he_o furnish_v with_o such_o eloquence_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o set_v forth_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n &_o to_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n but_o as_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v diverse_a &_o manifold_a paul_n his_o infancy_n that_o i_o may_v so_o call_v it_o do_v no_o whit_n let_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n may_v choose_v to_o himself_o eloquent_a minister_n furthermore_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o apollo_n his_o eloquence_n be_v profane_a or_o vain_a luke_n say_v that_o it_o be_v join_v with_o great_a power_n namely_o that_o he_o be_v mighty_a in_o the_o scripture_n which_o i_o expound_v thus_o that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o well_o and_o sound_o exercise_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o he_o have_v the_o force_n and_o efficacye_n thereof_o that_o be_v arm_v with_o they_o he_o do_v in_o all_o conflict_n get_v the_o upper_a hand_n and_o this_o in_o my_o judgement_n be_v rather_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o scripture_n then_o of_o man_n that_o it_o have_v sufficient_a force_n both_o to_o defend_v the_o truth_n and_o also_o to_o refute_v the_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n 25_o he_o be_v instruct_v that_o which_o luke_n add_v short_o after_o seem_v not_o to_o agree_v with_o this_o commendation_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o know_v only_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n but_o this_o late_a member_n be_v add_v by_o way_n of_o correction_n nevertheless_o these_o two_o agree_v very_o well_o together_o that_o he_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o he_o both_o know_v that_o the_o redeemer_n be_v give_v to_o the_o world_n and_o also_o be_v well_o and_o sincere_o instruct_v concern_v the_o grace_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o yet_o have_v he_o be_v train_v up_o only_o in_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o much_o as_o can_v be_v have_v out_o of_o john_n his_o institution_n 17._o luke_n 1.76_o ib._n 16._o &_o 17._o for_o we_o know_v that_o john_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o his_o office_n do_v both_o his_o father_n zacharias_n entreat_v in_o his_o songue_n and_o also_o the_o angel_n out_o of_o the_o prophesy_v of_o malachi_n sure_o see_v that_o he_o carry_v the_o light_n before_o christ_n and_o do_v high_o extol_v his_o power_n his_o disciple_n be_v for_o good_a cause_n say_v to_o have_v have_v knowledge_n of_o christ_n moreover_o the_o speech_n be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o he_o know_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n for_o thence_o we_o gather_v the_o true_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o enter_v we_o in_o some_o certain_a kind_n of_o doctrine_n or_o that_o they_o establish_v that_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v embrace_v sure_o it_o be_v wickedness_n and_o impious_a profanation_n to_o pull_v they_o away_o from_o doctrine_n wherefore_o that_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v right_o administer_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n must_v sound_v there_o for_o what_o be_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n luke_n comprehend_v all_o his_o ministry_n under_o this_o word_n not_o only_o because_o doctrine_n be_v annex_v unto_o baptism_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o head_n thereof_o without_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o vain_a and_o dead_a ceremony_n be_v fervent_a in_o spirit_n he_o speak_v apollo_n have_v another_o commendation_n give_v he_o in_o these_o word_n that_o he_o be_v inflame_v with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n to_o teach_v doctrine_n without_o zeal_n be_v either_o like_o a_o sword_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o mad_a man_n or_o else_o it_o lie_v still_o as_o cold_a and_o without_o use_n or_o else_o it_o serve_v âor_a vain_a and_o wicked_a boâsting_n for_o we_o see_v that_o some_o learned_a man_n become_v slothful_a othersome_a which_o be_v worse_o become_v ambitious_a othersome_a which_o be_v of_o all_o the_o worst_a trouble_v the_o church_n with_o contention_n and_o brawl_v therefore_o that_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v unsavery_a which_o be_v not_o join_v with_o zeal_n but_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o luke_n put_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o first_o place_n which_o must_v be_v the_o moderation_n of_o zeal_n for_o we_o know_v that_o many_o be_v fervent_a without_o consideration_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v rage_n against_o the_o gospel_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o perverse_a affection_n which_o they_o do_v bear_v towards_o the_o law_n and_o even_o at_o this_o day_n we_o see_v how_o hot_a the_o papist_n be_v who_o be_v carry_v headlong_o with_o furious_a violence_n be_v
month_n because_o he_o do_v crafty_o cover_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o do_v insinuate_v himself_o by_o certain_a dark_a crook_n luke_n do_v also_o by_o and_o by_o express_v some_o token_n of_o boldness_n show_v that_o he_o dispute_v and_o persuade_v touch_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o we_o know_v that_o by_o this_o word_n be_v oftentimes_o note_v that_o restore_v which_o be_v promise_v to_o the_o father_n and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v fulfil_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n for_o see_v that_o without_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o evil_a favour_a and_o confuse_a scatter_v abroad_o and_o ruin_v of_o all_o thing_n the_o prophet_n do_v attribute_v this_o not_o in_o vain_a to_o the_o messiah_n who_o be_v to_o come_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o shall_v establish_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n and_o now_o because_o this_o kingdom_n do_v bring_v we_o back_o from_o fall_v and_o slide_v back_o unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n and_o make_v we_o son_n of_o enemy_n it_o consist_v first_o in_o the_o free_a forgiveness_n of_o sin_n whereby_o god_n do_v reconcile_v we_o to_o himself_o and_o do_v adopt_v we_o to_o be_v his_o people_n second_o in_o newness_n of_o life_n whereby_o he_o fashion_v and_o make_v we_o like_a to_o his_o own_o image_n he_o say_v that_o he_o dispute_v and_o persuade_v mean_v that_o paul_n do_v so_o dispute_v that_o he_o prove_v that_o with_o sound_a reason_n which_o he_o do_v allege_v that_o do_v he_o use_v the_o prick_v of_o godly_a exhortation_n whereby_o he_o prick_v forward_o his_o hearer_n for_o no_o profound_a disputation_n shall_v make_v we_o obedient_a to_o god_n unless_o we_o be_v move_v with_o godly_a admonition_n 9_o see_v their_o heart_n be_v harden_v we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o paul_n be_v hear_v so_o patient_o &_o so_o favourable_o by_o the_o jew_n at_o any_o place_n as_o at_z ephesus_z at_o his_o first_o come_v for_o where_o as_o other_o raise_n tumult_n do_v drive_v he_o away_o he_o be_v request_v by_o these_o to_o tarry_v long_o now_o after_o that_o he_o have_v endeavour_v by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o month_n to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n among_o they_o the_o ungodliness_n and_o stubbornness_n of_o many_o do_v show_v itself_o for_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o be_v harden_v and_o sure_o such_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n that_o it_o do_v either_o make_v the_o reprobate_n mad_a or_o else_o more_o obstinate_a &_o that_o not_o of_o nature_n but_o accidental_o as_o they_o say_v because_o when_o they_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o truth_n their_o secret_a poison_n break_v out_o luke_n add_v that_o they_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o way_n before_o the_o people_n for_o the_o contemner_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v resist_v that_o dead_o among_o other_o which_o they_o will_v not_o embrace_v and_o this_o do_v they_o to_o no_o other_o end_n save_v only_o because_o they_o be_v desirous_a if_o it_o can_v be_v to_o have_v all_o man_n partner_n in_o their_o impiety_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o every_o ordinance_n be_v understand_v by_o this_o word_n way_n but_o here_o it_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n now_o luke_n say_v that_o paul_n depart_v from_o they_o and_o do_v separate_v the_o brethren_n by_o which_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o when_o we_o have_v experience_n of_o desperate_a and_o uncurable_a stubbornness_n we_o must_v loose_v our_o labour_n no_o long_o therefore_o paul_n admonish_v titus_n to_o avoid_v a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n 3.10_o tit._n 3.10_o after_o once_o or_o twice_o admonition_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v unjust_o blaspheme_v if_o it_o be_v cast_v to_o dog_n and_o swine_n also_o we_o must_v provide_v for_o the_o weak_a least_o through_o wicked_a backbiting_n and_o slander_v of_o sound_a doctrine_n their_o godliness_n be_v subvert_v therefore_o paul_n do_v separate_v the_o disciple_n lest_o the_o goat_n shall_v with_o their_o stink_n infect_v the_o flock_n of_o sheep_n second_o that_o the_o pure_a woorshipper_n of_o god_n may_v make_v profession_n free_o dispute_v daily_o this_o place_n show_v how_o continual_a paul_n his_o diligence_n be_v in_o teach_v and_o that_o they_o be_v too_o churlish_a &_o dainty_a who_o be_v straight_a way_n weary_a of_o learning_n for_o we_o see_v how_o few_o come_v daily_a who_o be_v ready_a and_o apt_a to_o hear_v and_o though_o he_o have_v a_o particular_a care_n for_o the_o household_n flock_n which_o he_o have_v gather_v as_o into_o a_o sheepfold_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o suffer_v stranger_n to_o be_v destitute_a of_o his_o industry_n but_o continue_v the_o course_n of_o his_o disputation_n he_o tri_v whether_o he_o can_v find_v any_o which_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v teach_v he_o call_v it_o the_o school_n of_o tyrannus_n mean_v no_o such_o man_n as_o have_v get_v the_o government_n of_o asia_n for_o the_o roman_n bare_a rule_n throughout_o all_o asia_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o school_n be_v build_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o one_o tyrannus_n and_o give_v to_o the_o city_n therefore_o the_o faithful_a do_v use_v a_o public_a place_n which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o builder_n where_o they_o have_v their_o assembly_n 10_o all_o which_o dwell_v luke_n do_v not_o mean_a that_o the_o man_n of_o asia_n come_v thither_o to_o hear_v paul_n but_o that_o the_o smell_v of_o his_o preach_n go_v throughout_o all_o asia_n and_o that_o the_o seed_n be_v sow_v far_o and_o wide_o so_o that_o his_o labour_n be_v fruitful_a not_o only_o to_o one_o city_n but_o also_o to_o place_n which_o be_v far_o off_o and_o that_o come_v to_o pass_v oftentimes_o that_o when_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v in_o one_o place_n it_o sound_v where_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o minister_n can_v sound_v be_v spread_v abroad_o far_o and_o wide_o because_o it_o be_v deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n and_o one_o do_v teach_v another_o for_o one_o man_n be_v not_o sufficient_a unless_o every_o man_n be_v for_o himself_o diligent_a to_o spread_v abroad_o the_o faith_n 11_o no_o small_a miracle_n he_o call_v miracle_n virtutes_fw-la or_o power_n after_o the_o common_a custom_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v testimony_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a power_n of_o god_n and_o he_o show_v that_o paul_n his_o apostleship_n be_v set_v forth_o with_o these_o ensign_n that_o his_o doctrine_n may_v have_v the_o great_a authority_n for_o it_o be_v a_o common_a speech_n that_o wonder_n &_o sign_n be_v show_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n so_o that_o the_o praise_n thereof_o be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n alone_o as_o to_o the_o author_n &_o man_n be_v only_o the_o minister_n and_o that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o amplify_v the_o miracle_n he_o say_v that_o handkircheffe_n and_o partler_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o sick_a which_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o touch_v they_o be_v heal_v it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o what_o end_n paul_n have_v such_o power_n give_v he_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o may_v prove_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o true_a apostle_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v make_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o may_v confirm_v his_o ministry_n and_o here_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o call_v to_o mind_n those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v before_o touch_v the_o lawful_a use_n of_o miracle_n and_o whereas_o god_n do_v heal_v the_o sick_a with_o paul_n handkirchiffe_n it_o tend_v to_o that_o end_n that_o even_o those_o who_o have_v never_o see_v the_o man_n may_v notwithstanding_o reverent_o embrace_v his_o doctrine_n though_o he_o himself_o be_v absent_a for_o which_o cause_n the_o papist_n be_v more_o blockish_a who_o wrest_v this_o place_n unto_o their_o relic_n as_o if_o paul_n send_v his_o handkircheffe_n that_o man_n may_v worship_v they_o and_o kiss_v they_o in_o honour_n of_o he_o as_o in_o papistry_n they_o worship_v frances_n his_o shoe_n and_o mantill_o rose_n girdle_n saint_n margaret_n comb_n and_o such_o like_a trifle_n yea_o rather_o he_o do_v choose_v most_o simple_a thing_n lest_o any_o superstition_n shall_v arise_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o price_n or_o pomp_n for_o he_o be_v full_o determine_v to_o keep_v christ_n his_o glory_n sound_n and_o undiminish_v 13_o and_o certain_a of_o the_o vagabound_a jews_n exorcist_n assay_v to_o name_v over_o those_o which_o have_v evil_a spirit_n the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v we_o adjure_v you_o by_o jesus_n who_o paul_n preach_v 14_o and_o there_o be_v certain_a son_n of_o sceva_n a_o jew_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o priest_n who_o do_v this_o 15_o and_o the_o evil_a spirit_n answer_v and_o say_v jesus_n i_o know_v and_o paul_n i_o know_v but_o who_o be_v you_o 16_o and_o the_o man_n in_o who_o the_o evil_a spirit_n be_v run_v upon_o
jerusalem_n say_v after_o that_o i_o have_v be_v there_o i_o must_v also_o see_v rome_n 22_o and_o when_o he_o have_v send_v two_o of_o those_o which_o minister_v to_o he_o into_o macedonia_n to_o wit_n timotheus_n and_o erastus_n he_o stay_v for_o a_o time_n in_o asia_n 18_o many_o which_o believe_v luke_n bring_v forth_o one_o token_n of_o that_o fear_n whereof_o he_o speak_v for_o they_o do_v in_o deed_n declare_v that_o they_o be_v thorough_o touch_v and_o move_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n who_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n do_v confess_v the_o fault_n and_o offence_n of_o their_o former_a life_n lest_o through_o their_o dissimulation_n they_o shall_v nourish_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n within_o we_o know_v what_o a_o hard_a matter_n it_o be_v to_o wring_v true_a confession_n out_o of_o those_o who_o have_v offend_v for_o see_v man_n count_v nothing_o more_o precious_a than_o their_o estimation_n they_o make_v more_o account_n of_o shame_n then_o of_o truth_n yea_o so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v they_o seek_v to_o cover_v their_o shame_n therefore_o this_o voluntary_a confession_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o repentance_n &_o of_o fear_n for_o no_o man_n unless_o he_o be_v thorough_o touch_v will_v make_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o slander_n &_o reproach_n of_o man_n &_o will_v willing_o be_v judge_v upon_o earth_n that_o he_o may_v be_v loose_v and_o acquit_v in_o heaven_n when_o he_o say_v many_o by_o this_o we_o gather_v that_o they_o have_v not_o all_o one_o cause_n for_o it_o may_v be_v that_o these_o man_n have_v corrupt_a conscience_n a_o long_a time_n as_o many_o be_v oftentimes_o infect_v with_o hide_a and_o inward_a vice_n wherefore_o luke_n do_v not_o prescribe_v all_o man_n a_o common_a law_n but_o he_o set_v before_o they_o a_o example_n which_o thosâ_n must_v follow_v who_o need_n like_o medicine_n for_o why_o do_v these_o man_n confess_v their_o fact_n save_v only_o that_o they_o may_v give_v testimony_n of_o their_o repentance_n and_o seek_v counsel_n and_o ease_v at_o paul_n hand_n it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o those_o who_o come_v unto_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n confess_v their_o sin_n 3.6_o mat._n 3.6_o for_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o do_v confess_v that_o they_o do_v enter_v into_o repentance_n without_o dissimulation_n but_o in_o this_o place_n luke_n teach_v by_o one_o kind_n after_o what_o sort_n the_o faithful_a be_v touch_v with_o the_o reverence_n of_o god_n when_o god_n set_v before_o they_o a_o example_n of_o his_o severity_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o impudency_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v the_o great_a who_o colour_n their_o tyranny_n by_o this_o fact_n for_o wherein_o do_v their_o auricular_a confession_n agree_v with_o this_o example_n first_o the_o faithful_a confess_v how_o miserable_o they_o have_v be_v deceive_v by_o satan_n before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o faith_n bring_v into_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n certain_a example_n but_o by_o the_o pope_n law_n it_o be_v require_v that_o man_n reckon_v up_o all_o their_o word_n and_o deed_n and_o thought_n we_o read_v that_o those_o man_n confess_v this_o once_o the_o pope_n law_n command_v that_o it_o be_v repeat_v every_o year_n at_o least_o these_o man_n make_v confession_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n the_o pope_n bind_v all_o man_n with_o necessity_n luke_n say_v there_o come_v many_o not_o all_o in_o the_o pope_n his_o law_n there_o be_v no_o exception_n these_o man_n humble_v themselves_o before_o the_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o pope_n give_v a_o far_a other_o commandment_n that_o the_o sinner_n confess_v his_o sin_n whisper_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o one_o priest_n lo_o how_o well_o they_o apply_v the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v their_o subtlety_n 19_o who_o use_v curious_a craft_n luke_n do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o magical_a juggling_n but_o of_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a study_n whereof_o the_o more_o part_n of_o man_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n too_o desirous_a for_o he_o use_v the_o word_n perierga_fw-la under_o which_o the_o grecian_n comprehend_v whatsoever_o thing_n have_v in_o themselves_o no_o sound_a commodity_n but_o lead_v man_n mind_n and_o study_n through_o diverse_a crook_n unprofitablie_o such_o be_v judicial_a astrology_n as_o they_o call_v it_o and_o whatsoever_o divination_n man_n invent_v to_o themselves_o against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v they_o burn_v their_o book_n that_o they_o may_v cut_v off_o all_o occasion_n of_o err_a both_o for_o themselves_o and_o for_o other_o and_o whereas_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o price_n do_v not_o call_v they_o back_o from_o indamage_v themselves_o so_o much_o they_o do_v thereby_o better_a declare_v the_o study_n of_o their_o godliness_n therefore_o as_o luke_n do_v of_o late_o describe_v their_o confession_n in_o word_n so_o now_o he_o set_v down_o the_o confession_n they_o make_v in_o deed_n but_o because_o the_o grecian_n take_v argurion_n for_o all_o kind_n of_o money_n it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o luke_n do_v speak_v of_o penny_n or_o sestertians_n notwithstanding_o because_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o express_v a_o sum_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o faithful_a do_v valiant_o contemn_v gaineâ_n i_o do_v nothing_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o mean_v penny_n or_o some_o other_o better_a kind_n of_o coin_n and_o fifty_o thousand_o peace_n make_v about_o nine_o thousand_o pound_n of_o french_a money_n 20_o grow_v mighty_o the_o word_n cata_fw-la cratos_fw-la do_v signify_v that_o the_o word_n increase_v not_o a_o little_a or_o that_o these_o procceding_n be_v not_o common_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o in_o those_o increasing_n appear_v rare_a efficacy_n and_o such_o as_o be_v great_a than_o it_o use_v common_o to_o be_v the_o word_n grow_v do_v i_o refer_v unto_o the_o number_n of_o man_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v increase_v new_a disciple_n be_v gather_v together_o daily_o because_o doctrine_n be_v spread_v abroad_o and_o i_o interpret_v that_o that_o the_o word_n be_v confirm_v in_o every_o one_o thus_o to_o wit_n that_o they_o do_v profit_n in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o godliness_n more_o and_o more_o &_o that_o their_o faith_n take_v deep_a root_n 21_o he_o purpose_v in_o spirit_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o paul_n purpose_v to_o take_v his_o journey_n through_o the_o instinct_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o all_o his_o whole_a life_n be_v frame_v according_a to_o god_n will_v and_o pleasure_n and_o therefore_o have_v he_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o his_o action_n because_o he_o do_v both_o give_v over_o himself_o by_o he_o to_o be_v rule_v and_o do_v also_o depend_v upon_o his_o government_n neither_o skill_v that_o which_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v not_o that_o success_n in_o his_o journey_n which_o he_o do_v hope_n for_o for_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o govern_v and_o rule_v his_o faithful_a servant_n suffer_v they_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o end_n for_o he_o will_v have_v they_o so_o far_o forth_o addict_v to_o he_o that_o they_o follow_v that_o which_o he_o have_v show_v they_o by_o his_o spirit_n even_o shut_v their_o eye_n when_o matter_n be_v doubtful_a moreover_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o be_v whole_o addict_v to_o profit_v the_o church_n omit_v and_o forslow_v his_o own_o commodity_n in_o that_o he_o have_v rather_o deprive_v himself_o of_o timotheus_n a_o most_o excellent_a to_o he_o of_o all_o most_o faithful_a most_o dear_a final_o a_o most_o fit_a companion_n than_o not_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o macedonian_n 23_o and_o at_o that_o time_n there_o happen_v no_o small_a tumult_n about_o that_o way_n 24_o for_o a_o certain_a man_n name_v demetrius_n a_o silver_n smyth_n which_o make_v silver_n shrine_v for_o diana_n bring_v we_o small_a gain_n to_o the_o man_n of_o that_o occupation_n 25_o who_o when_o he_o have_v call_v together_o and_o those_o who_o be_v maker_n of_o like_a thing_n he_o say_v man_n you_o know_v that_o by_o this_o craft_n we_o have_v advantage_n 26_o and_o you_o see_v and_o hear_v that_o not_o only_o at_o ephesus_n but_o almost_o throughout_o all_o asia_n this_o paul_n have_v persuade_v and_o turn_v away_o much_o people_n say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o god_n which_o be_v make_v with_o hand_n 27_o and_o not_o only_o this_o part_n come_v in_o danger_n to_o we_o lest_o it_o be_v set_v at_o nought_o but_o also_o lest_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o great_a goddess_n diana_n be_v despice_v and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o her_o majesty_n be_v destroy_v who_o all_o asia_n and_o the_o world_n worship_v 28_o when_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n they_o be_v full_a of_o wrath_n and_o cry_v out_o say_v great_a be_v diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n 23_o tumult_n about_o that_o way_n concern_v this_o
of_o a_o long_a and_o wearisome_a journey_n unless_o he_o be_v also_o bring_v in_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n by_o those_o which_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o he_o let_v all_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n set_v this_o mirror_n before_o their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v never_o faint_v through_o the_o wearisomnes_n of_o strait_n notwithstanding_o when_o paul_n do_v journey_n another_o way_n that_o he_o may_v avoid_v their_o lay_n in_o wait_n he_o show_v that_o we_o must_v have_v regard_n of_o our_o life_n so_o far_o forth_o that_o we_o throw_v not_o ourselves_o headlong_o into_o the_o midst_n of_o danger_n and_o those_o who_o accompany_v he_o give_v no_o small_a testimony_n of_o their_o godliness_n and_o we_o see_v how_o precious_a his_o life_n be_v to_o the_o faithful_a when_o as_o a_o great_a many_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o diverse_a country_n to_o be_v his_o companion_n do_v for_o his_o sake_n take_v a_o hard_a &_o sharp_a journey_n not_o without_o great_a charge_n luke_n say_v that_o paul_n tarry_v at_o philippos_n so_o long_o as_o the_o day_n of_o unleavened_a bread_n do_v last_o because_o he_o have_v at_o that_o time_n better_o opportunity_n offer_v to_o teach_v and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v unknown_a as_o yet_o that_o the_o law_n be_v disannul_v it_o stand_v he_o upon_o to_o beware_v least_o by_o neglect_v the_o feast_n day_n he_o shall_v be_v think_v among_o the_o rude_a to_o be_v a_o contemner_n of_o god_n though_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o think_v that_o he_o seek_v principal_o opportunity_n to_o teach_v because_o the_o jew_n be_v then_o more_o attentive_a to_o learn_v 7_o and_o upon_o one_o day_n of_o the_o sabbothe_n when_o the_o disciple_n be_v come_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n paul_n dispute_v with_o they_o be_v about_o to_o take_v his_o journey_n on_o the_o morrow_n and_o he_o prolong_v his_o speech_n until_o midnight_n 8_o and_o there_o be_v many_o light_n in_o a_o upper_a chamber_n where_o they_o be_v gather_v together_o 9_o and_o a_o certain_a young_a man_n name_v eutichus_n sit_v in_o a_o window_n be_v fall_v into_o a_o deep_a sleep_n as_o paul_n dispute_v long_o time_n be_v more_o overcome_v with_o sleep_n he_o fall_v down_o from_o the_o three_o loft_n downward_o and_o be_v take_v up_o dead_a 10_o and_o when_o paul_n come_v down_o he_o fall_v upon_o he_o &_o embrace_v he_o say_v be_v not_o you_o trouble_v for_o his_o soul_n be_v in_o he_o 11_o and_o when_o he_o be_v go_v up_o and_o have_v break_v bread_n and_o have_v eat_v have_v have_v long_a conference_n until_o it_o be_v day_n he_o depart_v 12_o and_o they_o bring_v the_o boy_n alive_a and_o be_v not_o a_o little_a comfort_v 13_o but_o when_o we_o have_v take_v ship_n we_o loose_v to_o asson_n thence_o to_o receive_v paul_n for_o so_o have_v he_o appoint_v be_v about_o to_o go_v by_o land_n 7_o and_o in_o one_o day_n either_o do_v he_o mean_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n which_o be_v next_o after_o the_o sabbath_n or_o else_o some_o certain_a sabbath_n which_o latter_a thing_n may_v seem_v to_o i_o more_o probable_a for_o this_o cause_n because_o that_o day_n be_v more_o fit_a for_o a_o assembly_n according_a to_o custom_n but_o see_v it_o be_v no_o new_a matter_n for_o the_o evangelist_n to_o put_v one_o instead_o of_o the_o first_o 20.1_o mat._n 26.1_o luk._n 24.1_o joh._n 20.1_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n it_o shall_v very_o well_o agree_v that_o on_o the_o morrow_n after_o the_o sabbath_n they_o come_v together_o furthermore_o it_o be_v too_o cold_a to_o expound_v this_o of_o any_o day_n for_o to_o what_o end_n be_v there_o mention_v of_o the_o sabbath_n save_v only_o that_o he_o may_v note_v the_o opportunity_n &_o choice_n of_o the_o time_n also_o it_o be_v a_o likely_a matter_n that_o paul_n wait_v for_o the_o sabbath_n that_o the_o day_n before_o his_o departure_n he_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o gather_v all_o the_o disciple_n into_o one_o place_n and_o the_o zeal_n of_o they_o all_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n in_o that_o it_o be_v no_o trouble_n to_o paul_n to_o teach_v until_o midnight_n though_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o take_v his_o journey_n neither_o be_v the_o rest_n weary_a of_o learning_n for_o he_o have_v no_o other_o cause_n to_o continue_v his_o speech_n so_o long_o save_v only_o the_o desire_n and_o attentivenes_n of_o his_o auditory_a to_o break_v bread_n though_o break_v of_o bread_n do_v sometime_o signify_v among_o the_o hebrew_n a_o domestical_a banquet_n yet_o do_v i_o expound_v the_o same_o of_o the_o holy_a supper_n in_o this_o place_n be_v move_v with_o two_o reason_n for_o see_v we_o may_v easy_o gather_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o small_a multitude_n gather_v together_o there_o it_o be_v unlikely_a that_o there_o can_v any_o supper_n be_v prepare_v in_o a_o private_a house_n again_o luke_n will_v afterward_o declare_v that_o paul_n take_v bread_n not_o at_o supper_n time_n but_o after_o midnight_n hereunto_o be_v add_v that_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o take_v meat_n that_o he_o may_v eat_v but_o that_o he_o may_v only_o taste_v therefore_o i_o think_v thus_o that_o they_o have_v appoint_v a_o solemn_a day_n for_o the_o celebrate_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n of_o the_o lord_n among_o themselves_o which_o may_v be_v commodious_a for_o they_o all_o and_o to_o the_o end_n paul_n may_v remedy_v after_o a_o sort_n the_o silence_n of_o long_a absence_n he_o continue_v his_o speech_n long_o than_o he_o do_v common_o use_v to_o do_v that_o which_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o man_n be_v gather_v thence_o because_o there_o be_v many_o light_n in_o the_o upper_a chamber_n which_o be_v not_o do_v for_o any_o pomp_n or_o ostentation_n but_o only_o for_o necessity_n sake_n for_o when_o there_o be_v no_o need_n it_o be_v ambition_n &_o vanity_n which_o make_v man_n bestow_v cost_n furthermore_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o all_o the_o whole_a place_n shall_v shine_v with_o light_n least_o that_o holy_a company_n may_v be_v suspect_v of_o some_o wickedness_n or_o dishonesty_n add_v also_o another_o conjecture_n if_o the_o chamber_n have_v be_v emptye_n those_o which_o be_v present_a will_v not_o have_v suffer_v eutichus_n to_o sit_v upon_o a_o window_n for_o it_o have_v be_v filthy_a licenciousnes_n in_o despise_v the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n to_o depart_v aside_o into_o a_o widow_n see_v there_o be_v room_n enough_o elsewhere_o 9_o when_o he_o be_v fall_v into_o a_o deep_a sleep_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o some_o interpreter_n shall_v so_o sore_o &_o sharp_o condenn_v the_o drowsiness_n of_o the_o young_a man_n that_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o be_v punish_v for_o his_o sluggishness_n by_o death_n for_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o see_v the_o night_n be_v so_o far_o spend_v have_v strive_v so_o long_o with_o sleep_n he_o yield_v at_o length_n and_o whereas_o against_o his_o will_n and_o otherwise_o then_o he_o hope_v for_o he_o be_v take_v and_o overcome_v with_o deep_a sleep_n we_o may_v guess_v by_o this_o that_o he_o do_v not_o settle_v himself_o to_o sleep_v to_o seek_v out_o a_o fit_a place_n wherein_o to_o sleep_v have_v be_v a_o sign_n of_o sluggishness_n but_o to_o be_v overcome_v with_o sleep_n sit_v at_o a_o window_n what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o but_o without_o fault_n to_o yield_v to_o nature_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v faint_v through_o hunger_n or_o too_o much_o wearisomnes_n those_o who_o be_v drown_v in_o earthly_a care_n come_v unto_o the_o word_n lothsom_o those_o who_o be_v full_o of_o meat_n and_o wine_n be_v thereby_o bring_v on_o sleep_n those_o who_o be_v vigilant_a enough_o in_o other_o matter_n but_o hear_v the_o word_n as_o though_o they_o do_v not_o pass_v for_o it_o shall_v be_v just_o condemn_v for_o drowsiness_n but_o luke_n do_v in_o plain_a word_n acquit_v eutichus_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o fall_v down_o be_v overcome_v with_o deep_a sleep_n after_o midnight_n moreover_o the_o lord_n mean_v not_o only_o by_o the_o sleep_n but_o also_o by_o the_o death_n of_o this_o young_a man_n to_o awake_v &_o stir_v up_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o that_o they_o may_v more_o joyful_o receive_v paul_n his_o doctrine_n &_o may_v keep_v it_o deep_o root_v in_o their_o mind_n it_o be_v in_o deed_n at_o the_o first_o no_o small_a temptation_n but_o such_o as_o may_v have_v shake_v even_o a_o most_o constant_a man_n full_a sore_n for_o who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o christ_n have_v be_v chief_a governor_n in_o that_o company_n wherein_o a_o miserable_a man_n through_o a_o fall_n become_v dead_a who_o will_v not_o rather_o have_v think_v this_o to_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o god_n curse_n but_o the_o lord_n by_o
witness_n who_o do_v not_o only_o know_v all_o thing_n but_o have_v also_o a_o judgement_n which_o be_v pure_a and_o corrupt_v with_o no_o affection_n 19_o serve_v the_o lord_n he_o reckon_v up_o first_o not_o only_o in_o what_o strait_n he_o be_v but_o most_o of_o all_o his_o humility_n couple_v with_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n and_o rebuke_n and_o other_o affliction_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o honourable_o receive_v or_o with_o commendation_n but_o he_o be_v conversaunt_a among_o they_o under_o the_o contemptible_a form_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o this_o be_v no_o small_a trial_n when_o we_o faint_v not_o though_o we_o see_v ourselves_o tread_v under_o foot_n by_o the_o intolerable_a pride_n of_o the_o world_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v note_v every_o thing_n more_o distinct_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n not_o for_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o godly_a but_o it_o do_v signify_v to_o execute_v a_o public_a function_n therefore_o paul_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o some_o one_o private_a man_n but_o as_o one_o make_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o he_o do_v testify_v that_o he_o fulfil_v the_o apostleship_n to_o he_o commit_v with_o humility_n and_o modesty_n both_o because_o know_v his_o own_o infirmity_n he_o do_v mistrust_v himself_o and_o also_o because_o consider_v the_o excellency_n of_o his_o call_n he_o count_v himself_o very_o unmeete_a and_o last_o because_o he_o do_v willing_o submit_v himself_o to_o bear_v the_o reproach_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o this_o humility_n be_v set_v both_o against_o vain_a confidence_n and_o also_o hawtinesse_n second_o he_o touch_v his_o tear_n which_o strife_n diverse_a assault_n of_o satan_n the_o rage_n of_o wicked_a man_n the_o inward_a disease_n of_o the_o church_n and_o offence_n have_v make_v he_o shed_v at_o length_n he_o add_v that_o he_o lead_v a_o fearful_a life_n amidst_o the_o layinge_n in_o wait_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v tempt_v therewith_o as_o he_o be_v not_o harden_v though_o he_o do_v not_o faint_a for_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o confess_v his_o infirmity_n his_o drift_n be_v that_o those_o to_o who_o he_o speak_v may_v not_o faint_v through_o like_a tribulation_n and_o that_o be_v void_a of_o all_o ambition_n they_o may_v do_v their_o duty_n careful_o and_o reverent_o and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o only_o with_o a_o patient_a mind_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v despyse_v of_o man_n but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v cast_v down_o in_o themselves_o because_o that_o man_n can_v never_o be_v right_o frame_v to_o obey_v christ_n who_o look_n be_v lofty_a and_o who_o heart_n be_v proud_a and_o as_o man_n can_v long_o bear_v a_o show_n of_o virtue_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v appear_v manifesty_n that_o he_o behave_v himself_o sincere_o and_o from_o his_o heart_n he_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o constancy_n which_o last_v three_o year_n wherein_o he_o have_v still_o keep_v one_o course_n you_o know_v say_v he_o how_o i_o have_v behave_v myself_o since_o the_o first_o day_n until_o this_o time_n to_o conclude_v this_o be_v the_o true_a trial_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o be_v change_v as_o the_o time_n change_v but_o to_o continue_v like_a to_o themselves_o &_o always_o to_o keep_v a_o straight_a course_n 20_o i_o have_v keep_v back_o nothing_o he_o commend_v his_o faithfulness_n and_o diligence_n in_o teach_v in_o three_o respect_n that_o he_o instruct_v his_o scholar_n thorough_o and_o perfect_o so_o that_o he_o omit_v nothing_o which_o may_v make_v for_o their_o salvation_n that_o be_v not_o content_a with_o general_a preach_n he_o do_v also_o endeavour_v to_o do_v every_o man_n good_a three_o he_o recite_v a_o brief_a sum_n of_o all_o his_o whole_a doctrine_n that_o he_o exhort_v they_o unto_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o repentance_n now_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o depaynt_v out_o unto_o we_o a_o pattern_n of_o a_o faithful_a &_o good_a teacher_n whosoever_o they_o be_v who_o be_v desirous_a to_o prove_v their_o industry_n to_o the_o lord_n they_o must_v set_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o command_v timotheus_n in_o another_o place_n to_o consider_v what_o thing_n be_v profitable_a 4.7.8_o 1._o tim._n 4.7.8_o that_o he_o may_v be_v instant_a in_o deliver_v those_o thing_n and_o sure_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o who_o rule_n all_o manner_n of_o teach_v must_v be_v examine_v yea_o which_o be_v the_o only_a method_n of_o teach_v aright_o do_v not_o contain_v profound_a speculation_n to_o delight_v man_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v but_o as_o the_o same_o paul_n do_v testify_v it_o be_v all_o profitable_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a but_o paul_n prescribe_v such_o a_o desire_n to_o edify_v that_o the_o pastor_n must_v omit_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v which_o be_v profitable_a to_o be_v know_v for_o they_o be_v bad_a master_n who_o do_v so_o keep_v their_o scholar_n in_o the_o first_o principle_n 3.17_o 1._o tim._n 3.17_o that_o they_o do_v never_o come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o sure_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o teach_v we_o in_o his_o word_n only_o to_o half_n as_o they_o say_v but_o he_o deliver_v perfect_a wisdom_n and_o such_o as_o be_v in_o all_o point_n absolute_a whereby_o it_o appear_v how_o impudent_o those_o man_n boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n who_o do_v not_o only_a cloak_n and_o foster_v the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o people_n with_o their_o silence_n but_o do_v also_o wink_v at_o gross_a error_n and_o wicked_a superstition_n as_o at_o this_o day_n in_o papistry_n many_o send_v out_o some_o sparkle_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n but_o they_o dare_v not_o drive_v away_o the_o darkness_n of_o ignorance_n and_o where_o as_o the_o wicked_a fear_n of_o the_o flesh_n do_v hinder_v they_o they_o pretend_v that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o sound_a doctrine_n indeed_o i_o confess_v that_o all_o thing_n can_v be_v teach_v at_o one_o time_n and_o that_o we_o must_v imitate_v paul_n his_o wisdom_n who_o do_v apply_v himself_o unto_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o ignorant_a but_o what_o moderation_n be_v this_o when_o they_o suffer_v the_o blind_a to_o fall_v into_o the_o ditch_n when_o they_o leave_v miserable_a soul_n under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n and_o whereas_o they_o see_v idolatry_n rage_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n corrupt_v his_o law_n break_v and_o final_o all_o ãâã_d thing_n profane_v they_o do_v either_o with_o silence_n pass_v over_o such_o filthy_a confusion_n or_o else_o they_o show_v it_o under_o hand_n spare_o and_o obscure_o like_o man_n that_o be_v afraid_a therefore_o we_o must_v note_v paul_n his_o word_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o keep_v back_o nothing_o but_o do_v show_v whatsoever_o thing_n be_v profitable_a for_o the_o people_n for_o by_o this_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o pure_a and_o free_a profession_n of_o sound_n doctrine_n be_v require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n wherein_o there_o must_v be_v no_o bought_n nor_o crook_n and_o that_o nothing_o be_v more_o unseemly_a in_o they_o than_o oblique_a insinuation_n and_o such_o as_o be_v enwrap_v in_o crafty_a dissimulation_n public_o and_o through_o out_o every_o house_n this_o be_v the_o second_o point_n that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o teach_v all_o man_n in_o the_o congregation_n but_o also_o every_o one_o private_o as_o every_o man_n necessity_n do_v require_v for_o christ_n have_v not_o appoint_v pastor_n upon_o this_o condition_n that_o they_o may_v only_o teach_v the_o church_n in_o general_a in_o the_o open_a pulpit_n but_o that_o they_o may_v take_v charge_n of_o every_o particular_a sheep_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v back_o to_o the_o sheepfold_a those_o which_o wander_v and_o go_v astray_o that_o they_o may_v strengthen_v those_o which_o be_v discourage_v and_o weak_a that_o they_o may_v cure_v the_o sick_a 34.4_o eze._n 34.4_o that_o they_o may_v lift_v uppe_o and_o set_v on_o foot_n the_o feeble_a for_o common_a doctrine_n will_v oftentimes_o wax_v cold_a unless_o it_o be_v holpen_v with_o private_a admonition_n wherefore_o the_o negligence_n of_o those_o man_n be_v inexcusable_a who_o have_v make_v one_o sermon_n as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v their_o task_n live_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o time_n idle_o as_o if_o their_o voice_n be_v shut_v up_o within_o the_o church_n wall_n see_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v depart_v thence_o they_o be_v dumb_a also_o disciple_n and_o scholar_n be_v teach_v that_o if_o they_o will_v be_v number_v in_o christ_n flock_n they_o must_v give_v place_n to_o their_o pastor_n
deep_o imprint_v in_o their_o mind_n his_o exhortation_n for_o we_o know_v what_o great_a force_n the_o word_n and_o speech_n of_o man_n have_v which_o be_v utter_v at_o their_o departure_n or_o death_n also_o he_o will_v have_v they_o beware_v by_o this_o forwarn_n that_o they_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o his_o presence_n &_o so_o their_o faith_n shall_v faint_v through_o wearisomnes_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n now_o again_o which_o do_v begin_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o this_o world_n by_o renew_v man_n after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n until_o it_o be_v make_v perfect_a at_o length_n in_o the_o last_o resurrection_n 26_o wherefore_o i_o take_v you_o to_o record_v it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o call_v you_o to_o witness_v or_o i_o call_v you_o to_o bear_v witness_n before_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o this_o do_v he_o not_o so_o much_o for_o his_o own_o cause_n as_o that_o he_o may_v prescribe_v unto_o they_o their_o duty_n with_o great_a authority_n furthermore_o this_o place_n contain_v a_o brief_a sum_n of_o teach_v right_o and_o well_o and_o it_o exhort_v the_o teacher_n themselves_o vehement_o &_o sharp_o that_o they_o be_v diligent_a in_o their_o function_n what_o order_n must_v pastor_n than_o keep_v in_o teach_v first_o âet_z they_o not_o esteem_v at_o their_o pleasure_n what_o be_v profitable_a to_o be_v utter_v and_o what_o to_o be_v omit_v but_o let_v they_o leave_v that_o to_o god_n alone_o to_o be_v order_v at_o his_o pleasure_n so_o shall_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n shall_v have_v none_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n again_o mortal_a man_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o mangle_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o pull_v it_o in_o piece_n that_o he_o may_v diminish_v this_o or_o that_o at_o his_o pleasure_n that_o he_o may_v obscure_v some_o thing_n and_o suppress_v many_o thing_n but_o shall_v deliver_v whatsoever_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n though_o wise_o and_o seasonablie_o for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o people_n yet_o plain_o and_o without_o guile_n as_o become_v a_o faithful_a &_o true_a interpreter_n of_o god_n i_o say_v that_o wisdom_n must_v be_v use_v because_o we_o must_v always_o have_v respect_n unto_o profit_n so_o there_o be_v no_o subtlety_n use_v wherein_o many_o take_v too_o great_a delight_n when_o as_o they_o turn_v and_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unto_o their_o method_n and_o forge_v to_o we_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o philosophy_n mix_v of_o the_o gospel_n &_o their_o own_o invention_n namely_o because_o this_o mixture_n be_v more_o delectable_a thence_o have_v we_o freewill_n thence_o the_o desert_n of_o work_n thence_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o providence_n and_o free_a election_n of_o god_n and_o that_o which_o we_o say_v even_o now_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n whereof_o paul_n make_v mention_v be_v include_v in_o his_o word_n &_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v seek_v no_o where_o else_o for_o many_o thing_n be_v keep_v from_o we_o in_o this_o life_n the_o perfect_a &_o full_a manifestation_n whereof_o be_v defer_v until_o that_o day_n wherein_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v with_o new_a eye_n face_n to_o face_n therefore_o those_o do_v set_v forth_o the_o will_n of_o god_n who_o interpreat_a the_o scripture_n faithful_o &_o out_o of_o they_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o the_o faith_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o all_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n and_o as_o we_o say_v of_o late_a that_o those_o be_v condemn_v by_o this_o sentence_n 13.12_o 1._o cor._n 13.12_o who_o dispute_v philosophicallie_o lest_o they_o shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o odious_a do_v corrupt_a with_o their_o leaven_n the_o purity_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o both_o sharp_o and_o sore_o do_v paul_n thunder_n against_o they_o who_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o persecution_n do_v speak_v only_o doubtful_o and_o dark_o i_o be_o clean_a from_o the_o blood_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o place_n of_o ezechiel_n 3.18.20_o ezec._n 3.18.20_o where_o god_n denounce_v that_o his_o prophet_n shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o wicked_a unless_o he_o exhort_v they_o unto_o repentance_n for_o upon_o this_o condition_n do_v he_o appoint_v pastor_n over_o his_o church_n that_o if_o any_o thing_n perish_v through_o their_o negligence_n a_o account_n may_v be_v require_v at_o their_o hand_n yea_o that_o unless_o they_o show_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n without_o guile_n and_o crook_n the_o destruction_n of_o those_o who_o go_v astray_o may_v be_v impute_v unto_o they_o those_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v wonderful_a dull_a who_o such_o a_o sharp_a threaten_n can_v awake_v wherefore_o the_o epicurish_n impiety_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n do_v the_o more_o bewray_v itself_o where_o though_o they_o crake_v and_o brag_v of_o their_o honourable_a title_n yet_o they_o think_v no_o more_o upon_o give_v of_o a_o account_n for_o so_o many_o soul_n which_o perish_v than_o if_o there_o sit_v no_o judge_n in_o heaven_n neither_o be_v their_o ungodliness_n any_o whit_n less_o filthy_a before_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o that_o be_v give_v only_o to_o devour_v sheep_n they_o usurp_v the_o name_n of_o pastor_n furthermore_o the_o lord_n show_v how_o dear_a soul_n be_v to_o he_o see_v that_o he_o do_v so_o sharp_o punish_v the_o pastors_n sluggishness_n for_o their_o destruction_n but_o we_o see_v what_o small_a account_n many_o man_n make_v of_o their_o own_o salvation_n for_o which_o even_o god_n himself_o do_v vouchsafe_v to_o be_v careful_a 28_o therefore_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n wherein_o tâ_n ãâã_d ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o blood_n 29_o for_o i_o know_v this_o that_o after_o my_o departure_n grievous_a wolf_n will_v enter_v in_o among_o you_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n 30_o and_o of_o your_o own_o self_n shall_v arise_v man_n speak_v perverse_a thing_n that_o they_o may_v draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o 31_o for_o which_o cause_n watch_v you_o remember_v that_o by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n i_o cease_v not_o night_n and_o day_n to_o warn_v every_o one_o of_o you_o with_o tear_n 32_o and_o now_o brethren_n i_o commend_v you_o to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n who_o be_v able_a to_o build_v far_o and_o to_o give_v you_o a_o inheritance_n among_o all_o those_o who_o be_v sanctify_v 28_o take_v heed_n therefore_o he_o do_v now_o apply_v his_o speech_n unto_o they_o &_o by_o many_o reason_n show_v that_o they_o must_v watch_v diligent_o and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o careful_a but_o because_o necessity_n do_v so_o require_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v because_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o they_o be_v set_v the_o second_o because_o they_o be_v call_v unto_o this_o function_n not_o by_o mortal_a man_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o because_o it_o be_v no_o small_a honour_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o four_o because_o the_o lord_n do_v declare_v by_o a_o evident_a testimony_n what_o account_n he_o do_v make_v of_o the_o church_n see_v that_o he_o have_v redeem_v it_o with_o his_o blood_n as_o touch_v the_o first_o he_o do_v not_o only_o command_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o flock_n but_o first_o to_o themselves_o for_o that_o man_n will_v never_o be_v careful_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o other_o man_n who_o will_v neglect_v his_o own_o and_o in_o vain_a shall_v that_o man_n prick_v forward_o other_o to_o live_v godly_o who_o will_v himself_o show_v no_o desire_n of_o godliness_n yea_o that_o man_n will_v not_o take_v pain_n with_o his_o flock_n who_o forget_v himself_o see_v he_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o flock_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v careful_a for_o the_o flock_n to_o they_o commit_v paul_n command_v &_o warn_v that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o keep_v himself_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v as_o faithful_a towards_o his_o flock_n as_o he_o ought_v for_o we_o say_v that_o paul_n reason_v from_o their_o call_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o take_v pain_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereof_o they_o have_v the_o government_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o may_v not_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o like_v best_a neither_o be_v they_o free_a after_o they_o be_v make_v pastor_n but_o they_o be_v bind_v public_o to_o all_o
head_n but_o the_o question_n be_v how_o paul_n know_v this_o first_o we_o need_v not_o doubt_v of_o this_o but_o that_o his_o presence_n be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o drive_v away_o wolf_n &_o no_o marvel_v if_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n do_v bridle_v the_o wicked_a so_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o utter_v their_o poison_n yea_o if_o that_o heavenly_a light_n do_v drive_v away_o much_o darkness_n of_o satan_n therefore_o see_v that_o paul_n do_v know_v that_o the_o malice_n of_o satan_n be_v keep_v under_o for_o a_o time_n by_o his_o industry_n he_o do_v easy_o foretell_v what_o will_v happen_v after_o his_o departure_n though_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o be_v certify_v by_o the_o lord_n through_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n that_o other_o may_v be_v admonish_v by_o he_o as_o we_o see_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v howsoever_o it_o be_v so_o often_o as_o faithful_a pastor_n go_v away_o let_v we_o learn_v that_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o wolf_n who_o they_o can_v hardly_o drive_v from_o the_o sheepcoate_n though_o they_o watch_v most_o narrow_o 30_o of_o your_o own_o self_n shall_v arise_v this_o amplifi_v the_o grievousnesse_n of_o the_o evil_a because_o there_o be_v some_o wolf_n within_o and_o so_o hide_v themselves_o under_o the_o title_n of_o pastor_n do_v wait_v for_o some_o opportunity_n wherein_o they_o may_v do_v hurt_v also_o he_o declare_v what_o danger_n these_o wolf_n do_v threaten_v to_o wit_n the_o scatter_v abroad_o of_o the_o flock_n when_o the_o church_n be_v draw_v away_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v divide_v into_o sect_n neither_o be_v all_o those_o wolf_n who_o do_v not_o their_o duty_n as_o they_o ought_v but_o there_o be_v oftentimes_o hireling_n a_o kind_n of_o man_n not_o so_o hurtful_a as_o the_o other_o but_o the_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n be_v a_o most_o deadly_a plague_n to_o the_o sheep_n now_o in_o the_o three_o place_n the_o fountain_n and_o beginning_n of_o this_o evil_n be_v note_v because_o they_o will_v draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o therefore_o ambition_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o heresy_n for_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v then_o flourish_n when_o the_o pastor_n join_v hand_n in_o hand_n to_o bring_v disciple_n unto_o christ_n because_o this_o alone_a be_v the_o sound_a state_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v hear_v alone_o wherefore_o both_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n must_v needs_o be_v pervert_v and_o also_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o flock_n must_v needs_o go_v to_o nought_o where_o man_n be_v desirous_a of_o mastership_n and_o as_o this_o place_n teach_v that_o almost_o all_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n flow_v from_o the_o pride_n of_o man_n so_o we_o learn_v again_o out_o of_o the_o same_o that_o it_o can_v otherwise_o be_v but_o that_o ambitious_a man_n will_v turn_v away_o from_o right_a purity_n and_o corrupt_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o see_v that_o the_o pure_a and_o sincere_a handle_n of_o the_o scripture_n tend_v to_o this_o end_n that_o christ_n alone_o may_v have_v the_o pre-eminence_n and_o that_o man_n can_v challenge_v nothing_o to_o themselves_o but_o they_o shall_v take_v so_o much_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n it_o follow_v that_o those_o be_v corrupter_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n who_o be_v addict_v to_o themselves_o and_o study_n to_o advance_v their_o own_o glory_n which_o do_v only_o darken_v christ_n 7.18_o john_n 7.18_o which_o thing_n the_o lord_n himself_o do_v confirm_v in_o the_o seven_o of_o john_n furtheremore_n by_o the_o word_n arise_v which_o he_o use_v he_o signify_v that_o those_o wolf_n do_v nourish_v secret_a destruction_n until_o they_o may_v have_v some_o opportunity_n offer_v to_o break_v out_o and_o this_o place_n do_v very_o well_o prevent_v a_o horrible_a stumble_a block_n and_o offence_n which_o satan_n have_v always_o cast_v in_o to_o trouble_v weak_a conscience_n if_o external_a and_o profess_a enemy_n do_v resist_v the_o gospel_n this_o do_v not_o so_o much_o hurt_v to_o the_o church_n as_o if_o inward_a enemy_n issue_n out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o at_o a_o sudden_a blow_n to_o the_o field_n or_o which_o unfaithful_o provoke_v the_o people_n to_o fall_v away_o and_o yet_o god_n have_v from_o the_o beginning_n exercise_v his_o church_n with_o this_o temptation_n and_o now_o do_v exercise_v it_o wherefore_o let_v our_o faith_n be_v fortify_v with_o this_o defence_n that_o it_o fail_v not_o if_o at_o any_o time_n it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o pastor_n begin_v to_o rage_n like_o wolf_n he_o say_v they_o shall_v be_v grievous_a wolf_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o terrify_v they_o second_o they_o shall_v be_v author_n of_o wicked_a opinion_n and_o that_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o because_o it_o can_v almost_o otherwise_o be_v but_o that_o ambition_n will_v corrupt_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v also_o how_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a the_o brag_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v touch_v their_o continual_a succession_n for_o see_v we_o can_v easy_o show_v that_o these_o horn_a beast_n be_v nothing_o less_o than_o that_o which_o they_o will_v be_v think_v to_o be_v be_v always_o convict_v they_o fly_v unto_o this_o fortress_n that_o they_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n by_o a_o continual_a course_n as_o if_o these_o do_v not_o also_o succeed_v they_o of_o who_o paul_n will_v to_o take_v heed_n therefore_o see_v that_o god_n either_o to_o prove_v the_o constancy_n of_o he_o or_o in_o his_o just_a judgement_n do_v oftentimes_o suffer_v wolf_n to_o rage_n under_o the_o person_n of_o pastor_n the_o authority_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o name_n and_o place_n alone_o neither_o be_v succession_n any_o thing_n worth_a unless_o faith_n and_o integrity_n be_v join_v therewithal_o but_o and_o if_o the_o papist_n object_n that_o they_o can_v be_v call_v wolf_n one_o word_n of_o paul_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o touchstone_n to_o prove_v whether_o this_o be_v so_o or_o no_o that_o they_o may_v say_v he_o draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o and_o to_o what_o end_n tend_v all_o popish_a religion_n save_v only_o that_o man_n lust_n and_o pleasure_n may_v reign_v in_o steed_n of_o god_n word_n but_o christ_n have_v no_o disciple_n where_o he_o be_v not_o count_v the_o only_a master_n 31_o for_o which_o cause_n watch_n paul_n do_v again_o exhort_v they_o unto_o diligence_n by_o his_o own_o example_n though_o he_o do_v join_v therewithal_o fear_v of_o danger_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o have_v need_n of_o great_a attention_n to_o beware_v and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o unseemly_a thing_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v weary_v who_o have_v see_v his_o singular_a patience_n by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n also_o he_o speak_v of_o his_o tear_n which_o do_v add_v no_o small_a efficacy_n to_o his_o exhortation_n whereas_o he_o say_v that_o he_o admonish_v every_o one_o it_o may_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o unto_o the_o common_a people_n as_o unto_o the_o elder_n for_o because_o he_o be_v determine_v to_o speak_v such_o thing_n as_o shall_v be_v common_a to_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o speak_v as_o if_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v present_a nevertheless_o if_o any_o have_v rather_o rastrain_v it_o unto_o the_o order_n of_o the_o pastor_n the_o meaning_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o their_o study_n must_v be_v kindle_v not_o only_o with_o this_o speech_n which_o he_o now_o make_v but_o that_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o remember_v those_o often_o exhortation_n which_o he_o do_v continual_o beat_v in_o by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n and_o that_o with_o many_o tear_n yet_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v more_o likely_a that_o he_o speak_v of_o all_o in_o general_n 32_o i_o commend_v you_o to_o god_n he_o use_v a_o prayer_n which_o in_o a_o oration_n serve_v to_o move_v the_o hearer_n great_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v count_v absurd_a for_o he_o do_v not_o pass_v for_o divide_v his_o sermon_n into_o part_n as_o the_o rhetorician_n use_v to_o do_v see_v no_o word_n be_v sufficient_a to_o express_v the_o vehemency_n of_o the_o affection_n wherewith_o he_o be_v inflame_v he_o have_v entreat_v already_o of_o great_a matter_n and_o weighty_a which_o do_v far_o exceed_v man_n ability_n therefore_o he_o turn_v himself_o unto_o prayer_n and_o by_o little_a &_o little_o draw_v towards_o a_o end_n of_o his_o speech_n though_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o express_v of_o a_o desire_n than_o a_o direct_a prayer_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o they_o be_v unable_a to_o bear_v so_o great_a a_o burden_n but_o he_o do_v wish_v to_o they_o new_a help_n from_o heaven_n whereto_o they_o may_v trust_v and_o overcome_v all_o temptation_n and_o it_o
be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v though_o he_o speak_v unto_o the_o pastor_n alone_o but_o that_o he_o do_v also_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a church_n first_o he_o commend_v they_o to_o god_n second_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v all_o one_o commendation_n but_o paul_n mean_v to_o express_v the_o mean_n whereby_o the_o lord_n do_v defend_v the_o salvation_n of_o he_o which_o as_o peter_n say_v be_v keep_v by_o faith_n 1.5_o 1._o pet._n 1.5_o and_o the_o mean_n of_o this_o keep_n depend_v upon_o the_o word_n lest_o it_o come_v in_o hazard_n amid_o so_o many_o danger_n and_o it_o be_v very_o expedient_a for_o we_o to_o know_v how_o god_n will_v keep_v us._n for_o because_o his_o majesty_n be_v hide_v from_o we_o until_o he_o come_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o word_n we_o look_v too_o and_o fro_o be_v in_o doubt_n therefore_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o receive_v we_o to_o be_v keep_v he_o make_v his_o word_n the_o instrument_n to_o keep_v our_o salvation_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o add_v the_o adjunct_n grace_n for_o the_o genetive_a case_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o hebrew_n do_v signify_v a_o effect_n to_o the_o end_n the_o faithful_a may_v the_o more_o safe_o rest_n in_o the_o word_n where_o god_n do_v show_v forth_o his_o favour_n this_o exposition_n be_v plain_a and_o apt_a for_o whereas_o some_o understand_v it_o of_o christ_n it_o be_v too_o much_o rack_v who_o be_v able_a to_o build_v far_o the_o participle_n dunamenos_fw-mi be_v to_o be_v refer_v unto_o god_n not_o unto_o his_o word_n and_o this_o consolation_n be_v add_v for_o this_o cause_n lest_o they_o faint_v through_o the_o feel_n of_o their_o infirmity_n for_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v inviron_v with_o the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n we_o be_v like_a to_o a_o house_n who_o foundation_n be_v lay_v all_o the_o godly_a must_v be_v ground_v in_o deed_n in_o christ_n but_o their_o faith_n be_v far_o from_o be_v perfect_a yea_o though_o the_o foundation_n continue_v stable_n &_o sure_a yet_o some_o part_n of_o the_o building_n be_v like_a to_o fall_v and_o quail_v wherefore_o there_o be_v great_a need_n both_o of_o continual_a building_n &_o also_o now_o &_o then_o new_a prop_n and_o stay_n be_v necessary_a nevertheless_o paul_n say_v that_o we_o must_v not_o faint_a because_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o leave_v his_o work_n unfinished_a 138.8_o phil._n 1.6_o psal_n 138.8_o as_o he_o do_v likewise_o teach_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o philippian_n he_o which_o have_v begin_v a_o good_a work_n in_o you_o will_v perform_v it_o until_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n whereto_o that_o of_o the_o psalm_n answer_v thou_o will_v not_o forsake_v the_o work_n of_o our_o hand_n that_o which_o be_v add_v immediate_o concern_v the_o inheritance_n of_o life_n appertain_v unto_o the_o very_a enjoy_n of_o life_n so_o soon_o as_o christ_n have_v appear_v to_o we_o we_o pass_v in_o deed_n from_o death_n to_o life_n &_o faith_n be_v a_o entrance_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n neither_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n give_v to_o we_o in_o vain_a but_o paul_n promise_v in_o this_o place_n to_o the_o faithful_a a_o continual_a increase_n of_o grace_n until_o they_o see_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o inheritance_n whereunto_o they_o have_v be_v call_v which_o be_v now_o lay_v up_o for_o they_o in_o heaven_n he_o call_v it_o the_o power_n of_o god_n not_o as_o we_o use_v to_o imagine_v it_o without_o effect_n but_o which_o be_v common_o call_v actual_a for_o the_o faithful_a must_v so_o lay_v hold_n upon_o it_o that_o they_o may_v have_v it_o ready_a like_a to_o a_o shield_n or_o buckler_n to_o hold_v up_o against_o all_o assault_n of_o satan_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v teach_v that_o we_o have_v aid_n enough_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n so_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o none_o be_v strong_a in_o the_o lord_n save_o those_o who_o abandon_v all_o hope_n and_o confidence_n of_o their_o own_o freewill_n trust_v and_o lean_a to_o he_o who_o as_o paul_n say_v very_o well_o be_v able_a to_o build_v far_o 33_o i_o have_v desire_v no_o man_n silver_n or_o gold_n or_o raiment_n 34_o yea_o you_o yourselves_o know_v how_o that_o these_o hand_n have_v minister_v to_o my_o necessity_n and_o to_o those_o which_o be_v with_o i_o 35_o i_o have_v show_v you_o all_o thing_n that_o so_o labour_v you_o must_v receive_v the_o weak_a and_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n because_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o bless_a thing_n rather_o to_o give_v then_o to_o take_v 36_o and_o when_o he_o have_v thus_o speak_v he_o kneel_v down_o and_o pray_v with_o they_o all_o 37_o and_o there_o arise_v great_a weep_v among_o they_o all_o &_o fall_v upon_o paul_n his_o neck_n they_o kiss_v he_o 38_o sorrow_a most_o for_o the_o word_n which_o he_o speak_v that_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n no_o more_o and_o they_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o ship_n 33_o i_o have_v not_o as_o he_o show_v of_o late_o what_o a_o hurtful_a plague_n ambition_n be_v so_o now_o he_o show_v that_o they_o must_v beware_v of_o covetousness_n &_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o example_n again_o even_o in_o this_o point_n that_o he_o do_v cover_v no_o man_n good_n but_o do_v rather_o get_v his_o live_n with_o the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n not_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o find_v he_o without_o some_o help_n but_o because_o in_o apply_v his_o handiwork_n he_o spare_v the_o church_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v too_o chargeable_a to_o they_o so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lay_v we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o deny_v that_o he_o do_v take_v any_o thing_n violent_o as_o hungry_a fellow_n do_v importunate_o wring_v out_o prey_v oftentimes_o but_o also_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v clean_o from_o all_o wicked_a desire_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o good_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n but_o he_o must_v also_o contemn_v money_n and_o sure_o we_o see_v that_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a than_o that_o those_o corrupt_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o win_v the_o favour_n of_o man_n who_o be_v altogether_o filthy_o give_v to_o get_v gain_n which_o vice_n paul_n do_v sharp_o condemn_v in_o bishop_n elsewhere_o 3.3_o 1._o tim._n 3.3_o 34_o yea_o you_o know_v he_o do_v not_o in_o these_o word_n precise_o set_v down_o a_o law_n which_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n must_v needs_o keep_v for_o he_o do_v not_o behave_v himself_o so_o lofty_o and_o lordlike_a 11.8_o mat._n 10.10_o 1._o co._n 9.14_o galat._n 6.6_o 1._o tim._n 5.17_o phil._n 4.10.16_o 2._o cor._n 11.8_o that_o he_o do_v take_v that_o away_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v grant_v to_o his_o servant_n but_o do_v rather_o in_o many_o place_n maintain_v their_o right_n which_o be_v that_o they_o be_v maintain_v with_o that_o which_o be_v common_a whereunto_o belong_v that_o that_o he_o suffer_v many_o church_n to_o minister_v unto_o he_o food_n and_o raiment_n neither_o do_v he_o only_o free_o receive_v wage_n for_o the_o work_n which_o he_o do_v in_o any_o place_n of_o those_o who_o be_v there_o but_o when_o he_o be_v in_o necessity_n at_o corinthus_n he_o say_v that_o he_o rob_v other_o church_n to_o relieve_v his_o poverty_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o simple_o command_v pastor_n to_o maintain_v their_o life_n with_o their_o handiwork_n but_o immediate_o after_o he_o declare_v how_o far_o forth_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o follow_v his_o example_n those_o man_n of_o corinthus_n do_v not_o deny_v he_o that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o he_o but_o see_v that_o the_o false_a apostle_n do_v boast_v that_o they_o do_v their_o work_n free_o and_o gate_n thereby_o praise_v among_o the_o people_n paul_n will_v not_o be_v behind_o they_o in_o this_o point_n nor_o give_v they_o any_o occasion_n to_o accuse_v he_o false_o as_o he_o himself_o affirm_v 1._o cor._n 9_o 11.10_o 1._o cor._n 9.15_o 1._o cor._n 11.10_o and_o 2._o cor._n 11._o therefore_o he_o warn_v that_o there_o be_v no_o stumble_a block_n lay_v in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o that_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o overthrow_v for_o to_o receive_v the_o weak_a import_v as_o much_o as_o somewhat_o to_o bear_v with_o their_o rudeness_n &_o simpleness_n as_o it_o be_v rom._n 14._o 14.1_o rom._n 14.1_o and_o to_o remember_v we_o read_v this_o sentence_n in_o no_o place_n word_n for_o word_n but_o the_o evangelist_n have_v other_o not_o much_o unlike_o this_o out_o of_o which_o paul_n may_v gather_v this_o again_o we_o know_v that_o all_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o write_v and_o he_o repeat_v that_o general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o contempt_n of_o money_n whereof_o this_o be_v a_o true_a
word_n way_n be_v not_o where_o take_v for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n without_o some_o addition_n but_o i_o do_v not_o interpret_v it_o of_o the_o law_n but_o of_o those_o sect_n whereof_o no_o stranger_n be_v ignorant_a no_o man_n do_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o pharisy_n do_v hold_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n therefore_o see_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o common_a no_o marvel_v if_o felix_n do_v acquit_v paul_n furthermore_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o take_v way_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o fact_n and_o i_o see_v not_o how_o this_o can_v hang_v together_o that_o the_o governor_n do_v confess_v that_o lysias_n be_v more_o expert_a in_o the_o law_n than_o he_o but_o his_o innocence_n be_v make_v more_o famous_a &_o evident_a by_o this_o because_o a_o profane_a man_n do_v straightway_o give_v such_o a_o prejudice_n thereof_o that_o he_o do_v suffer_v he_o to_o be_v visit_v and_o holpen_v by_o his_o friend_n be_v as_o it_o be_v exempt_v from_o the_o order_n of_o prisoner_n also_o we_o gather_v by_o this_o that_o paul_n his_o companion_n and_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o forsake_v he_o for_o to_o what_o end_n have_v it_o be_v to_o grant_v liberty_n to_o his_o friend_n and_o acquaintance_n to_o have_v access_n unto_o he_o unless_o they_o have_v be_v present_a have_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v careful_a for_o he_o and_o have_v be_v desirous_a to_o do_v their_o duty_n therefore_o let_v we_o learn_v by_o this_o example_n that_o so_o long_o as_o we_o may_v and_o be_v able_a we_o must_v not_o defraud_v the_o martyr_n of_o christ_n of_o any_o manner_n of_o comfort_n while_o they_o labour_v for_o the_o gospel_n 25_o felix_n with_o his_o wife_n drusilla_n we_o say_v somewhat_o already_o concern_v the_o covetousness_n and_o corruption_n of_o felix_n now_o as_o touch_v his_o wife_n drusilla_n the_o reader_n must_v understand_v that_o she_o be_v daughter_n to_o agrippa_n the_o elder_a of_o who_o filthy_a death_n luke_n speak_v before_o chapt._n 12._o 12.23_o chap._n 12.23_o she_o be_v betroth_v to_o epiphanis_fw-la the_o son_n of_o antiochus_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o young_a man_n will_v not_o take_v on_o he_o the_o rite_n which_o the_o jew_n do_v use_v which_o he_o promise_v to_o do_v her_o brother_n agrippa_n the_o young_a of_o who_o mention_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n after_o the_o death_n of_o his_o father_n give_v she_o to_o wife_n to_o azizus_n king_n of_o the_o emesenes_n from_o who_o company_n she_o be_v entice_v by_o the_o flattery_n of_o felix_n for_o felix_n be_v take_v with_o her_o singular_a beauty_n do_v persuade_v one_o simon_n a_o jewe-borne_a in_o cyprus_n to_o persuade_v and_o allure_v she_o to_o make_v a_o new_a match_n therefore_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o voluptuous_a woman_n have_v break_v promise_n with_o her_o former_a husband_n do_v marry_v with_o a_o uncircumcised_a man_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n but_o though_o she_o have_v pollute_v herself_o with_o profane_a wedlock_n yet_o we_o may_v easy_o conject_v by_o this_o place_n that_o she_o have_v not_o quite_o abandon_v that_o feel_n of_o religion_n which_o she_o have_v of_o a_o child_n for_o felix_n will_v neither_o have_v desire_v to_o hear_v paul_n neither_o will_v he_o have_v vouchsafe_v to_o speak_v to_o he_o unless_o it_o have_v be_v for_o his_o wife_n sake_n luke_n do_v not_o express_v thus_o much_o but_o in_o that_o he_o name_v drusilla_n we_o may_v well_o gather_v that_o paul_n be_v call_v for_o her_o sake_n that_o he_o may_v dispute_v of_o the_o gospel_n though_o such_o revolt_n be_v rather_o tickle_v with_o curiosity_n than_o move_v with_o a_o sincere_a desire_n to_o learn_v he_o hear_v he_o touch_v the_o faith_n this_o confession_n of_o paul_n do_v witness_v that_o he_o do_v not_o spare_v to_o speak_v of_o christ_n before_o because_o he_o be_v afraid_a or_o because_o he_o will_v escape_v the_o trouble_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o time_n to_o speak_v see_v he_o be_v cite_v unto_o the_o judgement_n seat_n to_o answer_v for_o himself_o it_o stand_v he_o upon_o to_o answer_v concern_v the_o crime_n which_o be_v object_v to_o he_o that_o he_o may_v afterward_o frank_o and_o free_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n therefore_o when_o he_o now_o see_v the_o gate_n set_v open_a and_o opportunity_n offer_v for_o speak_v he_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o offend_v the_o governor_n neither_o be_v he_o terrify_v with_o danger_n that_o he_o do_v crafty_o make_v as_o if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o christian_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o he_o be_v as_o well_o furnish_v with_o invincible_a constancy_n as_o with_o wisdom_n and_o judgement_n neither_o do_v he_o ever_o of_o set_a purpose_n suppress_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o do_v only_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o time_n now_o the_o wonderful_a counsel_n of_o god_n be_v worth_a the_o note_n in_o this_o place_n who_o will_v have_v the_o gospel_n offer_v sometime_o to_o the_o reprobate_n not_o that_o they_o may_v profit_v thereby_o but_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v inexcusable_a it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o felix_n and_o drusilla_n never_o to_o have_v hear_v any_o thing_n concern_v christ_n because_o they_o do_v not_o escape_v without_o punishment_n for_o refuse_v the_o grace_n of_o salvation_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o they_o or_o for_o neglect_v the_o same_o with_o loathsomnesse_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v this_o that_o certain_a by_o reason_n of_o that_o seed_n of_o godliness_n which_o be_v in_o they_o engender_v do_v desire_n to_o hear_v the_o gospel_n preach_v which_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v hear_v they_o do_v by_o and_o by_o either_o loath_a or_o else_o they_o can_v suffer_v it_o nevertheless_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n what_o success_n so_o ever_o it_o have_v be_v a_o good_a and_o sweet_a savour_n to_o god_n whether_o it_o quicken_v or_o kill_v man_n 2.15_o 2._o cor._n 2.15_o 26_o and_o as_o he_o dispute_v felix_n hope_v that_o he_o shall_v take_v some_o delight_n in_o paul_n sermon_n as_o man_n who_o be_v desirous_a of_o new_a thing_n do_v willing_o feed_v their_o ear_n with_o subtle_a disputation_n also_o he_o mean_v to_o satisfy_v his_o wife_n desire_n without_o his_o own_o trouble_n now_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o feel_v that_o force_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereof_o he_o never_o think_v which_o drive_v away_o all_o his_o delight_n paul_n out_o of_o bond_n dispute_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n he_o which_o have_v power_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n or_o to_o save_v his_o life_n be_v afraid_a and_o quaik_v as_o if_o he_o stand_v before_o his_o own_o judge_n neither_o do_v he_o find_v any_o other_o comfort_n but_o to_o send_v he_o away_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n let_v we_o first_o learn_v by_o this_o what_o great_a force_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n there_o be_v both_o in_o the_o heart_n and_o also_o in_o the_o tongue_n of_o paul_n because_o he_o see_v that_o he_o must_v speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n he_o do_v not_o behave_v himself_o like_o a_o underling_n but_o he_o declare_v the_o ambassage_n which_o be_v enjoin_v he_o with_o a_o grace_n as_o from_z on_o high_a and_o have_v forget_v that_o he_o be_v in_o bond_n he_o denounce_v the_o heavenly_a judgement_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o now_o see_v felix_n his_o heart_n be_v so_o prick_v with_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o prisoner_n the_o majesty_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v show_v itself_o in_o that_o also_o which_o christ_n extoll_v when_o the_o spirit_n shall_v come_v he_o shall_v judge_v the_o world_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o force_n of_o prophesy_v 14.24_o 1._o cor._n 14.24_o which_o the_o same_o paul_n set_v forth_o elsewhere_o also_o that_o be_v fulfil_v which_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o bind_v with_o he_o which_o he_o do_v not_o only_o stout_o maintain_v and_o affirm_v to_o be_v true_a but_o which_o do_v effectual_o pierce_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o that_o of_o such_o as_o be_v proud_a of_o their_o greatness_n as_o if_o it_o do_v lighten_v from_o heaven_n again_o we_o must_v note_v that_o although_o the_o reprobate_n be_v strike_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o renew_v unto_o repentance_n by_o that_o terror_n alone_o felix_n be_v touch_v in_o deed_n when_o he_o hear_v that_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o he_o fly_v therewithal_o from_o his_o judgement_n seat_n whereof_o he_o be_v afraid_a so_o that_o this_o be_v feign_a sorrow_n which_o do_v not_o work_v salvation_n therefore_o repentance_n require_v such_o fear_n as_o may_v both_o engender_v a_o voluntary_a hatred_n of_o sin_n and_o
bring_v unto_o the_o spiritual_a marriage_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 26_o that_o after_o examination_n have_v we_o can_v tell_v whether_o the_o governor_n in_o acquit_v paul_n before_o they_o do_v seek_v by_o this_o policy_n to_o entice_v he_o to_o let_v his_o appeal_n fall_v for_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n credible_a that_o he_o may_v easy_o be_v persuade_v to_o lay_v away_o fear_v and_o to_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n and_o discretion_n of_o a_o just_a judge_n especial_o if_o agrippa_n shall_v give_v his_o friendly_a consent_n to_o what_o end_n soever_o he_o do_v it_o he_o condemn_v himself_o of_o iniquity_n by_o his_o own_o mouth_n in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o let_v a_o guiltless_a man_n go_v free_a who_o he_o be_v now_o ashamed_a to_o send_v unto_o caesar_n have_v nothing_o to_o lay_v against_o he_o this_o do_v also_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o the_o jew_n themselves_o shall_v give_v a_o former_a judgement_n on_o paul_n side_n peradventure_o the_o governor_n go_v subtle_o to_o work_v that_o he_o may_v pick_v out_o what_o the_o king_n and_o the_o chief_a man_n of_o caesarea_n do_v think_v that_o if_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o paul_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n he_o may_v lay_v the_o blame_n on_o their_o neck_n for_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o priest_n to_o be_v his_o enemy_n for_o nothing_o upon_o who_o a_o good_a part_n of_o jerusalem_n do_v depend_v and_o that_o be_v the_o best_a way_n that_o he_o can_v take_v in_o write_v to_o caesar_n to_o intermingle_v the_o authority_n of_o agrippa_n but_o the_o lord_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o govern_v event_n contrary_a to_o man_n expectation_n have_v respect_n unto_o another_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o when_o the_o cloud_n of_o false_a accusation_n be_v drive_v away_o paul_n might_n more_o free_o avouch_v sound_a doctrine_n chap._n xxvi_o 1_o and_o agrippa_n say_v unto_o paul_n thou_o be_v permit_v to_o answer_v for_o thyself_o then_o paul_n stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n and_o answer_v for_o himself_o 2_o i_o think_v myself_o happy_a o_o king_n agrippa_n because_o i_o shall_v answer_v this_o day_n before_o thou_o of_o all_o the_o thing_n whereof_o i_o be_o accuse_v of_o the_o jew_n 3_o seeing_z thou_o be_v most_o expert_a in_o all_o those_o custom_n and_o question_n which_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n wherefore_o i_o beseech_v thou_o hear_v i_o patient_o 4_o my_o life_n which_o i_o have_v lead_v from_o my_o youth_n which_o be_v at_o the_o first_o in_o my_o own_o nation_n at_o jerusalem_n know_v all_o the_o jew_n 5_o who_o know_v i_o before_o since_o the_o beginning_n if_o they_o will_v testify_v that_o after_o the_o most_o straight_a sect_n of_o our_o religion_n i_o live_v a_o pharisee_n 6_o and_o now_o i_o stand_v subject_a to_o judgement_n for_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o promise_n which_o god_n make_v to_o our_o father_n 7_o whereunto_o our_o twelve_o tribe_n serve_v god_n instaunt_o day_n and_o night_n hope_v to_o come_v for_o which_o hope_n o_o king_n agrippa_n i_o be_o accuse_v of_o the_o jew_n 8_o why_o do_v it_o seem_v to_o you_o a_o thing_n incredible_a if_o god_n raise_v the_o dead_a 2_o we_o have_v declare_v to_o what_o end_n paul_n be_v bring_v before_o that_o assembly_n to_o wit_n that_o festus_n may_v write_v unto_o cesar_n as_o he_o shall_v be_v counsel_v by_o agrippa_n and_o the_o rest_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o use_v any_o plain_a or_o usual_a form_n of_o defence_n but_o do_v rather_o apply_v his_o speech_n unto_o doctrine_n luke_n use_v in_o deed_n a_o word_n of_o excuse_v yet_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v nothing_o inconvenient_a whensoever_o there_o be_v any_o account_n give_v of_o doctrine_n furthermore_o because_o paul_n know_v well_o that_o festus_n do_v set_v light_n by_o all_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n he_o turn_v himself_o unto_o the_o king_n who_o he_o hope_v will_v be_v more_o attentive_a see_v he_o be_v no_o stranger_n to_o the_o jewish_a religion_n and_o because_o he_o have_v hitherto_o speak_v to_o deaf_a man_n he_o rejoice_v now_o that_o he_o have_v get_v a_o man_n who_o for_o his_o skill_n and_o experience_n can_v judge_v aright_o but_o as_o he_o commend_v the_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n which_o be_v in_o agrippa_n because_o he_o be_v a_o lawful_a judge_n in_o those_o matter_n whereof_o he_o be_v to_o speak_v so_o he_o desire_v he_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o hear_v he_o patient_o for_o other_o wise_a contempt_n and_o loathsomnesse_n shall_v have_v be_v less_o excusable_a in_o he_o he_o call_v those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v handle_v among_o the_o scribe_n question_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o discuss_v religion_n more_o subtle_o by_o the_o word_n custom_n he_o mean_v those_o rite_n which_o be_v common_a to_o the_o whole_a nation_n therefore_o the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o king_n agrippa_n be_v not_o ignorant_a either_o in_o doctrine_n either_o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n that_o which_o he_o bring_v in_o or_o conclude_v wherefore_o i_o pray_v thou_o hear_v i_o patient_o as_o i_o say_v even_o now_o do_v signify_v that_o the_o more_o expert_a a_o man_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o more_o attentive_a must_v he_o be_v when_o the_o question_n be_v about_o religion_n for_o that_o which_o we_o understand_v do_v not_o trouble_v we_o so_o much_o and_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o be_v so_o careful_a for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n that_o it_o do_v not_o grieve_v we_o to_o hear_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o define_n thereof_o and_o chief_o when_o we_o have_v learn_v the_o principle_n so_o that_o we_o may_v ready_o judge_v if_o we_o listen_v to_o take_v heed_n 4_o my_o life_n which_o i_o have_v lead_v he_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o enter_v into_o the_o state_n of_o the_o cause_n but_o because_o he_o be_v wrongful_o accuse_v and_o burden_v with_o many_o crime_n jest_n king_n agrippa_n shall_v envy_v the_o cause_n through_o hatred_n of_o the_o person_n he_o do_v first_o avouch_v his_o innocence_n for_o we_o know_v that_o when_o a_o sinister_a suspicion_n have_v once_o possess_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n all_o their_o sense_n be_v so_o shut_v uppe_o that_o they_o can_v admit_v nothing_o therefore_o paul_n do_v first_o drive_v away_o the_o cloud_n of_o a_o evil_a opinion_n which_o be_v gather_v of_o false_a report_n that_o he_o may_v be_v hear_v of_o pure_a and_o well_o purge_v ear_n by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o paul_n be_v enforce_v by_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o cause_n to_o commend_v his_o life_n which_o he_o have_v lead_v before_o but_o he_o stand_v not_o long_o upon_o that_o point_n but_o pass_v over_o straightway_o unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o pharisee_fw-mi and_o i_o think_v that_o that_o be_v call_v the_o most_o straight_a sect_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o holiness_n of_o life_n but_o because_o there_o be_v in_o it_o more_o natural_a sincerity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o great_a learning_n for_o they_o do_v boast_v that_o they_o know_v the_o secret_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o sure_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o sadducee_n do_v vaunt_v that_o they_o do_v stick_v to_o the_o letter_n they_o fall_v into_o filthy_a and_o gross_a ignorance_n after_o they_o have_v darken_v the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o essenes_n content_v themselves_n with_o a_o austere_a and_o straight_a kind_n of_o life_n do_v not_o great_o care_v for_o doctrine_n neither_o do_v that_o any_o whit_n hinder_v because_o christ_n inveigh_v principal_o against_o the_o pharisee_n as_o be_v the_o worst_a corrupter_n of_o the_o scripture_n 23.13_o mat._n 23.13_o for_o see_v they_o do_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o authority_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o hide_a &_o secret_a meaning_n hence_o come_v that_o boldness_n to_o change_v and_o innovate_v wherewith_o the_o lord_n be_v displease_v but_o paul_n do_v not_o touch_v those_o invention_n which_o they_o have_v rash_o invent_v and_o which_o they_o urge_v with_o tyrannous_a rigour_n for_o it_o be_v his_o purpose_n to_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a for_o though_o they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o law_n in_o many_o point_n yet_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o sect_n shall_v be_v of_o more_o estimation_n in_o defend_v the_o sound_n and_o true_a faith_n then_o of_o the_o other_o which_o be_v depart_v far_o from_o natural_a purity_n moreover_o paul_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o common_a judgement_n which_o do_v respect_v the_o colour_n of_o more_o subtle_a knowledge_n 6_o for_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o promise_n he_o do_v now_o descend_v into_o the_o cause_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o labour_v for_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o
esai_n 9.2_o ibid._n 60.2_o the_o people_n which_o walk_v in_o darkness_n see_v great_a light_n and_o again_o behold_v darkness_n shall_v cover_v the_o earth_n and_o a_o mist_n the_o people_n but_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v see_v upon_o thou_o again_o behold_v those_o which_o be_v in_o darkness_n shall_v see_v light_a again_o i_o have_v make_v thou_o a_o light_n of_o the_o gentile_n 49.6_o ibid._n 42.16_o &_o 6._o &_o 49.6_o and_o it_o appear_v by_o many_o oracle_n that_o the_o light_n of_o life_n shall_v come_v out_o of_o judea_n and_o shall_v be_v spread_v abroad_o among_o the_o gentile_n 24_o and_o as_o paul_n answer_v for_o himself_o festus_n say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n paul_n thou_o be_v beside_o thyself_o much_o learning_n do_v make_v thou_o mad_a 25_o and_o paul_n say_v i_o be_o not_o mad_a most_o noble_a festus_n but_o speak_v forth_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o sobriety_n 26_o for_o the_o king_n know_v of_o these_o thing_n before_o who_o i_o also_o speak_v free_o for_o i_o think_v that_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v hide_v from_o he_o for_o this_o be_v not_o do_v in_o a_o corner_n 27_o king_n agrippa_n believe_v thou_o the_o prophet_n i_o know_v that_o thou_o believe_v 28_o and_o agrippa_n say_v unto_o paul_n thou_o brief_o persuade_v i_o to_o become_v a_o christian_n 29_o and_o paul_n say_v will_v to_o god_n that_o not_o only_o thou_o but_o also_o all_o which_o hear_v i_o this_o day_n be_v both_o almost_o and_o altogether_o such_o as_o i_o be_o except_o these_o bond_n 30_o and_o when_o he_o have_v thus_o speak_v the_o king_n arise_v and_o the_o governor_n and_o bernice_n and_o those_o which_o sit_v with_o they_o 31_o and_o when_o they_o be_v go_v apart_o they_o talk_v together_o between_o themselves_o say_v this_o man_n do_v nothing_o worthy_a of_o death_n or_o bond_n 32_o then_o agrippa_n say_v to_o festus_n this_o man_n may_v have_v be_v loose_v if_o he_o have_v not_o appeal_v unto_o cesar_n 24_o festus_n say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n this_o outcry_n which_o festus_n do_v make_v do_v show_v how_o much_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n prevail_v with_o the_o reprobate_n to_o wit_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o plain_a and_o evident_a yet_o be_v it_o tread_v under_o foot_n by_o their_o pride_n for_o though_o those_o thing_n which_o paul_n have_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n have_v nothing_o in_o they_o which_o be_v any_o thing_n like_o to_o madness_n but_o be_v ground_v in_o good_a reason_n yet_o he_o do_v attribute_v the_o same_o to_o madness_n not_o because_o he_o see_v any_o absurdity_n but_o because_o he_o refuse_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v not_o understande_v nothing_o be_v more_o foolish_a or_o more_o unsavourie_a than_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n so_o that_o their_o high_a priest_n be_v for_o good_a cause_n ashamed_a to_o utter_v their_o mystery_n who_o folly_n be_v more_o than_o ridiculous_a festus_n do_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v learning_n pack_v in_o paul_n speech_n nevertheless_o because_o the_o gospel_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o unbeliever_n 4.3_o 2._o cor._n 4.3_o who_o mind_n satan_n have_v blind_v he_o think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o brainsick_a fellow_n which_o handle_v matter_n intricarlie_o so_o that_o though_o he_o can_v mock_v and_o open_o contemn_v he_o yet_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v move_v or_o inward_o touch_v that_o he_o count_v he_o a_o man_n which_o be_v frenzy_n and_o of_o mad_a curiosity_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o he_o can_v away_o to_o mark_n what_o he_o say_v lest_o he_o make_v he_o mad_a also_o as_o many_o at_o this_o day_n fly_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n lest_o they_o drown_v themselves_o in_o a_o labarinth_n and_o they_o think_v that_o we_o be_v mad_a because_o we_o move_v question_n concern_v hide_a matter_n and_o so_o become_v troublesome_a both_o to_o ourselves_o and_o also_o to_o other_o wherefore_o be_v admonish_v by_o this_o example_n let_v we_o beg_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v show_v we_o the_o light_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o that_o he_o will_v therewithal_o give_v we_o a_o taste_n thereof_o least_o through_o obscurity_n and_o hardness_n it_o become_v unsavourie_a and_o at_o length_n proud_a loathsomnesse_n break_v out_o into_o blasphemy_n 25_o i_o be_o not_o mad_a paul_n be_v not_o angry_a neither_o do_v he_o sharp_o reprehend_v festus_n for_o his_o blasphemous_a speech_n yea_o he_o speak_v unto_o he_o with_o great_a submission_n for_o it_o be_v no_o place_n for_o reprehension_n and_o it_o become_v he_o to_o pardon_v the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o man_n see_v he_o do_v not_o set_v himself_o face_n to_o face_n against_o god_n also_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o his_o person_n for_o though_o he_o be_v unworthy_a of_o honour_n yet_o be_v he_o in_o authority_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o do_v not_o therefore_o give_v place_n to_o his_o blasphemy_n but_o he_o defend_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o do_v also_o see_v that_o not_o care_v for_o himself_o he_o do_v only_o take_v think_v for_o his_o doctrine_n for_o he_o do_v not_o vaunt_v of_o his_o wit_n he_o do_v not_o labour_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o wisdom_n but_o he_o be_v content_a with_o this_o defence_n alone_o that_o he_o teach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v true_a and_o sober_a furthermore_o the_o truth_n be_v set_v against_o all_o manner_n fallacy_n and_o fraud_n sobriety_n against_o all_o manner_n frivolous_a speculation_n and_o thorny_a subtlety_n which_o be_v only_a seed_n of_o contention_n paul_n do_v in_o deed_n refute_v festus_n his_o error_n yet_o we_o may_v gather_v by_o this_o which_o be_v the_o best_a manner_n of_o teach_v to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v not_o only_o clean_a from_o all_o fallicy_n and_o deceit_n but_o also_o do_v not_o make_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n drunken_a with_o vain_a question_n and_o do_v not_o nourish_v foolish_a curiosity_n nor_o a_o intemperate_a desire_n to_o know_v more_o than_o be_v meet_v but_o be_v moderate_a and_o good_a for_o sound_v edification_n 26_o for_o the_o king_n know_v of_o these_o thânges_n he_o turn_v himself_o unto_o agrippa_n in_o who_o there_o be_v more_o hope_n and_o first_o he_o say_v that_o he_o know_v the_o history_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o he_o call_v he_o straightway_o back_o to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n for_o it_o be_v to_o small_a end_n for_o he_o to_o know_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v unless_o he_o do_v know_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v speak_v before_o of_o christ_n be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o person_n of_o jesus_n which_o be_v crucify_v and_o whereas_o paul_n do_v not_o doubt_n of_o agrippa_n his_o faith_n he_o do_v it_o not_o so_o much_o to_o praise_v he_o as_o that_o he_o may_v put_v the_o scripture_n out_o of_o all_o question_n lest_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o stand_v upon_o the_o very_a principle_n therefore_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o sufficient_a credit_n of_o itself_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o jew_n to_o diminish_v any_o jot_n of_o the_o authority_n thereof_o and_o yet_o paul_n do_v not_o flatter_v he_o for_o though_o he_o do_v not_o reverence_v the_o scripture_n as_o become_v a_o godly_a man_n yet_o he_o have_v this_o rudiment_n from_o his_o childhood_n that_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o nothing_o be_v contain_v therein_o beside_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n as_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n though_o they_o do_v not_o great_o care_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o they_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v general_o and_o confuse_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o be_v let_v with_o some_o reverence_n either_o to_o reject_v or_o to_o despise_v the_o same_o 28_o and_o agrippa_n say_v unto_o paul_n the_o apostle_n prevail_v thus_o far_o at_o least_o that_o he_o wrong_v out_o of_o king_n agrippa_n a_o confession_n though_o it_o be_v not_o voluntary_a as_o those_o use_n to_o yield_v who_o can_v no_o long_o resist_v the_o truth_n or_o at_o least_o to_o show_v some_o token_n of_o assent_n agrippa_z his_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o will_v not_o willing_o become_v a_o christian_n yea_o that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v one_o at_o all_o and_o yet_o that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o gainsay_v but_o that_o he_o be_v draw_v after_o a_o sort_n against_o his_o wil._n whereby_o it_o appear_v how_o great_a the_o pride_n of_o man_n nature_n be_v until_o it_o be_v bring_v under_o to_o obey_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n interpreter_n expound_v this_o en_fw-fr olige_n diverse_o valla_n think_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v translate_v thus_o thou_o do_v almost_o make_v i_o a_o christian_n erasmus_n do_v translate_v
year_n of_o age_n 1._o 1._o 2._o 1._o how_o dangerous_a the_o denial_n of_o christ_n be_v 3._o 17._o and_o 5._o 40._o and_o 26._o 10._o christ_n his_o come_n be_v comfortable_a to_o the_o godly_a but_o fearful_a to_o the_o wicked_a 14._o 23._o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v common_a to_o christ_n 9_o 5._o christ_n ascension_n be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n 1._o 9_o how_o great_a the_o authority_n of_o christ_n be_v 3._o 23._o christ_n body_n be_v not_o infinite_a 1._o 11._o how_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n 1._o 11._o and_o 7._o 56._o all_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n 20._o 35._o how_o great_a the_o dignity_n of_o christ_n be_v 10._o 38._o and_o 17._o 31._o how_o necessary_a the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n his_o doctrine_n be_v 1._o 1._o the_o sum_n of_o christ_n his_o doctrine_n 1._o 3._o christ_n glory_n be_v wonderful_a 8._o 33._o what_o great_a account_n we_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n 11._o 25._o and_o 26._o 10._o christ_n his_o grace_n reach_v unto_o all_o degree_n 17._o 11_o christ_n his_o grace_n must_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o presence_n 26._o 19_o how_o we_o must_v handle_v the_o contemner_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n 13._o 40._o how_o gentle_o christ_n deal_v with_o those_o that_o be_v he_o 10._o 41._o christ_n his_o innocency_n 13._o 28._o how_o great_a the_o majesty_n of_o christ_n be_v 2._o 34._o and_o 9_o 3._o and_o 13._o 25._o to_o what_o end_n christ_n his_o miracle_n do_v tend_v 10._o 38._o christ_n his_o death_n be_v slanderous_a 5._o 30._o christ_n his_o death_n be_v foretell_v 8._o 32._o christ_n death_n be_v lively_a 8._o 32._o christ_n his_o death_n be_v voluntary_a 8._o 37._o to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n 9_o 15_o christ_n his_o office_n 1._o 1._o 5._o and_o 2._o 33._o and_o 3._o 25._o and_o 10._o 43._o and_o 13._o 38._o and_o 17_o 3._o and_o 26._o 22._o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v in_o time_n past_o shadow_v by_o figure_n 21._o 7._o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v eternal_a 2._o 35._o &_o 8._o 33._o and_o 13._o 34._o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v spiritual_a 17._o 7_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v never_o quiet_a in_o the_o world_n 4._o 25._o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n 1._o 6._o the_o ornament_n of_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n 21._o 9_o the_o perfection_n of_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v defer_v till_o the_o last_o day_n 3._o 21._o christ_n his_o resurrection_n be_v true_a 13._o 30._o 33._o christ_n his_o resurrection_n be_v a_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o 21._o christ_n his_o resurrection_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o accomplish_n of_o the_o gospel_n 4._o 33._o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n his_o resurrection_n be_v very_o necessary_a 1._o 3._o the_o use_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n 13._o 34._o the_o voluntary_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n 8._o 32_o christ_n triumph_n in_o death_n 8._o 33._o christ_n his_o victory_n get_v of_o his_o adversary_n 8._o 33._o christ_n life_n last_v ever_o ibid._n the_o force_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n 9_o 40._o the_o difference_n between_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n 3._o 13._o the_o compare_v of_o christ_n and_o john_n baptist_n together_o 1._o 5._o the_o difference_n between_o christ_n &_o the_o pastor_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n 1._o 5._o and_o 7._o 36._o and_o 11._o 16._o all_o thing_n be_v subject_a to_o christ_n 7._o 59_o and_o 9_o 5._o christianity_n can_v be_v without_o doctrine_n 9_o 36._o the_o true_a rule_n of_o christianity_n 1._o 1._o the_o sum_n of_o christianity_n 1._o 3._o and_o 2._o 38._o and_o 8._o 32._o christian_n be_v sometime_o call_v disciple_n 9_o 36._o &_o 14._o 23._o &_o 18._o 22._o &_o 21_o 4._o who_o be_v true_a christian_n 14._o 23._o &_o 15._o 22._o how_o far_o forth_o christian_n ought_v to_o flee_v persecution_n 11._o 20._o chrysostom_n place_n 8._o 33._o 36._o &_o 18._o 3_o cicero_n place_n 9_o 25._o and_o 17._o 21._o in_o what_o sense_n circumcision_n be_v call_v the_o eternal_a covenant_n 15._o 9_o there_o have_v always_o be_v a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n 23._o 6._o how_o hurtful_a domestical_a adversary_n be_v 15._o 1._o &_o 20_o 30._o how_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v accomplish_v 1._o 17._o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o church_n 5._o 15._o the_o warfare_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v 3._o 21._o four_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o 42._o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o no_o long_a continuance_n 12._o 1._o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v avouch_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n 8._o 33._o the_o persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v sore_o punish_v 1._o 20._o &_o 9_o 5._o why_o the_o church_n do_v err_v so_o long_o 14._o 16._o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o the_o election_n of_o min._n 6._o 5._o the_o church_n have_v always_o something_o which_o may_v be_v reform_v 6._o 1._o the_o church_n be_v assault_v on_o every_o side_n for_o diverse_a cause_n 12._o 3._o how_o hard_a and_o laborious_a the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 18._o 11._o the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v stable_n in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n 2._o 17._o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n 7._o 30._o look_v the_o state_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o true_a and_o right_o order_v of_o the_o church_n 15._o 16._o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o christ_n 10._o 42._o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 1._o 18._o the_o church_n be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n 9_o 31._o the_o church_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o building_n 4._o 11._o the_o church_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n 9_o 31._o the_o domestical_a church_n 10._o 2._o the_o church_n gather_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n 15._o 16._o the_o church_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n gather_v of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n 9_o 43_o how_o precious_a the_o church_n be_v to_o god_n 20._o 28._o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v without_o discipline_n 3._o 1._o the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o a_o ordinary_a ministry_n 14._o 23._o how_o the_o church_n increase_v 1._o 15._o &_o 2._o 41._o &_o 4._o 32._o &_o 5._o 14._o and_o 6._o 1._o 7._o and_o 9_o 32._o and_o 11._o 19_o and_o 13._o 49._o and_o 16._o 5._o 16._o and_o 17._o 12._o and_o 19_o 1._o 20._o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n among_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o 7._o the_o horrible_a dissipation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n 23._o 2._o principal_a church_n serve_v not_o a_o little_a to_o keep_v other_o church_n in_o order_n 15._o 36_o how_o far_o we_o must_v imitate_v the_o example_n of_o church_n 15._o 1._o how_o profitable_a and_o necessary_a the_o unity_n of_o church_n be_v 8._o 14._o circumcision_n be_v to_o the_o jew_n a_o token_n and_o pledge_n of_o free_a adoption_n 7._o 8._o whence_o some_o gather_v that_o the_o jew_n ought_v at_o this_o day_n to_o observe_v circumcision_n with_o the_o appurtenance_n thereof_o 15._o 21._o and_o 16._o 3._o common_a for_o that_o which_o be_v profane_a 10._o 14_o the_o complaint_n of_o gregory_n nazianzene_n of_o the_o success_n of_o counsel_n 15._o 2._o brotherly_o concord_n be_v commend_v 1._o 14_o and_o 4._o 32._o auricular_a confession_n of_o the_o papist_n 19_o 19_o the_o conscience_n have_v two_o part_n 24._o 16._o security_n of_o conscience_n be_v very_o necessary_a 10._o 20._o a_o evil_a conscience_n drive_v man_n unto_o madness_n 7._o 26._o example_n of_o a_o evil_a conscience_n 5._o 2._o and_o 6._o 12._o consent_v of_o the_o wicked_a in_o oppress_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 23._o 6._o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o faithful_a 3._o 20._o and_o 4._o 18._o and_o 5._o 17._o 41._o &_o 7._o 55._o 59_o and_o 8._o 2._o &_o 9_o 5._o 37._o and_o 12._o 3._o 23_o and_o 14._o 21._o and_o 22._o 7._o conspiracy_n to_o put_v paul_n to_o death_n 23._o 12._o contention_n be_v to_o be_v avoid_v 23._o 9_o 10_o corinthus_n a_o sumptuous_a and_o populous_a city_n 18._o 1._o how_o long_o paul_n preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o corinthus_n 18_o 11._o cornelius_n the_o centurion_n 10._o 1._o 2._o cornelius_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n after_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n 10._o 3._o cornelius_n be_v one_o of_o the_o faithful_a before_o peter_n be_v send_v unto_o he_o 10._o 4._o wherein_o cornelius_n offend_v in_o give_v honour_n to_o peter_n 10._o 25._o cornelius_n his_o willing_a obedience_n 10._o 7._o covetousness_n be_v condemn_v 5._o 1._o &_o 10_o 2._o and_o 19_o 24._o and_o 20._o 33._o how_o great_a the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n be_v 15._o 2._o 28._o the_o decree_n
of_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n but_o he_o do_v simple_o declare_v that_o the_o whole_a strength_n of_o baptism_n be_v contain_v in_o christ_n although_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v lay_v hold_v on_o by_o faith_n without_o the_o father_n by_o who_o he_o be_v give_v we_o and_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o which_o he_o renew_v and_o sanctifi_v us._n the_o answer_n consist_v whole_o in_o this_o that_o he_o intreat_v not_o in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o certain_a form_n of_o baptise_v but_o the_o faithful_a be_v call_v back_o unto_o christ_n in_o who_o alone_o we_o have_v whatsoever_o baptism_n do_v prefigure_v unto_o us._n for_o we_o be_v both_o make_v clean_o by_o his_o blood_n and_o also_o we_o enter_v into_o a_o new_a life_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o they_o be_v touch_v with_o wonder_v when_o they_o see_v the_o apostle_n sudden_o begin_v to_o speak_v with_o strange_a tongue_n peter_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o gift_n if_o they_o will_v pass_v over_o unto_o christ_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n be_v the_o principal_a thing_n and_o this_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o addition_n that_o christ_n shall_v show_v forth_o unto_o they_o his_o power_n by_o some_o visible_a gift_n neither_o ought_v this_o place_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o sanctification_n which_o be_v give_v general_o to_o all_o the_o godly_a therefore_o he_o promise_v they_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereof_o they_o see_v a_o pattern_n in_o the_o diversity_n of_o tongue_n therefore_o this_o do_v not_o proper_o appertain_v unto_o us._n for_o because_o christ_n mean_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o beginning_n of_o his_o kingdom_n with_o those_o miracle_n they_o last_v but_o for_o a_o time_n yet_o because_o the_o visible_a grace_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v distribute_v to_o his_o do_v show_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o glass_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o giver_n of_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o that_o which_o peter_n say_v do_v in_o some_o respect_n appertain_v unto_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o although_o we_o do_v not_o receive_v it_o that_o we_o may_v speak_v with_o tongue_n 5.24_o rom._n 10.10_o john_n 5.24_o that_o we_o may_v be_v prophet_n that_o we_o may_v cure_v the_o sick_a that_o we_o may_v work_v miracle_n yet_o be_v it_o give_v we_o for_o a_o better_a use_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v with_o the_o heart_n unto_o righteousness_n that_o our_o tongue_n may_v be_v frame_v unto_o true_a confession_n that_o we_o may_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n that_o we_o which_o be_v poor_a and_o empty_a may_v be_v make_v rich_a that_o we_o may_v withstand_v satan_n and_o the_o world_n stout_o therefore_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v always_o be_v annex_v unto_o baptism_n unless_o the_o let_v be_v in_o ourselves_o 39_o for_o the_o promise_n appertain_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o this_o shall_v be_v express_o add_v that_o the_o jew_n may_v certain_o think_v and_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n do_v belong_v as_o well_o to_o they_o as_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o peter_n proove_v it_o thus_o because_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v make_v unto_o they_o for_o we_o must_v always_o look_v unto_o this_o because_o we_o can_v otherwise_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n save_v only_o by_o his_o word_n but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v the_o general_a word_n unless_o we_o know_v that_o the_o same_o be_v appoint_v for_o us._n therefore_o peter_n say_v that_o those_o benefit_n which_o they_o see_v in_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n be_v in_o time_n past_o promise_v to_o the_o jew_n because_o this_o be_v require_v necessary_o for_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n that_o every_o one_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o this_o that_o he_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o unto_o who_o god_n speak_v final_o this_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o a_o true_a faith_n when_o i_o be_o thus_o persuade_v that_o salvation_n be_v i_o because_o that_o promise_n appertain_v unto_o i_o which_o offer_v the_o same_o and_o hereby_o we_o have_v also_o a_o great_a confirmation_n when_o as_o the_o promise_n be_v extend_v unto_o those_o who_o be_v before_o a_o far_o off_o for_o god_n have_v make_v the_o covenant_n with_o the_o jew_n if_o the_o force_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o come_v also_o unto_o the_o gentile_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o jew_n shall_v doubt_v of_o themselves_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v find_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n firm_a and_o stable_a 17.7_o exod._n 4.22_o gene._n 17.7_o and_o we_o must_v note_v these_o three_o degree_n that_o the_o promise_n be_v first_o make_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o then_o to_o their_o child_n and_o last_o of_o all_o that_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v impart_v to_o the_o gentile_n we_o know_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o jew_n be_v prefer_v before_o other_o people_n for_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o beget_v in_o god_n family_n yea_o they_o be_v then_o separate_v from_o other_o people_n by_o a_o singular_a privilege_n therefore_o peter_n observe_v a_o good_a order_n when_o he_o give_v the_o jew_n the_o pre-eminence_n whereas_o he_o adjoin_v their_o child_n unto_o they_o it_o depend_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o promise_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o seed_n after_o thou_o where_o god_n do_v reckon_v the_o child_n with_o the_o father_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n this_o place_n therefore_o do_v abundant_o refute_v the_o manifest_a error_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n which_o will_v not_o have_v infant_n which_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o be_v baptize_v as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o church_n they_o espy_v a_o start_a hole_n in_o the_o allegorical_a sense_n and_o they_o expound_v it_o thus_o that_o by_o child_n be_v mean_v those_o which_o be_v spiritual_o beget_v but_o this_o gross_a impudence_n do_v nothing_o help_v they_o it_o be_v plain_a and_o evident_a that_o peter_n speak_v thus_o because_o god_n do_v addopt_v one_o nation_n peculiar_o and_o circumcision_n do_v declare_v that_o the_o right_n of_o adoption_n be_v common_a even_o unto_o infant_n therefore_o even_o as_o god_n make_v his_o covenant_n with_o isaad_n be_v as_o yet_o unborn_a because_o he_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n so_o peter_n teach_v that_o all_o the_o child_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o same_o covenant_n because_o this_o promise_n be_v always_o in_o force_n i_o will_v be_v the_o god_n of_o your_o seed_n and_o to_o those_o which_o be_v a_o far_o of_o the_o gentile_n be_v name_v in_o the_o last_o place_n which_o be_v before_o stranger_n for_o those_o which_o refer_v it_o unto_o those_o jew_n which_o be_v exile_v a_o far_o off_o and_o drive_v into_o far_a country_n they_o be_v great_o disceive_v for_o he_o speak_v not_o in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o distance_n of_o place_n but_o he_o note_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n that_o they_o be_v first_o join_v to_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o so_o consequent_o become_v of_o his_o family_n or_o household_n but_o the_o gentile_n be_v banish_v from_o his_o kingdom_n paul_n use_v the_o same_o speech_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 2.11_o ephes_n 2.11_o that_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o promise_n be_v now_o draw_v near_o through_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o god_n because_o that_o christ_n the_o wall_n of_o separation_n be_v take_v away_o have_v reconcile_v both_o the_o jew_n &_o gentile_n unto_o the_o father_n and_o come_v he_o have_v preach_v peace_n unto_o those_o which_o be_v nigh_o at_o hand_n and_o which_o be_v a_o far_o off_o now_o we_o understande_v peter_n his_o meaning_n for_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v amplify_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n he_o do_v so_o offer_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o jew_n that_o he_o say_v the_o gentile_n be_v also_o partaker_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o he_o use_v this_o word_n call_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v like_a as_o god_n have_v gather_v you_o together_o into_o one_o peculiar_a people_n heretofore_o by_o his_o voice_n so_o the_o same_o voice_n shall_v sound_v every_o where_n that_o those_o which_o be_v a_o far_o off_o may_v come_v and_o join_v themselves_o unto_o you_o when_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v by_o a_o new_a proclamation_n 40_o and_o with_o many_o other_o word_n do_v he_o testify_v and_o exhort_v say_v be_v you_o save_v from_o this_o froward_a generation_n 41_o those_o therefore_o which_o willing_o embrace_v his_o word_n be_v
the_o use_n of_o the_o law_n may_v no_o long_o remain_v when_o as_o we_o maintain_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o bestow_v as_o it_o please_v they_o here_o and_o there_o after_o that_o they_o have_v rend_v it_o in_o a_o thousand_o piece_n like_o a_o pray_v they_o feign_v that_o we_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o saint_n they_o false_o report_v that_o we_o seek_v the_o licentiousness_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o spirit_n while_o that_o we_o endeavour_n to_o restore_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o his_o pure_a and_o lawful_a use_n they_o cry_v out_o impudent_o that_o we_o overthrow_v and_o destroy_v the_o same_o other_o also_o which_o take_v away_o all_o thing_n as_o do_v the_o academike_n because_o that_o do_v not_o please_v they_o which_o we_o teach_v concern_v the_o secret_a predestination_n of_o god_n and_o that_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n dispitefullie_o that_o we_o make_v god_n a_o tyrant_n which_o take_v pleasure_n in_o put_v innocent_a man_n to_o death_n see_v that_o he_o have_v already_o adjudge_v those_o unto_o eternal_a death_n which_o be_v as_o yet_o unborn_a and_o other_o such_o thing_n can_v be_v say_v on_o this_o behalf_n 2.16_o 2._o cor._n 2.16_o whereas_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v sufficient_o convict_v that_o we_o think_v reverent_o of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o speak_v no_o otherwise_o than_o he_o teach_v with_o his_o own_o mouth_n it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o endure_v such_o envy_n yet_o must_v we_o not_o therefore_o cease_v of_o to_o defend_v a_o good_a cause_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v precious_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v precious_a unto_o we_o although_o it_o be_v unto_o the_o reprobate_a the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n but_o now_o i_o return_v unto_o stephen_n his_o accusation_n the_o principal_a point_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o he_o blaspheme_v god_n and_o moses_n they_o do_v for_o good_a consideration_n make_v the_o injury_n common_a to_o god_n and_o to_o moses_n because_o moses_n have_v nothing_o in_o his_o doctrine_n which_o be_v his_o own_o or_o separate_v from_o god_n they_o prove_v this_o because_o he_o speak_v blasphemous_o against_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o law_n furthermore_o they_o make_v this_o the_o blasphemy_n because_o he_o say_v that_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o ceremony_n it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o stephen_n speak_v thus_o as_o they_o report_v but_o they_o malicious_o wrest_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v well_o and_o godly_o that_o they_o may_v colour_v their_o false_a accusation_n but_o although_o they_o have_v change_v nothing_o in_o the_o word_n yet_o stephen_n be_v so_o far_o from_o do_v any_o injury_n to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o temple_n that_o he_o can_v no_o way_n better_o and_o more_o true_o praise_v the_o same_o the_o jew_n do_v suppose_v that_o the_o temple_n be_v quite_o dishonour_v unless_o the_o shadowish_a estate_n thereof_o shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o that_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v frustrate_a and_o nothing_o worth_a unless_o the_o ceremony_n shall_v be_v continual_o in_o force_n but_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o ceremony_n consist_v rather_o in_o this_o while_o that_o they_o be_v refer_v unto_o christ_n as_o unto_o their_o principal_a pattern_n therefore_o howsoever_o the_o accusation_n have_v some_o colour_n yet_o be_v it_o unjust_a and_o wicked_a and_o although_o the_o fact_n come_v in_o question_n that_o be_v whether_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o as_o the_o adversary_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n notwithstanding_o the_o state_n be_v proper_o of_o quality_n for_o they_o accuse_v stephen_n because_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o form_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o be_v then_o use_v shall_v be_v change_v and_o they_o interpret_v this_o to_o be_v blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o moses_n therefore_o the_o controversy_n be_v rather_o concern_v right_o as_o they_o say_v than_o the_o fact_n itself_o for_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o he_o be_v injurious_a and_o wicked_a against_o god_n and_o moses_n who_o say_v that_o the_o visible_a temple_n be_v a_o image_n of_o a_o more_o excellent_a sanctuary_n wherein_o dwell_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o who_o teach_v that_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o law_n be_v temporal_a this_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n they_o speak_v thus_o of_o christ_n disdainful_o as_o if_o the_o remembrance_n of_o he_o be_v detestable_a nevertheless_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o their_o accusation_n that_o stephen_n do_v in_o the_o abrogate_a of_o the_o law_n set_v the_o body_n against_o the_o shadow_n and_o the_o substance_n against_o the_o figure_n for_o if_o ceremony_n be_v abolish_v by_o christ_n their_o truth_n be_v spiritual_a the_o jew_n which_o will_v have_v they_o continue_v for_o ever_o do_v consider_v nothing_o in_o they_o but_o that_o which_o be_v gross_a carnal_a earthly_a and_o which_o may_v be_v see_v with_o the_o eye_n brief_o if_o the_o use_n of_o ceremony_n be_v continual_a they_o shall_v be_v frail_a and_o shall_v vanish_v away_o because_o they_o shall_v have_v nothing_o but_o the_o only_a external_a show_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o soundness_n therefore_o this_o be_v their_o true_a perpetuity_n when_o as_o they_o be_v abrogate_a by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o follow_v here_o upon_o that_o the_o force_n and_o effect_v thereof_o do_v consist_v in_o christ_n shall_v change_v the_o ordinance_n it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o stephen_n mean_v this_o of_o the_o ceremonial_a part_n only_o but_o because_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v more_o addict_v to_o external_a pomp_n these_o man_n understande_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v as_o if_o stephen_n will_v bring_v the_o whole_a law_n to_o nothing_o the_o principal_a precept_n of_o the_o law_n do_v in_o deed_n concern_v the_o spiritual_a worship_n of_o god_n faith_n justice_n and_o judgement_n but_o because_o these_o man_n make_v more_o account_n of_o the_o external_a rite_n they_o call_v the_o rite_n which_o be_v command_v concern_v the_o sacrifice_n ordinance_n of_o moses_n by_o excellency_n this_o be_v breed_v by_o the_o bone_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o will_v never_o out_o of_o the_o flesh_n so_o long_o as_o it_o last_v as_o at_o this_o day_n the_o papist_n acknowledge_v no_o worship_n of_o god_n save_v only_o in_o their_o visure_n although_o they_o differ_v much_o from_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o follow_v nothing_o but_o the_o frivolous_a invention_n of_o man_n for_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o when_o they_o have_v behold_v man_n do_v common_o in_o place_n of_o judgement_n turn_v their_o eye_n toward_o the_o party_n arreign_v when_o as_o they_o look_v for_o his_o defence_n he_o say_v that_o stephen_n appear_v like_a to_o a_o angel_n this_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o his_o natural_a face_n but_o rather_o of_o his_o present_a countenance_n for_o whereas_o the_o countenance_n of_o those_o which_o be_v areign_v use_v common_o to_o be_v pale_a whereas_o they_o stammer_v in_o their_o speech_n and_o show_v other_o sign_n of_o fear_n luke_n teach_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o stephen_n but_o that_o there_o appear_v rather_o in_o he_o a_o certain_a majesty_n for_o the_o scripture_n use_v sometime_o to_o borrow_v a_o similitude_n of_o angel_n in_o this_o sense_n as_o 1._o 19.27_o 1._o sam._n 24.9_o 2._o sam._n 14.17_o 2._o sam._n 19.27_o sam._n 24._o &_o 2.14_o &_o 19_o chap._n vii_o 1_o and_o the_o chief_a priest_n say_v be_v these_o thing_n so_o 2_o he_o answer_v man_n brethren_n and_o father_n harken_v the_o god_n of_o glory_n appear_v to_o our_o father_n abraham_n when_o he_o be_v in_o mesopotamia_n before_o he_o dwell_v in_o charran_n 3_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o come_v out_o of_o my_o country_n and_o from_o among_o thy_o kindred_n and_o come_v into_o the_o land_n which_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o 4_o then_o he_o come_v out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o the_o chaldee_n &_o dwell_v in_o charran_n after_o that_o his_o father_n be_v dead_a god_n bring_v he_o thence_o into_o this_o land_n wherein_o you_o now_o dwell_v 1_o there_o appear_v as_o yet_o some_o colour_n of_o equity_n in_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o in_o the_o council_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v a_o most_o unjust_a prejudice_n in_o his_o word_n for_o he_o ask_v he_o not_o what_o cause_n he_o have_v to_o teach_v thus_o neither_o do_v he_o admit_v he_o unto_o the_o defence_n of_o right_n which_o be_v notwithstanding_o the_o chief_a but_o he_o demand_v precise_o whether_o steeven_n utter_v these_o word_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v as_o the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n will_v not_o demand_v what_o
doctrine_n it_o be_v and_o whether_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o inquire_v whether_o any_o man_n dare_v mutter_v against_o their_o superstition_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v convict_v they_o may_v forthwith_o burn_v he_o furthermore_o steeven_n answer_n may_v seem_v at_o the_o first_o blush_v absurd_a and_o foolish_a he_o begin_v first_o at_o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n afterward_o he_o make_v a_o long_a narration_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o a_o manner_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a fault_n than_o to_o utter_v many_o word_n which_o be_v nothing_o appertinent_a unto_o the_o matter_n but_o whosoever_o shall_v thorough_o consider_v this_o long_a speech_n he_o shall_v find_v nothing_o therein_o which_o be_v superfluous_a and_o shall_v full_o well_o perceive_v that_o steven_n speak_v very_o appertinent_o as_o the_o matter_n require_v he_o be_v accuse_v as_o a_o apostata_fw-la or_o revolt_v which_o do_v attempt_v the_o overthrow_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o beat_v in_o this_o diligent_o that_o he_o retain_v that_o god_n which_o the_o father_n have_v always_o worship_v so_o that_o he_o turn_v away_o the_o crime_n of_o wicked_a backslide_n and_o declare_v that_o his_o enemy_n be_v prick_v forward_o with_o nothing_o less_o than_o with_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o bear_v a_o show_n that_o they_o be_v whole_o determine_v to_o increase_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o wringe_v from_o they_o this_o false_a boast_n and_o because_o they_o have_v the_o father_n always_o in_o their_o mouth_n because_o they_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o nation_n steeven_n declare_v also_o that_o they_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o be_v proud_a of_o this_o but_o rather_o that_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o father_n be_v so_o great_a &_o so_o many_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o to_o be_v ashamed_a and_o humble_v as_o concern_v the_o principal_a state_n of_o the_o cause_n because_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o temple_n and_o the_o ceremony_n he_o affirm_v plain_o that_o their_o father_n be_v elect_v of_o god_n to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n before_o there_o be_v any_o temple_n and_o before_o moses_n be_v bear_v and_o to_o this_o end_n tend_v that_o exordium_n or_o beginning_n which_o be_v so_o far_o fetch_v second_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o all_o external_a rite_n which_o god_n give_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n be_v fashion_v according_a to_o the_o heavenly_a pattern_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v refer_v unto_o another_o end_n and_o that_o those_o deal_n foolish_o and_o disordered_o who_o omit_v the_o truth_n and_o stay_v only_o in_o the_o sign_n if_o the_o reader_n shall_v refer_v the_o whole_a oration_n of_o steeven_n unto_o these_o point_n they_o shall_v find_v nothing_o therein_o which_o agree_v not_o very_o well_o with_o the_o cause_n as_o i_o shall_v declare_v again_o brief_o in_o the_o end_n nevertheless_o that_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a oration_n shall_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o we_o may_v discuss_v all_o thing_n brief_o which_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n 2_o man_n brethren_n and_o father_n although_o steeven_n see_v that_o those_o which_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o swear_a enemy_n of_o christ_n yet_o because_o the_o ordinary_a government_n of_o the_o people_n do_v belong_v to_o they_o and_o they_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o church_n which_o god_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o cast_v of_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a for_o modesty_n sake_n to_o call_v they_o father_n neither_o do_v he_o flatter_o purchase_n favour_n hereby_o but_o he_o give_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o order_n and_o government_n appoint_v by_o god_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o authority_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o the_o order_n be_v alter_v nevertheless_o the_o reverence_n of_o the_o place_n which_o they_o have_v do_v not_o hinder_v he_o nor_o stop_v his_o mouth_n but_o that_o he_o do_v free_o dissent_v from_o they_o whereby_o it_o appear_v how_o ridiculous_a the_o papist_n be_v who_o will_v have_v we_o so_o tie_v unto_o bare_a &_o vain_a invent_a title_n that_o they_o may_v enforce_v we_o to_o subscribe_v unto_o their_o decree_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o wicked_a the_o god_n of_o glory_n by_o this_o beginning_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o do_v not_o disagree_v or_o dissent_v from_o the_o father_n in_o true_a religion_n which_o they_o follow_v for_o all_o religion_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n all_o prophecy_n do_v depend_v upon_o that_o covenant_n which_o god_n make_v with_o abraham_n therefore_o when_o steeven_n confess_v that_o god_n appear_v to_o abraham_n he_o embrace_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n which_o flow_v from_o that_o first_o revelation_n as_o from_o a_o fountain_n moreover_o he_o call_v he_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n that_o he_o may_v distinguishe_v he_o from_o the_o false_a and_o feign_a god_n who_o alone_o be_v worthy_a of_o glory_n when_o he_o be_v in_o mesopotamia_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o that_o region_n be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n which_o lie_v between_o the_o river_n tigris_n and_o euphrates_n and_o he_o say_v before_o he_o dwell_v in_o charran_n because_o abraham_n be_v warn_v by_o a_o oracle_n flee_v from_o chaldea_n to_o charran_n which_o be_v a_o city_n of_o mesopotamia_n famous_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o slaughter_n of_o crassus_n and_o the_o roman_a army_n although_o pliny_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o city_n of_o arabia_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o chaldea_n be_v in_o this_o place_n comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o mesopotamia_n because_o although_o that_o region_n which_o be_v enclose_v with_o tigris_n and_o euphrates_n be_v proper_o mesopotamia_n proper_o or_o mesopotamia_n the_o country_n between_o two_o river_n yet_o those_o which_o set_v down_o any_o description_n of_o country_n do_v call_v both_o assyria_n &_o chaldea_n by_o this_o name_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o abraham_n be_v command_v by_o god_n do_v forsake_v his_o country_n and_o so_o he_o be_v prevent_v with_o the_o mere_a goodness_n of_o god_n when_o as_o he_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v he_o at_o home_n of_o the_o own_o accord_n read_v the_o last_o chapter_n of_o josua_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o moses_n his_o narration_n do_v somewhat_o disagree_v with_o this_o for_o after_o that_o about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 11._o chap._n of_o genesis_n he_o have_v declare_v that_o abraham_n do_v go_v into_o another_o country_n to_o dwell_v have_v leave_v his_o house_n he_o add_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o twelf_n that_o god_n speak_v unto_o abraham_n this_o be_v easy_o answer_v for_o moses_n recite_v not_o in_o this_o latter_a place_n what_o happen_v after_o the_o departure_n of_o abraham_n but_o least_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o abraham_n wander_v into_o other_o country_n have_v unaduised_o forsake_v his_o own_o house_n as_o light_n and_o undiscrete_a man_n use_v to_o do_v sometime_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o departure_n to_o wit_n because_o he_o be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o flit_v into_o another_o place_n and_o thus_o much_o do_v the_o word_n of_o the_o oracle_n import_n for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o stranger_n in_o a_o other_o country_n god_n can_v not_o have_v command_v he_o to_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o native_a soil_n forsake_v his_o kinsman_n and_o father_n house_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o this_o place_n agree_v wondrous_a well_o with_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n for_o after_o that_o moses_n have_v say_v that_o abraham_n go_v to_o charran_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v show_v that_o this_o journey_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n not_o through_o any_o lightness_n of_o man_n but_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o add_v that_o afterward_o which_o he_o have_v before_o omit_v which_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v much_o use_v of_o the_o hebr._n 3_o come_v out_o of_o thy_o country_n god_n use_v many_o word_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o wound_v the_o mind_n of_o abraham_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n sharp_a enough_o of_o itself_o to_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n and_o that_o serve_v to_o try_v his_o faith_n even_o as_o that_o other_o thing_n also_o that_o god_n assign_v he_o no_o land_n wherein_o he_o may_v dwell_v but_o make_v he_o stand_v in_o doubt_n &_o wait_v for_o a_o time_n wherefore_o the_o obedience_n of_o abraham_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o be_v commend_v because_o the_o sweetness_n of_o his_o native_a soil_n keep_v he_o not_o back_o from_o go_v willing_o as_o it_o be_v into_o exile_n &_o in_o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o follow_v god_n although_o
discover_v and_o this_o be_v a_o general_a way_n to_o establish_v doctrine_n when_o man_n teach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v command_v they_o by_o god_n for_o what_o man_n dare_v make_v moses_n inferior_a to_o he_o who_o as_o the_o spirit_n affirm_v ought_v only_o to_o be_v believe_v for_o this_o cause_n because_o he_o faithful_o unfold_v and_o deliver_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o god_n but_o some_o man_n may_v ask_v this_o question_n why_o he_o call_v the_o law_n a_o live_a speech_n for_o this_o title_n seem_v to_o disagree_v much_o with_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n 3.7_o 1._o cori._n 3.7_o where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o law_n be_v the_o ministry_n of_o death_n and_o that_o it_o work_v death_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o sin_n if_o you_o take_v lively_a speech_n for_o that_o which_o be_v effectual_a and_o can_v be_v make_v frustrate_a by_o the_o contempt_n of_o man_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o contrariety_n but_o i_o interpret_v it_o as_o speak_v active_o for_o that_o which_o make_v to_o live_v for_o see_v that_o the_o law_n be_v the_o perfect_a rule_n of_o godly_a and_o holy_a life_n and_o it_o show_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n it_o be_v count_v for_o good_a cause_n the_o doctrine_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n serve_v that_o solemn_a protestation_n of_o moses_n when_o he_o call_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o witness_v that_o he_o have_v set_v before_o they_o the_o way_n of_o death_n and_o life_n in_o which_o sense_n the_o lord_n himself_o complain_v 20_o ezechiel_n 20_o that_o his_o good_a law_n be_v break_v &_o his_o good_a commandment_n whereof_o he_o have_v say_v he_o which_o shall_v do_v these_o thing_n shall_v live_v in_o they_o therefore_o the_o law_n have_v life_n in_o itself_o yet_o if_o any_o man_n have_v leiff_a take_v live_v for_o that_o which_o be_v full_a of_o efficacy_n and_o strength_n i_o will_v not_o great_o stand_v in_o contention_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v call_v the_o ministry_n of_o death_n that_o be_v accidental_a to_o it_o because_o of_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n of_o man_n for_o it_o do_v not_o engender_v sin_n but_o it_o find_v it_o in_o us._n it_o offer_v life_n but_o we_o which_o be_v altogether_o corrupt_a can_v have_v nothing_o but_o death_n by_o it_o therefore_o it_o be_v deadly_a in_o respect_n of_o man_n alone_o though_o stephen_n have_v respect_n unto_o a_o far_a thing_n in_o this_o place_n for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o the_o bare_a commandment_n but_o comprehend_v all_o moses_n his_o doctrine_n wherein_o the_o free_a promise_n be_v include_v and_o so_o consequent_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o only_a life_n and_o health_n of_o man_n we_o must_v remember_v with_o what_o man_n stephen_n have_v to_o do_v they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v preposterous_o zealous_a of_o the_o law_n who_o stay_v only_o in_o the_o dead_a and_o deadly_a letter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n they_o rage_v against_o stephen_n because_o he_o seek_v christ_n in_o the_o law_n who_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o soul_n thereof_o therefore_o by_o touch_v thââeruerse_a ignorance_n glance_o he_o give_v they_o to_o understande_v that_o there_o be_v some_o great_a and_o some_o more_o excellent_a thing_n hide_v in_o the_o law_n than_o they_o have_v hitherto_o know_v for_o as_o they_o be_v carnal_a &_o content_a with_o a_o outward_a show_n they_o seek_v no_o spiritual_a thing_n in_o it_o yea_o they_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o suffer_v the_o same_o to_o be_v show_v they_o that_o he_o may_v give_v they_o to_o us._n this_o serve_v to_o refute_v the_o false_a accusation_n wherewith_o he_o be_v false_o burden_a for_o see_v he_o submit_v his_o neck_n to_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n and_o profess_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o moses_n his_o scholar_n he_o be_v far_o from_o discredit_v he_o among_o other_o yea_o rather_o he_o turn_v back_o the_o fault_n which_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n upon_o those_o which_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o slander_n that_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o common_a reproach_n for_o all_o the_o people_n because_o the_o father_n will_v not_o obey_v the_o law_n and_o therewithal_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o moses_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v a_o prophet_n not_o only_o for_o his_o time_n but_o that_o his_o authority_n may_v be_v in_o force_n with_o the_o posterity_n even_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v extinguish_v together_o with_o the_o minister_n or_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o for_o what_o be_v more_o unlikely_a than_o that_o that_o shall_v die_v whereby_o we_o have_v immortality_n so_o must_v we_o think_v at_o this_o day_n as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n speak_v unto_o the_o man_n of_o their_o time_n right_o so_o do_v they_o write_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o the_o force_n of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v continual_a because_o it_o have_v rather_o god_fw-we to_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o than_o man_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n he_o teach_v that_o if_o any_o reject_v the_o word_n appoint_v for_o they_o they_o reject_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n 39_o they_o refuse_v and_o be_v turn_v away_o he_o say_v that_o the_o father_n reject_v moses_n and_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n also_o because_o they_o give_v themselves_o rather_o unto_o the_o superstition_n of_o egypt_n which_o be_v horrible_a and_o more_o than_o blind_a fury_n to_o desire_v the_o custom_n and_o ordinance_n of_o egypt_n where_o they_o have_v suffer_v such_o grievous_a thing_n of_o late_a he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v turn_v away_o into_o egypt_n in_o their_o heart_n not_o that_o they_o desire_v to_o return_v thither_o bodily_a but_o because_o they_o return_v in_o mind_n unto_o those_o corruption_n which_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o have_v remember_v without_o great_a detestation_n and_o hatred_n it_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n that_o the_o jew_n do_v once_o speak_v of_o return_v but_o stephen_n touch_v not_o that_o history_n now_o furthermore_o he_o do_v rather_o express_v their_o stubbernesse_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v turn_v away_o for_o after_o that_o they_o have_v take_v the_o right_a way_n have_v god_n for_o their_o guide_n and_o governor_n they_o start_v aside_o sudden_o as_o if_o a_o stubborn_a unbroken_a horse_n not_o obey_v his_o rider_n shall_v froward_o run_v backward_o 40_o make_v us._n though_o the_o jew_n be_v turn_v back_o diverse_a way_n yet_o stephen_n make_v choice_n of_o one_o notable_a example_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o filthy_a and_o detestable_a treachery_n to_o wit_n when_o they_o make_v themselves_o a_o calf_n that_o they_o may_v worship_v it_o in_o steed_n of_o god_n for_o there_o can_v no_o more_o filthy_a thing_n be_v invent_v than_o this_o their_o unthankfulnes_n they_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o egypt_n neither_o do_v they_o deny_v that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o moses_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o reject_v the_o author_n of_o so_o great_a goodness_n together_o with_o the_o minister_n and_o under_o what_o colour_n they_o pretend_v that_o they_o can_v tell_v what_o be_v become_v of_o moses_n but_o they_o know_v full_a well_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o mount_n they_o see_v he_o with_o their_o eye_n when_o he_o go_v up_o thither_o until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o lord_n take_v he_o unto_o himself_o by_o compass_v he_o about_o with_o a_o cloud_n again_o they_o know_v that_o moses_n be_v absent_a for_o their_o health_n sake_n who_o have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v return_v and_o bring_v unto_o they_o the_o law_n which_o god_n shall_v give_v he_o bid_v they_o only_o be_v quiet_a a_o while_n they_o raise_v mad_a uproar_n sudden_o within_o a_o small_a time_n and_o without_o any_o cause_n yet_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v cover_v their_o madness_n with_o the_o colour_n of_o some_o reason_n they_o will_v have_v god_n present_a with_o they_o as_o if_o god_n have_v show_v unto_o they_o no_o token_n of_o his_o presence_n hitherto_o but_o his_o glory_n do_v appear_v daily_o in_o the_o cloud_n and_o pillar_n of_o fire_n therefore_o we_o see_v what_o haste_n they_o make_v to_o commit_v idolatry_n through_o wicked_a contempt_n of_o god_n that_o i_o may_v in_o the_o mean_a season_n omit_v to_o declare_v how_o filthy_a and_o wicked_a their_o unthankfulnes_n be_v in_o that_o they_o have_v so_o soon_o forget_v those_o miracle_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v remember_v even_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o by_o this_o one_o backslide_v it_o appear_v sufficient_o what_o a_o stubborn_a and_o rebellious_a people_n they_o be_v moreover_o it_o be_v more_o expedient_a for_o
in_o they_o his_o image_n whence_o rise_v that_o second_o respect_n for_o god_n do_v not_o find_v man_n bare_a and_o naked_a then_o and_o void_a of_o all_o grace_n but_o he_o know_v his_o own_o work_n in_o he_o yea_o himself_o therefore_o god_n accept_v the_o faithful_a because_o they_o live_v godly_o and_o just_o and_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o god_n accept_v the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o this_o be_v another_o question_n whether_o man_n prevent_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n with_o his_o merit_n or_o no_o and_o insinuate_v himself_o into_o his_o love_n or_o whether_o he_o be_v belove_v at_o the_o beginning_n free_o and_o without_o respect_n of_o work_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o nothing_o else_o but_o of_o hatred_n furthermore_o forasmuch_o as_o man_n leave_v to_o his_o own_o nature_n can_v bring_v nothing_o but_o matter_n of_o hatred_n he_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v free_o belove_v whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o god_n be_v to_o himself_o the_o cause_n that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o that_o he_o be_v provoke_v with_o his_o own_o mercy_n and_o not_o with_o our_o merit_n second_o we_o must_v note_v that_o although_o the_o faithful_a please_v god_n after_o regeneration_n with_o good_n work_n &_o their_o respect_n of_o work_n yet_o that_o be_v not_o do_v with_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n for_o the_o cleanness_n of_o work_n be_v never_o so_o exact_a that_o they_o can_v please_v god_n without_o pardon_n yea_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v always_o some_o corruption_n mix_v with_o they_o they_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v refuse_v therefore_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o work_n do_v not_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v have_v in_o estimation_n but_o faith_n which_o borrow_v that_o of_o christ_n which_o be_v want_v in_o work_n 36_o concern_v the_o matter_n because_o the_o greek_n text_n be_v abrupt_a some_o think_v that_o the_o accusative_fw-mi case_n be_v put_v in_o steed_n of_o the_o nominative_a &_o that_o the_o sense_n be_v this_o this_o be_v the_o word_n which_o god_n have_v send_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n othersome_a refer_v it_o unto_o the_o word_n you_o know_v which_o follow_v afterward_o &_o they_o think_v that_o there_o be_v another_o word_n add_v to_o make_v the_o sentence_n more_o pleasant_a for_o luke_n put_v logon_fw-la in_o the_o former_a place_n and_o afterward_o rema_v but_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v common_a &_o familiar_a among_o the_o grecian_n to_o understand_v the_o preposition_n this_o sense_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o seem_v to_o i_o more_o agreeable_a though_o if_o the_o harshness_n of_o the_o speech_n can_v be_v any_o better_o mitigate_v i_o will_v willing_o yield_v therefore_o i_o take_v this_o member_n to_o be_v a_o preface_n which_o appertain_v unto_o this_o worthy_a work_n of_o god_n which_o he_o show_v among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n preach_v peace_n by_o christ_n that_o do_v there_o be_v add_v a_o narration_n at_o length_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o speech_n peter_n show_v to_o what_o end_n christ_n be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n furthermore_o he_o begin_v with_o this_o commemoration_n not_o without_o cause_n that_o god_n send_v his_o word_n unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o speech_n be_v put_v for_o thing_n in_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n the_o eternal_a covenant_n which_o god_n have_v make_v with_o that_o people_n be_v at_o that_o time_n famous_a there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_o know_v among_o the_o jew_n than_o that_o there_o be_v a_o redeemer_n promise_v in_o time_n pass_v to_o the_o father_n who_o shall_v restore_v thing_n which_o be_v decay_v unto_o a_o flourish_a and_o bless_a estate_n this_o do_v those_o also_o know_v who_o be_v familiar_o conversant_a with_o the_o jew_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n peter_n may_v purchase_v great_a credit_n he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v speak_v of_o no_o new_a or_o unknown_a thing_n but_o of_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o church_n which_o do_v depend_v upon_o the_o eternal_a covenant_n of_o god_n and_o which_o be_v now_o manifest_o show_v and_o almost_o in_o every_o man_n mouth_n preach_v peace_n peter_n teach_v here_o what_o manner_n rumour_n &_o thing_n that_o be_v which_o be_v spread_v abroad_o to_o wit_n such_o as_o that_o it_o do_v make_v peace_n i_o take_v peace_n in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o reconcile_n of_o man_n &_o god_n which_o notwithstanding_o have_v in_o it_o the_o perfect_a salvation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o horrible_a confusion_n &_o as_o it_o be_v a_o huge_a lump_n do_v follow_v after_o that_o god_n be_v once_o estrange_v from_o we_o so_o so_o soon_o as_o his_o fatherly_a favour_n do_v once_o appear_v he_o gather_v his_o church_n together_o &_o true_a felicity_n arise_v therefore_o this_o be_v peter_n his_o meaning_n that_o god_n show_v himself_o merciful_a to_o his_o people_n in_o christ_n &_o that_o he_o receive_v into_o favour_n abraham_n his_o child_n again_o who_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v cast_v away_o for_o a_o time_n that_o he_o may_v establish_v among_o they_o a_o flourish_a estate_n and_o as_o he_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o this_o peace_n so_o he_o place_v christ_n in_o the_o mid_n as_o the_o pledge_n thereof_o that_o it_o may_v be_v certain_a &_o holy_a he_o couple_v peace_n and_o preach_v express_o together_o because_o this_o be_v one_o way_n whereby_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o reconciliation_n purchase_v by_o christ_n come_v unto_o us._n 2.17_o ephes_n 2.17_o in_o like_a sort_n after_o that_o paul_n have_v teach_v that_o christ_n be_v our_o peace_n he_o add_v immediate_o that_o he_o come_v to_o preach_v peace_n unto_o those_o who_o be_v nigh_o at_o hand_n and_o far_o off_o 37_o you_o know_v how_o the_o word_n this_o sermon_n of_o peter_n consist_v upon_o two_o member_n principal_o for_o in_o the_o former_a he_o recite_v a_o history_n second_o he_o descend_v unto_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o history_n for_o see_v that_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n into_o the_o world_n his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n be_v the_o matter_n of_o our_o salvation_n christ_n can_v otherwise_o be_v set_v before_o we_o to_o salvation_n than_o if_o we_o first_o know_v that_o he_o have_v put_v on_o our_o flesh_n that_o he_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n conversant_a among_o man_n that_o he_o prove_v himself_o by_o certain_a testimony_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v at_o length_n nail_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n again_o lest_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n be_v unprofitable_a and_o cold_a we_o must_v also_o show_v the_o end_n why_o he_o come_v down_o from_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n into_o the_o world_n why_o he_o suffer_v such_o a_o death_n so_o reproachful_a among_o man_n and_o accurse_a by_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n the_o cause_n of_o his_o resurrection_n must_v be_v show_v whence_o the_o effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v gather_v to_o wit_n that_o christ_n be_v humble_v that_o he_o may_v restore_v we_o unto_o perfect_a blessedness_n who_o be_v quite_o lose_v 53.4_o isai_n 53.4_o and_o also_o that_o he_o put_v on_o brotherly_a love_n together_o with_o our_o flesh_n that_o by_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o infirmity_n he_o unburden_v we_o thereof_o that_o he_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n that_o he_o may_v purchase_v the_o father_n favour_n for_o we_o that_o when_o as_o he_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n of_o death_n he_o purchase_v for_o we_o eternal_a life_n that_o he_o set_v heaven_n open_a for_o we_o by_o his_o entrance_n into_o the_o same_o that_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o he_o that_o he_o may_v enrich_v we_o with_o his_o abundance_n this_o order_n of_o teach_v do_v peter_n observe_v when_o he_o begin_v with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o afterward_o show_v what_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n his_o descend_v into_o the_o earth_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n first_o he_o say_v that_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n come_v abroad_o after_o john_n his_o baptism_n for_o because_o john_n be_v appoint_v to_o this_o end_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v lift_v up_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n to_o wait_v for_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o this_o point_n shall_v be_v omit_v he_o be_v count_v a_o excellent_a prophet_n of_o god_n therefore_o his_o authority_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n to_o make_v christ_n to_o be_v believe_v especial_o among_o the_o ignorant_a and_o those_o which_o be_v but_o novice_n we_o must_v note_v the_o phrase_n that_o john_n preach_v baptism_n for_o luke_n comprehend_v in_o deed_n under_o the_o word_n baptism_n all_o the_o whole_a ministry_n of_o john_n nevertheless_o he_o show_v that_o it_o
be_v no_o dumb_a sign_n and_o void_a of_o doctrine_n and_o assure_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n in_o all_o sacrament_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v appear_v engrave_v there_o and_o that_o the_o clear_a voice_n may_v sound_v for_o which_o cause_n that_o wicked_a profanation_n which_o be_v see_v in_o papistry_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o be_v detest_v because_o bury_v preach_v they_o do_v only_o chamre_v the_o sacrament_n with_o magical_a enchantment_n 38_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n he_o call_v he_o a_o nazarite_n here_o not_o because_o he_o be_v bear_v there_o but_o because_o he_o come_v thence_o to_o execute_v his_o office_n again_o because_o he_o be_v surname_v thus_o common_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n by_o hypallage_n for_o the_o power_n wherein_o christ_n exceed_v proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n alone_o therefore_o when_o as_o the_o heavenly_a father_n anoint_v his_o son_n he_o furnish_v he_o with_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n peter_n say_v immediate_o after_o that_o this_o power_n appear_v in_o miracle_n although_o he_o express_v one_o kind_n only_o in_o plain_a word_n that_o christ_n testify_v that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o may_v do_v good_a in_o the_o world_n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o the_o fearful_a power_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v show_v forth_o in_o he_o but_o such_o as_o may_v allure_v the_o world_n with_o the_o sweet_a taste_n of_o goodness_n and_o grace_n to_o love_v he_o and_o to_o desire_v he_o the_o metaphor_n of_o anoint_v be_v usual_a so_o often_o as_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v now_o apply_v unto_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n because_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o be_v consecrate_v a_o king_n and_o priest_n by_o his_o father_n and_o we_o know_v that_o in_o time_n of_o the_o law_n oil_n be_v a_o solemn_a token_n of_o consecration_n the_o go_v of_o christ_n be_v take_v for_o the_o course_n of_o his_o call_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o fulfil_v his_o function_n until_o the_o time_n appoint_v before_o the_o similitude_n be_v take_v from_o traveller_n which_o go_v forward_o in_o their_o journey_n until_o they_o come_v unto_o the_o appoint_a place_n although_o he_o show_v therewithal_o that_o he_o walk_v through_o judea_n in_o three_o year_n so_o that_o no_o corner_n be_v without_o his_o good_a deed_n those_o which_o be_v hold_v of_o devil_n this_o also_o be_v a_o more_o manifest_a token_n of_o god_n power_n in_o christ_n that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o heal_v man_n of_o common_a disease_n but_o do_v also_o cure_v desperate_a evil_n all_o disease_n be_v in_o deed_n light_a punishment_n wherewith_o god_n do_v punish_v we_o but_o when_o as_o he_o deal_v more_o gentle_o with_o we_o according_a to_o his_o fatherly_a kindness_n he_o be_v say_v to_o strike_v we_o with_o his_o hand_n then_o but_o in_o more_o grievous_a scourge_n he_o use_v satan_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o hangman_n and_o we_o must_v diligent_o mark_v this_o distinction_n for_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v torment_v of_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v sick_a of_o a_o ague_n or_o of_o some_o other_o common_a kind_n of_o disease_n but_o the_o alienate_n of_o the_o mind_n furious_a madness_n and_o other_o as_o it_o be_v monstrous_a grief_n be_v fit_o and_o proper_o attribute_v to_o satan_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o scripture_n use_v to_o call_v man_n who_o be_v so_o take_v and_o carry_v headlong_o with_o such_o madness_n that_o they_o have_v no_o hold_n of_o themselves_o so_o that_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v turn_v almost_o into_o beast_n man_n possess_v of_o devil_n because_o god_n be_v with_o he_o peter_n note_v brief_o to_o what_o end_n those_o power_n do_v tend_v which_o be_v show_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o may_v purchase_v credit_n among_o man_n who_o do_v behold_v god_n as_o it_o be_v present_a and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a use_n of_o miracle_n as_o we_o have_v say_v already_o else_o where_o and_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v again_o hereafter_o when_o we_o come_v to_o it_o for_o we_o must_v stay_v ourselves_o upon_o this_o principle_n that_o we_o diminish_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n unless_o we_o embrace_v and_o reverence_v those_o who_o he_o mark_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o his_o servant_n therefore_o forasmuch_o as_o power_n do_v plain_o prove_v that_o christ_n descend_v from_o heaven_n his_o dignity_n be_v place_v without_o the_o lot_n of_o man_n judgement_n 39_o and_o we_o be_v witness_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v in_o the_o country_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o at_o jerusalam_n who_o they_o slay_v hang_v he_o on_o a_o tree_n 40_o him_n god_n raise_v the_o three_o day_n and_o show_v he_o open_o 41_o not_o unto_o all_o the_o people_n but_o to_o the_o witness_n appoint_v before_o of_o god_n for_o this_o purpose_n namely_o to_o we_o who_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v with_o he_o after_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a 42_o and_o he_o command_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v preach_v to_o the_o people_n and_o shall_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v appoint_v judge_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a 43_o to_o this_o man_n do_v all_o the_o prophet_n bear_v witness_v that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o may_v through_o his_o name_n receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n 39_o and_o we_o be_v witness_n that_o he_o may_v make_v his_o word_n to_o be_v believe_v he_o say_v that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n see_v with_o their_o eye_n all_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o speak_v concern_v christ_n short_o after_o he_o take_v the_o word_n witness_v in_o another_o sense_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v appoint_v witness_n by_o god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v bring_v forth_o as_o it_o be_v by_o god_n that_o they_o may_v by_o their_o preach_n bring_v man_n unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n so_o paul_n in_o the_o fifteen_o of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v we_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v find_v false_a witness_n unless_o christ_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o we_o have_v already_o hear_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n you_o shall_v be_v my_o witness_n in_o judea_n samaria_n and_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o now_o peter_n call_v himself_o only_o a_o historical_a witness_n because_o he_o behold_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v and_o here_o he_o touch_v his_o death_n brief_o because_o it_o be_v open_o know_v he_o stand_v long_a upon_o his_o resurrection_n which_o be_v more_o doubtful_a and_o the_o knowledge_n whereof_o be_v more_o available_a unto_o faith_n 41_o if_o any_o man_n demand_v here_o why_o god_n do_v not_o show_v his_o son_n open_o to_o all_o man_n after_o his_o resurrection_n i_o answer_v although_o there_o can_v no_o reason_n be_v show_v yet_o ought_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n alone_o to_o suffice_v sober_a and_o modest_a man_n that_o they_o may_v assure_v themselves_o without_o all_o doubt_n that_o that_o be_v best_a which_o god_n have_v think_v meet_a and_o yet_o assure_o god_n use_v this_o moderation_n to_o a_o good_a end_n for_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v prove_v by_o many_o and_o firm_a testimony_n and_o this_o be_v profitable_a to_o exercise_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o godly_a to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n rather_o than_o their_o eye_n as_o touch_v the_o wicked_a and_o profess_v enemy_n of_o christ_n see_v that_o be_v so_o often_o convict_v they_o will_v never_o yield_v to_o god_n they_o be_v unworthy_a to_o have_v christ_n to_o admit_v they_o to_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o resurrection_n though_o even_o they_o be_v sufficient_o convict_v with_o the_o report_n of_o the_o soldier_n who_o they_o have_v hire_v to_o keep_v the_o sepulchre_n that_o i_o may_v omit_v other_o reason_n which_o we_o may_v fetch_v out_o of_o the_o harmony_n therefore_o let_v we_o assure_v ourselves_o of_o this_o that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o holy_a decree_n of_o god_n that_o by_o their_o testimony_n the_o truth_n of_o christ_n his_o resurrection_n may_v stand_v whosoever_o be_v not_o content_a with_o this_o approbation_n let_v he_o take_v away_o and_o overthrow_v if_o he_o can_v that_o inviolable_a decree_n of_o god_n which_o peter_n commend_v to_o we_o in_o this_o place_n and_o as_o for_o we_o if_o we_o covet_v to_o have_v god_n the_o sure_a author_n of_o our_o faith_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o be_v content_a with_o the_o witness_n who_o in_o due_a time_n he_o have_v bring_v forth_o as_o it_o be_v by_o his_o hand_n be_v ordain_v by_o he_o before_o the_o world_n be_v make_v who_o do_v eat_v and_o here_o it_o
that_o it_o be_v like_a to_o leaven_v we_o have_v before_o that_o there_o be_v great_a concourse_n of_o people_n so_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o true_a doctrine_n be_v sow_v throughout_o the_o whole_a city_n luke_n say_v now_o that_o it_o be_v spread_v far_o to_o wit_n throughout_o the_o whole_a country_n 50_o nevertheless_o he_o declare_v that_o that_o be_v do_v not_o without_o great_a pain_n and_o trouble_n therefore_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v joyful_a and_o prosperous_a neither_o can_v satan_n hinder_v the_o course_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n it_o stand_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n upon_o who_o god_n have_v bring_v forth_o into_o the_o field_n to_o strive_v and_o we_o must_v mark_v what_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o religious_a and_o honest_a woman_n together_o with_o the_o chief_a man_n of_o the_o city_n be_v enforce_v to_o persecute_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o be_v no_o small_a offence_n to_o the_o rude_a and_o those_o who_o be_v as_o yet_o scarce_o beget_v in_o christ_n when_o they_o see_v all_o those_o man_n and_o woman_n which_o be_v of_o any_o account_v or_o estimation_n set_v against_o christ_n and_o also_o whatsoever_o be_v praise_v woorthye_a according_a to_o man_n a_o great_a multitude_n of_o man_n receive_v christ_n but_o it_o be_v but_o the_o multitude_n and_o the_o ofscouringe_n of_o man_n against_o they_o be_v set_v the_o chief_a man_n of_o the_o city_n who_o with_o their_o pomp_n do_v easy_o oppress_v the_o base_a and_o obscure_a multitude_n that_o may_v also_o cause_v doctrine_n to_o be_v suspect_v yea_o to_o be_v hate_v in_o that_o godly_a and_o honest_a matron_n to_o look_v to_o be_v enemy_n to_o it_o if_o wicked_a ungodly_a &_o mischievous_a man_n shall_v have_v issue_v out_o of_o their_o tavern_n &_o den_n if_o company_n of_o whore_n shall_v break_v out_o of_o their_o brothilhouse_n it_o shall_v be_v no_o reproach_n to_o the_o gospel_n yea_o rather_o the_o dignity_n thereof_o shall_v thereby_o appear_v more_o plain_o but_o now_o what_o may_v the_o weak_a think_v with_o themselves_o but_o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o have_v such_o adversary_n be_v not_o of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o not_o only_o the_o faithful_a who_o be_v as_o yet_o weak_a shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o lord_n lest_o their_o faith_n shall_v fail_v but_o also_o that_o the_o hand_n shall_v be_v reach_v out_o to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n lest_o be_v discourage_v they_o shall_v leave_v of_o and_o by_o this_o example_n the_o lord_n mean_v to_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o must_v valiant_o resist_v such_o let_n and_o that_o we_o must_v beware_v lest_o the_o vain_a visure_n of_o virtue_n do_v blind_a our_o eye_n so_o that_o we_o can_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o gospel_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o that_o virtue_n and_o honesty_n which_o be_v in_o man_n be_v mere_a hypocrisy_n where_o they_o set_v themselves_o against_o christ_n though_o it_o may_v be_v that_o those_o who_o be_v rash_o carry_v against_o christ_n for_o a_o time_n may_v afterward_o repent_v notwithstanding_o we_o must_v thus_o think_v with_o ourselves_o that_o whatsoever_o fair_a show_n of_o holiness_n those_o bear_n who_o resist_v the_o gospel_n they_o be_v neither_o endue_v with_o the_o perfect_a fear_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v they_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o a_o vain_a shadow_n how_o great_o soever_o they_o boast_v of_o their_o virtue_n neither_o be_v it_o without_o cause_n that_o christ_n have_v this_o title_n give_v he_o 2.35_o luk._n 2.35_o that_o he_o reveal_v the_o cogitation_n of_o many_o heart_n religious_a and_o what_o manner_n religion_n can_v that_o be_v where_o there_o be_v no_o reverence_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o must_v note_v that_o there_o be_v four_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o there_o be_v few_o which_o worship_n god_n sincere_o &_o from_o the_o heart_n so_o there_o be_v few_o who_o open_o profess_v the_o manifest_a and_o gross_a contempt_n of_o he_o these_o be_v two_o sort_n and_o the_o more_o part_n be_v neither_o quite_o without_o religion_n neither_o be_v it_o altogether_o void_a of_o the_o common_a worship_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o while_o they_o do_v cold_o and_o as_o it_o be_v overfield_n play_v with_o god_n if_o they_o be_v thorough_o examine_v they_o be_v but_o profane_a like_o as_o at_o this_o day_n the_o ungodliness_n of_o many_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n shroud_v under_o ceremony_n and_o the_o feign_a profession_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n so_o that_o in_o all_o age_n there_o have_v be_v certain_a worshipper_n of_o god_n who_o have_v worship_v he_o like_o stage_n player_n who_o holiness_n do_v whole_o consist_v in_o gesture_n and_o vain_a pomp_n in_o paul_n time_n even_o as_o at_o this_o day_n a_o peculiar_a study_n of_o godliness_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o a_o few_o who_o religion_n though_o it_o be_v impure_a and_o their_o heart_n feign_v deceitful_a and_o double_a yet_o be_v they_o count_v after_o a_o sort_n religious_a in_o respect_n of_o their_o zeal_n but_o hereby_o appear_v what_o account_n we_o may_v make_v of_o bare_a religion_n which_o drive_v headlong_o through_o unaduised_a heat_n the_o professor_n thereof_o to_o resist_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n &_o to_o oppress_v his_o glory_n furthermore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o though_o these_o matron_n have_v not_o altogether_o give_v their_o name_n to_o judaisme_n neither_o have_v they_o be_v nousle_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o be_v they_o half_a jewiss_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o do_v so_o willing_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o nation_n for_o thus_o be_v woman_n lead_v about_o captive_a be_v load_v with_o sin_n as_o paul_n witness_v 51_o when_o they_o have_v shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o their_o foot_n 10.11_o mat._n 10.14_o luk._n 9.5_o &_o 10.11_o we_o may_v also_o gather_v even_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n that_o this_o be_v a_o token_n of_o curse_v among_o the_o jew_n for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o christ_n mean_v to_o have_v his_o use_n a_o unknowen_a sign_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v his_o purpose_n to_o terrify_v the_o gross_a and_o profess_a contemner_n of_o his_o doctrine_n furthermore_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o declare_v that_o god_n do_v so_o detest_v the_o wicked_a that_o we_o must_v take_v great_a heed_n that_o we_o have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o they_o lest_o we_o be_v infect_v with_o their_o uncleanness_n all_o the_o wicked_a be_v say_v in_o deed_n to_o pollute_v the_o ground_n whereon_o they_o tread_v but_o the_o lord_n do_v never_o command_v that_o any_o save_v only_o the_o contemner_n of_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v so_o reject_v with_o such_o execration_n if_o any_o adulterer_n or_o whoremonger_n if_o any_o perjure_a person_n if_o any_o drunkard_n be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_a this_o sign_n be_v not_o use_v therefore_o it_o appear_v how_o intolerable_a the_o contempt_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v in_o his_o sight_n because_o when_o as_o he_o command_v that_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o foot_n be_v shake_v off_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v pronounce_v that_o they_o be_v the_o bondslave_n of_o satan_n man_n past_o hope_n and_o worthy_a to_o be_v banish_v from_o of_o the_o earth_n wherefore_o let_v this_o so_o great_a severity_n teach_v we_o to_o reverence_v the_o gospel_n also_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n be_v teach_v with_o how_o great_a ferventness_n of_o zeal_n they_o must_v maintain_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o word_n that_o they_o do_v not_o cold_o dissemble_v and_o wink_v at_o the_o contempt_n thereof_o 52_o the_o disciple_n be_v fill_v with_o joy_n this_o member_n may_v be_v expound_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n that_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o joy_n and_o the_o spirit_n by_o hypallage_n thus_o with_o joy_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o spiritual_a joy_n because_o there_o be_v no_o quietness_n peace_n or_o joy_n of_o conscience_n but_o it_o come_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o which_o respect_n paul_n say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v rightuousnesse_n peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o spirit_n 14.17_o rom._n 14.17_o or_o that_o the_o word_n spirit_n may_v contain_v under_o it_o other_o virtue_n and_o gift_n yet_o this_o please_v i_o better_o that_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o joy_n because_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n reign_v in_o they_o which_o alone_o do_v so_o make_v we_o glad_a true_o and_o perfect_o that_o we_o be_v carry_v up_o above_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o we_o must_v mark_v luke_n his_o drift_n that_o the_o faithful_a be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v trouble_v and_o shake_v
with_o those_o stumble_a block_n how_o great_a soever_o they_o be_v with_o the_o reproach_n of_o their_o teacher_n with_o the_o disquiet_v of_o the_o city_n with_o terror_n and_o threaten_n also_o with_o fear_n and_o danger_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n that_o they_o do_v with_o the_o loftiness_n of_o their_o faith_n despise_v valiant_o the_o gorgeousness_n as_o well_o of_o their_o feign_a holiness_n as_o of_o their_o power_n and_o assure_o if_o our_o faith_n shall_v be_v well_o ground_v in_o god_n &_o shall_v be_v thorough_o root_v in_o his_o word_n and_o final_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v well_o fortify_v with_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o it_o ought_v it_o shall_v nourish_v peace_n and_o joy_n spiritual_a in_o our_o mind_n though_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v on_o a_o uproar_n the_o end_n of_o the_o former_a book_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n ¶_o the_o latter_a book_n of_o the_o commentary_n of_o m._n john_n caluin_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n chap._n xiiii_o 1_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v at_o iconium_n that_o they_o go_v together_o into_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n time_n jew_n or_o at_o the_o same_o time_n &_o speak_v so_o that_o a_o great_a multitude_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n believe_v 2_o and_o the_o jew_n which_o believe_v not_o stir_v and_o with_o envy_n infect_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o gentile_n against_o the_o brethren_n 3_o therefore_o they_o be_v long_a time_n conversant_a there_o behave_v themselves_o bold_o in_o the_o lord_n who_o bare_a witness_n of_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n grant_v that_o sign_n and_o wonder_n may_v be_v do_v by_o their_o hand_n 4_o and_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o city_n be_v divide_v and_o some_o stand_v with_o the_o jew_n and_o some_o with_o the_o apostle_n 1_o in_o the_o chapter_n last_o go_v before_o luke_n declare_v how_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n take_v in_o hand_n their_o ambassage_n unto_o the_o gentile_n furthermore_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o unprosperous_a and_o unlucky_a beginning_n in_o that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o expel_v out_o of_o antioch_n but_o also_o enforce_v by_o the_o obstinate_a wickedness_n of_o certain_a to_o shake_v off_o the_o dust_n from_o their_o foot_n but_o though_o they_o have_v but_o short_a entertainment_n in_o one_o place_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o yield_v because_o they_o consider_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v call_v they_o upon_o that_o condition_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v their_o duty_n though_o the_o whole_a world_n &_o satan_n do_v say_v nay_o therefore_o we_o see_v that_o they_o come_v not_o only_o ready_a to_o teach_v but_o also_o arm_v to_o enter_v conflict_n that_o they_o may_v courageous_o proceed_v in_o publish_v the_o gospel_n even_o through_o the_o midst_n of_o cumbat_n and_o assure_o that_o which_o be_v once_o speak_v to_o jeremie_n be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v fight_v against_o thou_o 1.19_o jer._n 1.19_o but_o they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v now_o whither_o soever_o they_o fly_v they_o carry_v with_o they_o the_o same_o courage_n still_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o furnish_v for_o one_o combat_n but_o even_o for_o continual_a warfare_n which_o luke_n do_v now_o prosecute_v he_o say_v first_o that_o they_o come_v to_o iconium_n and_o there_o withal_o he_o show_v that_o they_o seek_v not_o there_o some_o haven_n where_o they_o may_v rest_v quiet_o but_o they_o enter_v the_o synagogue_n as_o if_o they_o have_v suffer_v no_o hurt_n at_o all_o i_o refer_v the_o word_n cata_n to_o auto_n for_o asmuch_o as_o it_o signify_v among_o the_o grecian_n together_o or_o at_o the_o same_o time_n rather_o unto_o the_o jew_n than_o unto_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n therefore_o i_o interpret_v it_o thus_o not_o that_o they_o go_v in_o both_o together_o but_o that_o they_o follow_v the_o multitude_n at_o the_o solemn_a and_o appoint_a time_n of_o the_o meeting_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o secret_o with_o a_o few_o man_n but_o in_o a_o great_a assembly_n of_o people_n whereby_o they_o declare_v their_o boldness_n and_o ready_a desire_n they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o fear_v envy_n or_o avoid_v danger_n that_o a_o great_a multitude_n believe_v as_o luke_n do_v before_o show_v the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n so_o now_o he_o commend_v another_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o that_o prosperous_a success_n which_o they_o have_v for_o one_o only_a sermon_n which_o they_o make_v be_v not_o without_o fruit_n but_o it_o bring_v forth_o many_o child_n of_o god_n as_o well_o of_o the_o jew_n as_o of_o the_o gentile_n if_o one_o or_o two_o or_o a_o few_o have_v believe_v they_o may_v have_v think_v that_o they_o speed_v well_o but_o the_o lord_n confirm_v they_o far_o better_a when_o as_o they_o gather_v such_o plentiful_a fruit_n of_o their_o doctrine_n even_o in_o a_o short_a time_n for_o they_o know_v that_o so_o many_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v convert_v to_o believe_v not_o so_o much_o by_o their_o voice_n as_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o they_o may_v also_o assure_v themselves_o that_o they_o themselves_o be_v defend_v by_o the_o outstretch_a hand_n of_o god_n which_o do_v not_o a_o little_a in_o courage_n they_o 2_o and_o those_o jew_n which_o believe_v not_o lo_o they_o be_v persecute_v now_o afresh_o &_o that_o by_o the_o jew_n for_o they_o be_v like_o firebrand_n to_o inflame_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o gentile_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o gentile_n can_v abide_v to_o hear_v the_o gospel_n preach_v unless_o they_o have_v be_v incense_v to_o resist_v by_o these_o fan_n i_o interpret_v cacosai_fw-mi in_o this_o place_n for_o to_o resist_v with_o a_o malicious_a affection_n or_o to_o enforce_v to_o do_v hurt_v under_o the_o name_n brethren_n luke_n comprehend_v in_o my_o judgement_n all_o the_o godly_a to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v vex_v and_o trouble_v whosoever_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n as_o if_o some_o pernicious_a sect_n have_v rise_v to_o spread_v discord_n to_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o city_n to_o shake_v the_o public_a state_n yet_o if_o any_o have_v rather_o restrain_v it_o unto_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n i_o be_o not_o great_o against_o he_o 3_o a_o long_a time_n luke_n declare_v here_o that_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n do_v not_o depart_v the_o city_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o see_v some_o set_v against_o they_o for_o when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o behave_v themselves_o bold_o he_o give_v we_o a_o inkling_n that_o there_o be_v cause_n of_o fear_n offer_v they_o whence_o we_o gather_v that_o they_o stand_v stout_o &_o that_o through_o rare_a constancy_n &_o courage_n they_o count_v all_o danger_n as_o nothing_o until_o they_o be_v compel_v by_o violence_n to_o depart_v to_o a_o other_o place_n this_o clause_n epi_n curio_fw-la may_v be_v expound_v diverse_o either_o that_o they_o behave_v themselves_o stout_o in_o the_o lord_n cause_n or_o that_o they_o trust_v to_o his_o grace_n &_o be_v thereby_o encourage_v i_o have_v follow_v that_o which_o be_v more_o come_v that_o they_o behave_v themselves_o free_o &_o bold_o in_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v be_v holpen_v not_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n but_o by_o his_o grace_n he_o show_v immediate_o after_o after_o what_o sort_n they_o be_v incorage_v in_o the_o lord_n to_o wit_n because_o he_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n by_o sign_n &_o miracle_n for_o see_v that_o they_o know_v thereby_o that_o the_o lord_n be_v present_a with_o they_o &_o that_o his_o hand_n be_v nigh_o to_o help_v they_o they_o be_v worthy_o prick_v forward_a to_o behave_v themselves_o stout_o but_o in_o note_v one_o kind_n he_o do_v not_o exclude_v other_o kind_n for_o the_o lord_n do_v lift_v they_o uppe_o unto_o boldness_n &_o establish_v they_o in_o constancy_n by_o other_o mean_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o luke_n do_v speak_v of_o miracle_n express_o because_o the_o lord_n show_v in_o they_o his_o power_n open_o before_o all_o the_o people_n therefore_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n be_v not_o a_o little_a embolden_v when_o the_o lord_n do_v so_o deliver_v their_o doctrine_n from_o contempt_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v this_o phrase_n that_o the_o lord_n give_v witness_v to_o the_o gospel_n in_o miracle_n for_o it_o show_v the_o true_a use_n of_o miracle_n this_o be_v indeed_o the_o first_o end_n that_o they_o may_v show_v to_o we_o the_o power_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o because_o we_o be_v wrong_a &_o perverse_a interpreter_n of_o they_o lest_o they_o be_v draw_v unto_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n god_n do_v never_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o word_n for_o if_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v at_o any_o time_n without_o his_o word_n first_o